KNOWLEDGE IS *POWER : A VIEW OF ; /^ ; THE PRODUCTIVE FORCES OF MODERN SOCIETY, AND THE RESULTS OF LABOUR, CAPITAL, AND SKILL. BY CHARLES KNIGHT. "The empire of man over material things has for its ouly foundation the sciences and the arts." BACON. $llnstrateb foiilj mrnteroutf LONDON: JOHN MUBKAY, ALBEMAKLE STEEET. 1855. The Author of (Ids Work reserves to himself the right of Translation in Foreign Countries. T4-7 LONDON : FEINTED BV \V. CLOWES AN1> SONS, STAMFORD STliEET, AKD CHAUIXG CROSS. TO NEIL ARNOTT, ESQ., M.D., WITH SINCERE ADMIRATION OF THE DISINTERESTED SPIRIT IN WHICH HE HAS DEVOTED HIS SCIENTIFIC KNOWLEDGE TO THB PUBLIC GOOD ; AND IN GRATEFUL ACKNOWLEDGMENT OF HIS NEVER-FAILING KINDNESS DURING A LONG FRIENDSHIP, ^ THIS VOLUME IS AFFECTIONATELY INSCRIBED. 703204 CONTENTS. INTRODUCTION *. Page 1 CHAPTEK I. Feeble resources of civilized man in a desert Ross Cox, Peter the Wild Boy, and the Savage of Aveyron A Moskito Indian on Juan Fernandez Conditions necessary for the production of utility .... 6 CHAPTEE II. Society a system of exchanges Security of individual property the principle of exchange Alexander Selkirk and Robinson Crusoe Imperfect appro- priation and unprofitable labour 14 CHAPTER III. Adventures of John Tanner Habits of the American Indians Their suffer- ings from famine, and from the absence among them of the principle of division of labour Evils of irregular labour Respect to property Their present improved condition Hudson's Bay Indians . . 23 CHAPTER IV. The Prodigal Advantages of the poorest man in civilized life over the richest savage Savings-banks, deposits, and interest Progress of accumulation Insecurity of capital, its causes and results Property, its constituents Accumulation of capital ....... 38 CHAPTER V. Common interests of Capital and Labour Labour directed by Accumulation Capital enhanced by Labour Balance of rights and duties Relation of demand and supply Money exchanges Intrinsic and representative value of money 49 CHAPTER VI. Importance of capital to the profitable employment of labour Contrast between the prodigal and the prudent man : the Dukes of Buckingham and Bridgewater Making good for trade Unprofitable consumption War against capital in the middle ages Evils of corporate privileges Condition of the people under Henry VIII 60 VI CONTENTS. CHAPTER VII. Rights of labour Effects of slavery on production Condition of the Anglo- Saxons Progress of freedom in England Laws regulating labour Wages and prices Poor-law Law of settlement . . Page 71 CHAPTER VIII. Possessions of the different classes in England Condition of Colchester in 1301 Tools, stock-in-trade, furniture, &c. Supply of food Com- parative duration of human life Want of facilities for commerce Plenty and civilization not productive of effeminacy Colchester in the present day . . . - . . . '. . . -~ 82 CHAPTER IX. Certainty the stimulus to industry Effects of insecurity Instances of unprofitable labour Former notions of commerce National and class prejudices, arid their remedy 96 CHAPTER X. Employment of machinery in manufactures and agriculture Erroneous notions formerly prevalent on this subject Its advantages to the labourer Spade-husbandry The principle of machinery Machines and tools Change in the condition of England consequent on the introduction of machinery Modern New Zealanders and ancient Greeks Hand-mills and water-mills ' f ". . .106 CHAPTER XT. Present and former condition of the country Progress of cultivation Evil influence of feudalism State of agriculture in the sixteenth century Modern improvements Prices of wheat Increased breadth of land under cultivation Average consumption of wheat Implements of agriculture now in use Number of agriculturists in Great Britain . . 124 CHAPTER XII. Production of a knife Manufacture of iron Raising coal The hot-blast Iron bridges Rolling bar-iron Making steel Sheffield manufactures Mining in Great Britain Numbers engaged in mines and metal manu- factures 139 CHAPTER XIII. Conveyance and extended use of coal Consumption at various periods Condition of the roads in the seventeenth and eighteenth centuries Advantages of gooi roads Want of roads in Australia Turnpike-roads Canals Railway of 1680 Railway statistics . . . . 157 CONTEXTS. CHAPTER XIV. Houses The pyramids Mechanical power Carpenters' tools American machinery for building Bricks Slate Household fittings and fur- niture Paper-hangings Carpets Glass Pottery Improvements effected through the reduction or repeal of duties on domestic require- ments Page 174 CHAPTER XV. Dwellings of the people Oberlin': The Highlander's candlesticks Supply of water London waterworks Street-lights Sewers . .199 j' CHAPTER XVI. Early intercourse with foreign nations Progress of the cotton manufacture Hand-spinning Arkwright Crompton Power-loom Cartwright Especial benefits of machinery in this manufacture . . . 213 CHAPTER XVII. The woollen manufacture Divisions of employment Early history Prohibitory laws The Jacquard loom Middle-age legislation Sumptu- ary laws The silk manufacture Ribbon-weaving The linen manu- facture Cloth-printing Bleaching . . . . . 233 CHAPTER XVIII. Hosiery manufacture The stocking-frame The circular hosiery-machine Hats Gloves Boots and shoes Straw-plat Artificial flowers Fans Lace Bobbin-net machine Pins Needles Buttons Toys Lucifer-matches Envelopes . . . . . .255 CHAPTER XIX. Labour-saving contrivances The nick in types Tags of laces Casting shot Candle-dipping Tiring a wheel Globe-making Domestic aids to labour Aids to mental labour Effects of severe bodily labour on health and duration of life 276 CHAPTER XX. Influences of knowledge in the direction of labour and capital Astronomy : Chronometer Mariner's compass Scientific travellers New materials of manufactures India-rubber Gutta-percha Palm-oil Geology Inventions that diminish risk Science raising up new employments Electricity Galvanism Sunlight Mental labourers Enlightened public sentiment 295 Till CONTENTS. CHAPTER XXL Invention of printing Effects of that art A daily newspaper Provincial newspapers News-writing of former periods Changes in the character of newspapers Steam conveyance Electric telegraph Organization of a London newspaper-office The printing-machine The paper-machine Bookbinding Paper -duty Page 323 CHAPTER XXII. Power of skill Cheap production Population and production Partial and temporary evils Intelligent labour Division of labour General knowledge ' The Lowell Offering ' Union of forces . . .344- CHAPTER XXIII. Accumulation Productive and unproductive consumption Use of capital Credit Security of property Production applied to the satisfaction of common wants Increase of comforts Relations of capitalist and labourer 361 CHAPTER XXIV. Natural law of wages State-laws regulating wages Enactments, regulating consumption The labour -fund and the want-fund Ratio of capital to population State of industiy at the end of the seventeenth century Rise of manufactures Wages and prices Turning over capital . 381 CHAPTER XXV. What political economy teaches Skilled labour and trusted labour Com- petition of unskilled labour Competition of uncapitalled labour Itinerant traders The contrast of organized industry Factory- labour and garret-labour Communism Proposals for state organi- zation of labour Social Publishing Establishment Practical co-opera- tion . 398 CHAPTER XXVI. Co-operation not a modern theory Prize-money a co-operative principle Limited liability ; opinions concerning Alleged improvidence of working men Consumption of stimulants and necessaries Associations for expenditure Duties of the employed Duties of employers Industry and war . 420 LIST OF ILLUSTRATIONS. PAGE 1 . African hut 12 2. Robinson Crusoe (from a design by Stothard) 20 3. Dying lion 25 4. Penns treaty with the Indians . . 33 5. Pine-marten 37 6. Treasure-finding 45 1. Brindley 63 8. The hock-cart 66 9. Adam Smith 11 10. "Under his own vine" .... 100 11. Centre of gravity * 113 12. A tool made a machine . . , .115 13. Spinning a rope 118 14. Analysis of a cablet 119 15. Mill at Guys Cliff 122 16. Oriental plough 126 17. Clod-crusher 132 18. Scarifier 133 19. Horse-hoe 134 20. Moveable steam-engine and thrash- ing-machine 135 21. Thrashing - machine with horse- power 136 22. Draiuing-tile machine .... 137 23. The first iron bridge, Colebrook Dale 147 24. Rolling bar-iron 149 25. File-cutters 152 26 Cupids forging arrows (from Albani) 156 27. Telford 162 28. Modern Syrian cart 165 29. Brindley's aqueduct over the Irwell 168 30. Railway locomotive 171 31. Reindeer 173 32. Beaver 174 33. Pyramid and sphinx . . . . .176 34. Boulton 179 35. Carpenters and their tools (from an old German woodcut) .... 181 PAGE 36. Egyptian labour in the brickfield . 183 37. Scotch carpet-loom . . . . . 188 38. Sheet-glass making 192 39. Potter's wheel of modern Egypt . 195 40. Moulds for porcelain, and casts . 196 41. Wedgwood 197 42. Ancient shadoof 202 43. Conduit in Westcheap . . . .206 44. Old water-carrier of London. . .208 45. Plug hi a frost 209 46. London street-lights, 1760 . . .211 47. Cotton; showing a pod bursting . 214 48. Distaff 216 49. A Hindoo woman spinning cotton . 217 50. Sir Richard Arkwright . . . .219 51. Arkwright's original spinning-ma- chine 220 52. Samuel Crompton, inventor of the spinning-mule 222 53. Hindoo weaver at work in a field . 228 54. Dr. Cartwright, inventor of the power-loom 229 55. Flemish weaver (from a print of 1568) 230 56. Mechanism of power-loom . . .242 57. Jacquard cards 243 58. Hanks of silk 247 59. Egyptian winding-reel . . . .247 60. Silk-winding machine .... 248 61. Indigo-harvest in the West Indies . 252 62. Gloves for the great 260 63. Cobbler's stall, about 1760 . . .261 64. Men'seg, or Egyp tian embroidery- frame 263 65. Bobbin-net meshes 264 66. Essential parts of the bobbin-net machine 265 67. Stamping the eye of a needle . . 269 68. Stamping, pressing, and punching buttons. Elliott's factory . .271 b LIST OF ILLUSTRATIONS. PAGE 69. Envelope-making machine . . .275 70. Compositor at work 277 71. Machine for fixing tags to laces . 278 72. Inclined plane for separating shot 279 73. Candle-dipping machine . . . .281 74. Tiring a wheel 281 75. Harrison 298 76. Greenwich Observatory . . . .299 77. Linnaeus in his Lapland dress . . 302 78. Elaeis Guineensis, and Cocos buty- racea, yielding palm-oil . . . 306 79. Franklin medal 310 80. Newton 313 81. Ambrose Pare" . 314 PAGE 82. Sir Walter Scott (from Sir F. Chan- trey's bust) 319 83. Statue of Bacon 322 84. Old hand- gunner 330 85. Carrier-pigeon ...... 332 86. Cowper's printing-machine . . . 335 87. The ' Times ' printing-machine. . 338 88. Papyrus 343 89. Medal to Locke 380 90. Vision of Henry 1 381 91. Irish mud cabin 393 92. "Feed the hungry" (from Flaxman) 401 93. Costermonger 407 94. "Pots to mend" 411 95. Statue of Watt , 436 KNOWLEDGE IS POWER. INTRODUCTION. IT has been wisely said by a French writer who has scat- tered abroad sound and foolish opinions with a pretty equal hand, that " it requires a great deal of philosophy to observe once what is seen every day."* To no branch of human knowledge can this remark be more fitly applied than to that which relates to the commonest things of the world, namely, the Wants of Man and the Means of satisfying them. Man, it has been maintained, has greater natural wants and fewer natural means than any other animal. That his wants are greater, even in the rudest state of the species, than the wants of any quadruped to say nothing of ani- mals lower in the scale of being there can be no doubt. But that his natural means are feebler and fewer we cannot believe ; for the exercise of his understanding, in a variety of ways which no brute intelligence can reach, is the greatest of his natural means, and that power enables him to subdue all things to his use. It is the almost unlimited extent of the wants of man in the social state, and the consequent multiplicity and com- plexity of his means both, his wants and means proceeding from the range of his mental faculties which have ren- dered it so difficult to observe and explain the laws which govern the production, distribution, and consumption of those articles of utility, essential to the subsistence and * J. J. Rousseau. 2 INTRODUCTION. comfort of the human race, which we call "Wealth. It is not more than a century ago that even those who had " a great deal of philosophy " first began to apply themselves to observe "what is seen every day" exercising, in the course of human industry, the greatest influence on the con- dition and character of individuals and nations. The pro- perties of light were ascertained by Sir Isaac Newton long ; ''.before^Eie'ri'^veire^agreed upon the circumstances which de- ' ' 'termiried "the 'production of a loaf of bread ; and the return ; ' of [si bo'ijaet after an interval of seventy-six years was pretty 1 accurately foretold t)y Dr. Halley, when legislators were in almost complete ignorance of the principle which regularly brought as many cabbages to Covent Garden as there were purchasers to demand them. Since those days immense efforts have been made to de- termine the great circumstances of our social condition, which have such unbounded, influence on the welfare of mankind. But, unhappily for themselves and for others, many of every nation still remain in comparative darkness, with regard even to the elementary truths which the labours of some of the most acute and benevolent inquirers that the world has produced have succeeded in establishing. Some- thing of this defect may be attributed to the fact that sub- jects of this nature are considered difficult of comprehension. Even the best educated sometimes shrink from the exami- nation of questions of political economy when presented in their scientific form. Charles Fox said that he could not understand Adam Smith. And yet Adam Smith's 'Wealth of Nations ' is essentially an amusing book in many parts. Matters affecting the interests of every human being, and involving a variety of facts having relation to the condition of mankind in every age and country, are not necessarily, as has been supposed, dry and difficult to understand, and consequently only to be approached by systematic students. In this belief it is proposed in this volume to exhibit the natural operation of the principles by which Industry, as well as every other exchangeable property, must be go- verned. The writer has to apply all the universal laws INTRODUCTION. 3 which regulate the exchanges of mankind to the direction of that exchange which the great bulk of the people are most interested in carrying forward rapidly, certainly, and uninterruptedly the exchange of Labour for Capital. But he has also to regard those laws with especial refer- ence to that mighty Power which has become so absorbing and controlling in our own day the Power of Science applied to the Arts, or, in other words, Knowledge. It is not too much to assert that, henceforth, Labour must take its absolute direction from that Power. It is now the great instrument of Capital. In time it will be understood universally to be the best partner of Labour. " Wherever education and an unrestricted press are allowed full scope to exercise their united influence, progress and improve- ment are the certain results, and among the many benefits which arise from their joint co-operation may be ranked most prominently the value which they teach men to place upon intelligent contrivance ; the readiness with which they cause new improvements to be received ; and the im- pulse which they thus unavoidably give to that inventive spirit which is gradually emancipating man from the rude forms of labour, and making what were regarded as the luxuries of one age to be looked upon in the next as the ordinary and necessary conditions of human existence."* The present volume is founded upon two little works which the author wrote more than twenty years ago, and which were widely circulated. One of these books, ' The Results of Machinery,' was published, in connexion with the Society for the Diffusion of Useful Knowledge, at a period of great national alarm, when a blind rage against a power supposed to interfere with the claims of labour was generally prevalent, and led, in the southern agricultural districts especially, to many acts of daring violence. Hap- pily that spirit is passed away. The spirit of knowledge has arisen ; and we are told now, by an unquestionable authority, that labourers themselves begin to regard the * Special Report of Mr. Joseph Whitworth on the New York Industrial Exhibition. B 2 4 INTRODUCTION. tedious work of the flail as too irksome* the same class that in 1830 broke the thrashing machines. In re- modelling that portion of the present volume it is unneces- sary to deprecate the evils of hostility to machinery ; but rather to look forward to its more complete union with skilled labour as the triumph of the productive forces of modern society. In the other little book upon which this volume is founded, * Capital and Labour,' the general sub- ject of the Production of wealth was popularly treated, and the argument is here carried forward. But in the present work it will be the further endeavour of the writer not to overlook the general relations of Capital and Labour in the Distribution of wealth. As the mistakes about Production have yielded, in a great degree, to improved education, so may those which belong to Distribution also yield to the progress of Knowledge. These are not mis- takes which are confined to one class, and that the most numerous. The freedom of Industry has as much claim to be regarded as the security of Capital. We have distinct evidence that in another country these principles are better understood. " The results which have been obtained in the United States, by the application of machinery wherever it has been practicable to manufactures, are rendered still more remarkable by the fact that combinations to resist its in- troduction there are unheard of. The workmen hail with satisfaction all mechanical improvements, the importance and value of which, as releasing them from the drudgery of unskilled labour, they are enabled by education to under- stand and appreciate. With the comparatively super- abundant supply of hands in this country, and therefore a proportionate difficulty in obtaining remunerative employ- ment, the working classes have less sympathy with the progress of invention. Their condition is a less favourable one than that of their American brethren for forming a just and unprejudiced estimate of the influence which the intro- duction of machinery is calculated to exercise on their state * Mr. Pusey's Report on Agricultural Implements. INTRODUCTION. 5 and prospects. I cannot resist the conclusion, however, that the different views taken by our operatives and those of the United States upon this subject are determined by other and powerful causes, besides those dependent on the supply of labour in the two countries. The principles which ought to regulate the relations between the employer and the em- ployed seem to be thoroughly understood and appreciated in the United States ; and while the law of limited liability affords the most ample facilities for the investment of capital in business, the intelligent and educated artisan is left equally free to earn all that he can, by making the best use of his hands, without let or hindrance by his fellows."* Without attempting to give this volume the formal shape of a treatise on Political Economy, it is the wish of the author to convey the broad parts of his subject in a some- what desultory manner, but one which is not altogether devoid of logical arrangement. He desires especially to be understood by the young ; for upon their right appreciation of the principles which govern society will depend much of the security and happiness of our own and the coming time. The danger of our present period of transition is, that theory should expect too much, and that practice should do too little, in the amelioration of the condition of the people. A great number of woodcuts have been for the first time introduced into this volume, which illustrate mechanical inventions. But the author begs distinctly to be understood that his object here is not 'to describe processes. His notices of them, more or less extended, are simply to illustrate the course of his argument ; and in that way to make the book more useful, because more attractive, for purposes of education. * Mr. Whitworth's Special Report. CIVILIZED MAN IN A DESERT. CHAP. I, CHAPTEE I. Feeble resources of civilized man in a desert Ross Cox, Peter the Wild Boy, and the Savage of Aveyron A Moskito Indian on Juan Fernandez Conditions necessary for the production of utility. LET us suppose a man brought up in civilized life, cast upon a desert land without food, without clothes, without fire, without tools. We see the human being in the very lowest state of helplessness. Most of the knowledge he had acquired would be worse than useless ; for it would not be applicable in any way to his new position. Let the land upon which he is thrown produce spontaneous fruits let it be free from ferocious animals 'let the climate be most genial still the man would be exceedingly powerless and wretched. The first condition of his lot, to enable him to maintain existence at all, would be that he should labour. He must labour to gather the berries from the trees he must labour to obtain water from the rivulets he must labour to form a garment of leaves, or of some equally accessible material, to shield his body from the sun he must labour to render some cave or hollow tree a secure place of shelter from the dews of night. There would be no intermission of the labour necessary to provide a supply of food from hand to mouth, even in the season when wild fruits were abundant. If this labour, in the most favourable season, were interrupted for a single day, or at most for two or three days, by sickness, he would in all probability perish. But, when the autumn was past, and the wild fruits were gone, he must prolong existence as some savage tribes are reported to do by raw fish and undressed roots. The labour of procuring these would be infinitely greater than that of climbing trees for fruit. To catch fish without nets, and scratch up roots with CHAP. I. ROSS COX. 7 naked hands, is indeed painful toil. The helplessness of this man's condition would principally be the effect of one circum- stance ; he would possess no accumulation of former labour by which his present labour might be profitably directed. The power of labour would in his case be in its least productive state. He would partly justify the assertion that man has the feeblest natural means of any animal ; because he would be utterly unpossessed of those means which the reason of man has accumulated around every individual in the social state. We asked the reader to suppose a civilized man in the very lowest state in which the power of labour may be exercised, because there is no record of any civilized man being for any length of time in such a state. Ross Cox, a Hudson's Bay trader, whose adventures were given to the world some twenty years ago, was in this state for a fortnight ; and his sufferings may furnish some idea of the greater miseries of a continuance in such a powerless condition. Having fallen asleep in the woods of the north- west of America, which he had been traversing with a large party, he missed the traces of his companions. The weather being very hot, he had left nearly all his clothes with his horse when he rambled from his friends. He had nothing to defend himself against the wolves and serpents but a stick ; he had nothing of which to make his bed but long grass and rushes ; he had nothing to eat but hips and wild cherries. The man would doubtless have perished, unless he had met with some Indians, who knew better how to avail themselves of the spontaneous productions around them. But this is not an instance of the continuance of Labour in the lowest state of its power. The few individuals, also, who have been found exposed in forests, such as Peter the Wild Boy, and the Savage of Aveyron, who were discovered, the one about a century ago, in Germany, the other about forty years since, in France, differed from the civilized man cast naked upon a desert shore in this particular their wants were of the lowest nature. They were not raised above the desires of 8 WILD MENT. CHAP. I. the most brutish animals. They supplied those desires after the fashion of brutes. Peter was enticed from the woods by the sight of two apples, which the man who found him dis- played. He did not like bread, but he eagerly peeled green sticks, and chewed the rind. He had, doubtless, subsisted in this way in the woods. He would not, at first, wear shoes, and delighted to throw the hat which was given him into the river. He was brought to England, and lived many years with a farmer in Hertfordshire. During the Scotch Rebellion, in 1745, he wandered into Norfolk ; and having been apprehended as a suspicious character, was sent to prison. The gaol was on fire ; and Peter was found in a corner, enjoying the warmth of the flames without any fear. The Savage of Aveyron, in the same manner, had the lowest desires and the feeblest powers. He could use his hands, for instance, for no other purpose than to seize upon an ob- ject ; and his sense of touch was so defective, that he could not distinguish a raised surface, such as a carving, from a painting. This circumstance of the low physical and intel- lectual powers of these unfortunate persons prevents us ex- hibiting them as examples of the state which we asked the reader to suppose. Let us advance another step in our view of the power of Labour. Let us take a man in one respect in the same condition that we supposed left upon a desert land, without any direct social aid ; but with some help to his labour by a small Accumulation of former industry. We have instances on record of this next state. In the year 1681 a Moskito Indian was left by accident on the island of Juan Fernandez, in the Pacific Ocean ; the English ship in which he was a sailor having been chased off the coast by some hostile Spanish vessels. Captain Dampier describes this man's condition in the following words : "This Indian lived here alone above three years; and although he was several times sought after by the Spaniards, who knew he was left on the island, yet they could never find him. He was in the woods hunting for goats, when CHAP. I. AN INDIAN ON JUAN FERNANDEZ. 9 Captain Watlin drew off his men, and the ship was tinder sail before he came back to shore. He had with him his gun, and a knife, with a small horn of powder, and a few shot ; which being spent, he contrived a way, by notching his knife, to saw the barrel of his gun into small pieces, wherewith he made harpoons, lances, hooks, and a long knife ; heating the pieces first in the fire, which he struck with his gun-flint, and a piece of the barrel of his gun, which he hardened, having learnt to do that among the English. The hot pieces of iron he would hammer out and bend as he pleased with stones, and saw them with his jagged knife, or grind them to an edge by long labour, and harden them to a good temper as there was occasion.* With such instruments as he made in that manner, he got such provisions as the island afforded, either goats or fish. He told us that at first he was forced to eat seal, which is very ordinary meat, before he had made hooks ; but afterwards he never killed any seals but to make lines, cutting their skins into thongs. He had a little house, or hut, half a mile from the sea, which was lined with goat's skin ; his couch, or barbecu of sticks, lying along about two feet distance from the ground, was spread with the same, and was all his bedding. He had no clothes left, having worn out those he brought from Watlin's ship, but only a skin about his waist. He saw our ship the day before we came to an anchor, and did believe we were English ; and therefore killed three goats in the morning, before we came to an anchor, and dressed them with cabbage, to treat us when we came ashore." Here, indeed, is a material alteration in the wealth of a man left on an uninhabited island. He had a regular supply of goats and fish ; he had the means of cooking this food ; he had a house lined with goats' skins, and bedding of the * It is difficult to understand how the Indian could convert the iron gun- barrel into steel, which it appears from Dampier's account that he did. Steel is produced by a scientific admixture of carbon with iron. But we assume that the statement is correct, and that a conversion, partial doubtless, of iron into steel did take place. 10 AN INDIAN ON JUAN FERNANDEZ. CHAP. I. same ; his body was clothed with skins ; he had provisions in abundance to offer, properly cooked, when his old com- panions came to him after three years' absence. What gave him this power to labour profitably ? to maintain existence in tolerable comfort ? Simply, the gun, the knife, and the flint, which he accidentally had with him when the ship sailed away. The flint and the bit of steel which he hardened out of the gun-barrel gave him the means of procuring fire ; the gun became the material for making harpoons, lances, and hooks, with which he could obtain fish and flesh. Till he had these tools, he was compelled to eat seal's flesh. The instant he possessed the tools, he could make a selection of what was most agreeable to his taste. ft is almost impossible to imagine a human being with less accumulation about him. His small stock of powder and shot was soon spent, and he had only an iron gun-barrel and a knife left, with the means of changing the form of the gun-barrel by fire. Yet this single accumulation enabled him to direct his labour, as all labour is directed even in its highest employment, to the change of form and change of place of the natural supplies by which he was surrounded. He created nothing ; he only gave his natural supplies a value by his labour. Until he laboured, the things about him had no value, as far as he was concerned ; when he did obtain them by labour, they instantly acquired a value. He brought the wild goat from the mountain to his hut in the valley he changed its place ; he converted its flesh into cooked food, and its skin into a lining for his bed he changed its form. Change of form and change of place are the beginning and end of all human labour ; and the Moskito Indian only employed the same principle for the supply of his wants which directs the labour of all the producers of civilized life into the channels of manufactures or commerce. But the Moskito Indian, far removed as his situation was above the condition of the man without any accumulation of former labour that is, of the man without any capital about him was only in the second stage in which the power of CHAP. I. PRODUCTION OF UTILITY. 11 labour can be exercised, and in which it is comparatively still weak and powerless. He laboured he laboured with accu- mulation but he laboured without that other power which gives the last and highest direction to profitable labour. Let us state all the conditions necessary for the production of Utility, or of what is essential to the support, comfort, and pleasure of human life : 1. That there shall be Labour. The man thrown upon a desert island without accumula- lation, the half-idiot boy who wandered into the German forests at so early an age that he forgot all the usages of mankind, were each compelled to labour, and to labour unceasingly, to maintain existence. Even with an un- bounded command of the spontaneous productions of nature, this condition is absolute. It applies to the inferior animals as well as to man. The bee wanders from flower to flower, but it is to labour for the honey. The sloth hangs upon the branches of a tree, but he labours till he has devoured all the leaves, and then climbs another tree. The condition of the support of animation is labour ; and if the labour of all animals were miraculously suspended for a season, very short as compared with the duration of individual life, the reign of animated nature upon this globe would be at an end. The second condition in the production of utility is, 2. That there shall be accumulation of former labour, or Capital. Without accumulation, as we have seen, the condition of man is the lowest in the scale of animal existence. The reason is obvious. Man requires some accumulation to aid his natural powers of labouring ; for he is not provided with instruments of labour to anything like the perfection in which they exist amongst the inferior animals. He wants the gnawing teeth, the tearing claws, the sharp bills, the solid mandibles that enable quadrupeds, and birds, and insects to secure their food, and to provide shelter in so many 12 CONDITIONS NECESSARY FOR CHAP. I. ingenious ways, each leading us to admire and reverence the directing Providence which presides over such manifold contrivances. He must, therefore, to work profitably, ac- cumulate instruments of work. But he must do more, even in the unsocial state, where he is at perfect liberty to direct his industry as he pleases, uncontrolled by the rights of other men. He must accumulate stores of covering and of shelter. He must have a hut and a bed of skins, which are all accumulations, or capital. He must, further, have a stock of food, which stock, being the most essential for human wants, is called provisions, or things provided. He would require this provision against the accidents which may occur to his own health, and the obstacles of weather, which may prevent him from fishing or hunting. The lowest savages have some stores. Many of the inferior animals display an equal care to provide for the exigencies of the future. But still, all such labour is extremely limited. When a man is occupied only in providing African Hut. CHAP. I. THE PRODUCTION OF UTILITY. 13 immediately for his own wants doing everything for himself, consuming nothing but what he produces himself, his labour must have a very narrow range. The supply of the lowest necessities of our nature can only be attended to, and these must be very ill supplied. The Moskito Indian had fish, and goats' flesh, and a rude hut, and a girdle of skins ; and his power of obtaining this wealth was insured to him by the absence of other individuals who would have been his competitors for what the island spontaneously produced. Had other Indians landed in numbers on the island, and had each set about procuring everything for himself, as the active Moskito did, they would have soon approached the point of starvation ; and then each would have begun to plunder from the other, unless they had found out the principle that would have given them all plenty. There wanted, then, another power to give the labour of the Indian a profitable direction, besides that of accumulation. It is a power which can only exist where man is social, as it is his nature to be ; and where the principles of civilization are in a certain degree developed. It is, indeed, the beginning and the end of all civilization. It is itself civilization, partial or com- plete. It is the last and the most important condition in the production of useful commodities, 3. That there shall be exchanges. There can be no exchanges without accumulation there can be no accumulation without labour. Exchange is that step beyond the constant labour and the partial accumula- tion of the lower animals, which makes man the lord of the world. 14 SOCIETY A SYSTEM OF EXCHANGES. CHAP. II. CHAPTEK II. Society a system of exchanges Security of individual property the principle of exchange Alexander Selkirk and Eobinson Crusoe Imperfect appro- priation and unprofitable labour. SOCIETY, both in its rudest form and in its most refined and complicated relations, is nothing but a system of Ex- changes. An exchange is a transaction in which both the parties who make the exchange are benefited ; and, con- sequently, society is a state presenting an uninterrupted succession of advantages for all its members. Eveiy time that we make a free exchange we have a greater desire for the thing which we receive than for the thing which we give ; and the person with whom we make the exchange has a greater desire for that which we ofier him than for that which he offers us. When one gives his labour for wages, it is because he has a higher estimation of the wages than of the profitless ease and freedom of remaining un- employed ; and, on the contrary, the employer who pur- chases his labour feels that he shall be more benefited by the results of that labour than by retaining the capital which he exchanges for it. In a simple state of society, when one man exchanges a measure of wheat for the mea- sure of wine which another man possesses, it is evident that the one has got a greater store of wheat than he desires to consume himself, and that the other, in the same way, has got a greater store of wine ; the one exchanges some- thing to eat for something to drink, and the other some- thing to drink for something to eat. In a refined state of society, when money represents the value of the exchanges, the exchange between the abundance beyond the wants of CHAP. II. SECURITY OF PROPERTY. 15 the possessor of one commodity and of another is just as real as the barter of wheat for wine. The only difference is, that the exchange is not so direct, although it is incom- parably more rapid. But, however the system of exchange be earned on, whether the value of the things exchanged be determined by barter or by a price in money, all the exchangers are benefited, because all obtain what they want, through the store which they possess of what they do not want. It has been well said that " Man might be defined to be an animal that makes exchanges."* There are other ani- mals, indeed, such as bees and ants amongst insects, and beavers amongst quadrupeds, which to a certain extent are social ; that is, they concur together in the execution of a common work for a common good : but as to their indivi- dual possessions, each labours to obtain what it desires from sources accessible to all, or plunders the stores of others. Not one insect or quadruped, however wonderful may be its approaches to rationality, has the least idea of making a formal exchange with another. The modes by which the inferior animals communicate their thoughts are probably not sufficiently determinate to allow of any such agreement. The very foundation of that agreement is a complicated principle, which man alone can understand. It is the Security of individual Property. Immediately that this principle is established, labour begins to work profitably, for it works with exchange. If the principle of appro- priation were not acted upon at all, there could be no exchange, and consequently no production. The scanty bounty of nature might be scrambled for by a few miserable individuals and the strongest would obtain the best share ; but this insecurity would necessarily destroy all accumu- lation. Each would of course live from hand to mouth, when the means of living were constantly exposed to the violence of the more powerful. This is the state of the lowest savages, and as it is an extreme state it is a rare one, no security, no exchange, no capital, no labour, no * Dr. Whately's Lectures on Political Economy. 16 ALEXANDER SELKIRK. CHAP. II. production. Let us apply the principle to an individual case. The poet who has attempted to describe the feelings of a man suddenly cut off from human society, in * Verses sup- posed to be written by Alexander Selkirk during his solitary abode in the island of Juan Fernandez,' represents him as saying, "I am monarch of all I survey."* Alexander Sel- kirk was left upon the same island as the Moskito Indian ; and his adventures there have formed the groundwork of the beautiful romance of ' Robinson Crusoe.' The meaning of the poet is, that the unsocial man had the same right over all the natural productive powers of the country in which he had taken up his abode, as we each have over light and air. He was alone ; and therefore he exercised an absolute although a barren sovereignty, over the wild animals by which he was surrounded over the land and over the water. He was, in truth, the one proprietor the one capitalist, and the one labourer of the whole island. His absolute property in the soil, and his perfect freedom of action, were both dependent upon one condition that he should remain alone. If the Moskito Indian, for instance , had remained in the island, Selkirk's entire sovereignty must have been instantly at an end. Some more definite principle of appropriation must have been established, which would have given to Selkirk, as well as to the Moskito Indian, the right to appropriate distinct parts of the island each to his particular use. Selkirk, for example, might have agreed to remain on the eastern coast, while the Indian might have established himself on the western ; and then the fruits, the goats, and the fish of the eastern part, would have been appropriated to Selkirk, as distinctly as the clothes, the musket, the iron pot, the can, the hatchet, the knife, the mathematical instruments, and the Bible which he brought on shore.t If the Indian's territory had produced some- thing which Selkirk had not, and if Selkirk's land had also * Cowper's Miscellaneous Poems. f These circumstances are recorded in Captain Woodes Rogers' Cruising Voyage round the World, 1712. CHAP. II. ALEXANDER SELKIRK. 17 something which the Indian's had not, they might have become exchangers. They would have passed into that condition naturally enough ; imperfectly perhaps, but still as easily as any barbarous people who do not cultivate the earth, but exchange her spontaneous products. The poet goes on to make the solitary man say, " My right there is none to dispute." The condition of Alexander Selkirk was unquestionably one of absolute liberty. His rights were not measured by his duties. He had all rights and no duties. Many writers on the origin of society have held that man, upon entering into union with his fellow- nien, and submitting, as a necessary consequence of this union, to the restraints of law and government, sacrifices a portion of his liberty, or natural power, for the security of that power 'which remains to him. No such agreement amongst mankind could ever have possibly taken place ; for man is by his nature, and without any agreement, a social being. He is a being whose rights are balanced by the uncontrollable force of their relation to the rights of others. The succour which the infant man requires from its parents, to an extent, and for a duration, so much ex- ceeding that required for the nurture of other creatures, is the natural beginning of the social state, established insen- sibly and by degrees. The liberty which the social man is thus compelled by the force of circumstances to renounce amounts only to a restraint upon his brute power of doing injury to his fellow-men : and for this sacrifice, in itself the cause of the highest individual and therefore general good, he obtains that dominion over every other being, and that control over the productive forces of nature, which alone can render him the monarch of all he surveys. The poor Bailor, who for four years was cut off from human aid, and left alone to struggle for the means of supporting existence, was an exception, and a very rare one, to the condition of our species all over the world. His absolute rights placed him in the condition of uncontrolled feebleness ; if he had become social, he would have put on the regulated strength of rights balanced by duties. c 18 ALEXANDER SELKIRK. CHAP. II. Alexander Selkirk was originally left upon the unin- habited island of Juan Fernandez at his own urgent desire. He was unhappy on board his ship, in consequence of disputes with his captain ; and he resolved to rush into a state which might probably have separated him for ever from the rest of mankind. In the belief that he should be so separated, he devoted all his labour and all his ingenuity to the satis- faction of his own wants alone. By continual exercise, he was enabled to run down the wild goat upon the mountains ; and by persevering search, he knew where to find the native roots that would render his goat's flesh palatable. He never thought, however, of providing any store beyond the supply of his own personal necessities. He had no motive for that thought ; because there was no human being within his reach with whom he might exchange that store for other stores. The very instant, however, that the English ships, which finally gave him back to society, touched upon his shores, before he communicated by speech with any of his fellow-men, or was discovered by them, he became social. He saw that he must be an exchanger. Before the boat's crew landed he had killed several goats, and prepared a meal for his expected guests. He knew that he possessed a commodity which they did not possess. He had fresh meat, whilst they had only salt. Of course what he had to offer was acceptable to the sailors ; and he received in exchange protection, and a place amongst them. He renounced his sovereignty, and became once more a subject. It was better for him, he thought, to be surrounded with the regulated power of civilization, than to wield at his own will the uncer- tain strength of solitary uncivilization. But, had he chosen to remain upon his island, as in after-years he regretted he had not done, although a solitary man he would not have been altogether cut off from the hopes and the duties of the social state. If he had chosen to remain after that visit from his fellow-men, he would have said to them, before they had left him once more alone, " I have hunted for you my goats, I have dug for you my roots, I have shown you the foun- tains which issue out of my rocks ; these are the resources CHAP. II. ROBINSON CRUSOE. 19 of iny dominion : give me in exchange for them a fresh supply of gunpowder and shot, some of your clothes, some of the means of repairing these clothes, some of your tools and implements of cookery, and more of your books to di- vert my solitary hours." Having enjoyed the benefits which he had bestowed, they would, as just men, have paid the debt which they had incurred, and the exchange would have been completed. Immediately that they had quitted his shores, Selkirk would have looked at his resources with a new eye. His hut was rudely fashioned and wretchedly furnished. He had fashioned and furnished it as well as he could by his own labour, working upon his own materials. The visit which he had received from his fellow-men, after he had abandoned every hope of again looking upon their faces, would have led him to think that other ships would come, with whose crews he might make other exchanges, new clothes, new tools, new materials, received as the price of his own accumulations. To make the best of his circum- stances when that day should arrive, he must redouble his efforts to increase his stock of commodities, some for him- self, and some to exchange for other commodities, if the opportunity for exchange should ever come. He must there- fore transplant his vegetables, so as to be within instant reach when they should be wanted. He must render his goats domestic, instead of chasing them upon the hills. He must go forward from the hunting state, into the pastoral and agricultural. In Defoe's story, Robinson Crusoe is represented as going into this pastoral and agricultural state. But he had more resources than Selkirk ; and he at last obtained one resource which carried him back, however incompletely, into the social condition. He acquired a fellow-labourer. He made a boat by his own unassisted labour ; but he could not launch it. When Friday came, and was henceforth his faithful friend and willing servant, he could launch his boat. Crusoe ultimately left his island ; for the boat had given him a greater command over his circumstances. But had he con- tinued there in companionship with Friday, there must have c 2 20 ROBINSON CRUSOE. CHAP. II. been such a compact as would have prevented either strug- gling for the property which had been created. The course of improvement that we have imagined for Selkirk supposes ~D Robinson Crusoe. (From a design by Stothard.) that he should continue in his state of exclusive proprietor that there should be none to dispute his right. If other CHAP. II. IMPERFECT APPROPRIATION. 21 ships had come to his shores if they had trafficked with him from time to time exchanged clothes and household conveniences, and implements of cultivation, for his goats' flesh and roots it is probable that other sailors would in time have desired to partake his plenty ; that a colony would have been founded that the island would have become populous. It is perfectly clear that, whether for exchange amongst themselves, or for exchange with others, the members of this colony could not have stirred a step in the cultivation of the land without appropriating its produce ; and they could not have appropriated its produce without appropriating the land itself. Cultivation of the land for a common stock would have gone to the establishment pre- cisely of the same principle ; they would still have been exchangers amongst themselves, and the partnership would not have lasted a day, unless each man's share of what the partnership produced had been rendered perfectly secure to him. Without security they could not have accumulated without accumulations they could not have exchanged without exchanges they could not have carried forward their labours with any compensating productiveness. Imperfect appropriation that is, an appropriation which respects personal wealth, such as the tools and conveniences of an individual, and even secures to him the fruits of the earth when he has gathered them, but which has not reached the last step of a division of land imperfect appropriation such as this raises up the same invincible obstacles to the production of utility ; because, with this original defect, there must necessarily be unprofitable labour, small accumulation, limited exchange. Let us exemplify this by another individual case. We have seen, in the instances of the Moskito Indian and of Selkirk, how little a solitary man can do for himself, although he may have the most unbounded command of natural supplies although not an atom of those natural supplies, whether produced by the earth or the water, is appropriated by others when, in fact, he is monarch of all he surveys. Let us trace the course of another man, ad- 22 UNPRODUCTIVE LABOUR. CHAP. II. vanced in the ability to subdue all things to his use by association with his fellow-men ; but carrying on that association in the rude and unproductive relations of savage life ; not desiring to " replenish the earth " by cultivation, but seeking only to appropriate the means of existence which it has spontaneously produced ; labouring, indeed, and exchanging, but not labouring and exchanging in a way that will permit the accumulation of wealth, and therefore remaining poor and miserable. We are not about to draw any fanciful picture, but merely to select some facts from a real narrative. CHAP. III. JOHN* TANNER. 23 CHAPTEK III. Adventures of John Tanner Habits of the American Indians Their suffer- ings from famine, and from the absence among them of the principle of division of labour Evils of irregular labour Respect to property Their present improved condition Hudson's Bay Indians. IN the year 1828 there came to New York a white man named John Tanner, who had been thirty years a captive amongst the Indians in the interior of North America. He was carried off by a band of these people when he was a little boy, from a settlement on the Ohio river, which was occupied by his father, who was a clergyman. The boy was brought up in all the rude habits of the Indians, and became inured to the abiding miseries and uncertain pleasures of their wandering life. He grew in time to be a most skilful huntsman, and carried on large dealings with the agents of the Hudson's Bay Company, in the skins of beavers and other animals which he and his associates had shot or en- trapped. The history of this man was altogether so curious, that he was induced to furnish the materials for a complete narrative of his adventures ; and, accordingly, a book, fully descriptive of them, was prepared for the press by Dr. Edwin James, and printed at New York, in 1830. It is of course not within the intent of our little work to furnish any regular abridgment of John Tanner's story ; but it is our wish to direct attention to some few particulars, which ap- pear to us strikingly to illustrate some of the positions which we desire to enforce, by thus exhibiting their practical operation. The country in which this man lived so many years is that immense territory belonging to the United States, which at that period was covered by boundless forests which the progress of civilization had not then cleared away. In 24 AMERICAN INDIANS. CHAP. III. this region a number of scattered Indian tribes maintained a precarious existence by hunting the moose-deer and the buffalo for their supply of food, and by entrapping the foxes and martens of the woods and the beavers of the lakes, whose skins they generally exchanged with the white traders of Europe for articles of urgent necessity, such as ammuni- tion and guns, traps, axes, and woollen blankets ; but too often for ardent spirits, equally the curse of savage and of civilized life. The contact of savage man with the out- skirts of civilization perhaps afflicts him with the vices of both states. But the principle of exchange, imperfectly and irregularly as it operated amongst the Indians, furnished some excitement to their ingenuity and their industry. Habits of providence were thus to a certain degree created ; it became necessary to accumulate some capital of the com- modities which could be rendered valuable by their own labour, to exchange for commodities which their own labour, without exchange, was utterly unable to procure. The prin- ciple of exchange, too, being recognised amongst them in their dealings with foreigners, the security of property without which, as we have shown, that principle cannot exist at all was one of the great rules of life amongst them- selves. But still these poor Indians, from the mode which they proposed to themselves for the attainment of property, which consisted only in securing what nature had produced, without directing the course of her productions, were very- far removed from the regular attainment of those blessings which civilized society alone offers. We shall exemplify these statements by a few details. The country over which these people ranged occupies a surface that may be roughly described as five or six times as large as all England. They had the unbounded command of all the natural resources of that country ; and yet their entire numbers did not equal the population of a moderately sized English county. It may be fairly said that each In- dian required a thousand acres for his maintenance. The supplies of food were so scanty -a scantiness which would at once have ceased to exist had there been any cultivation CHAP. III. AMERICAN INDIANS. 25 that if a large number of these Indians assembled together to co-operate in their hunting expeditions, they were very soon dispersed by the urgent desire of satisfying hunger. Tanner says, " We all went to hunt beavers in concert. In hunts of this kind the proceeds are sometimes equally di- vided ; but in this instance every man retained what he had killed. In three days I collected as many skins as I could carry. But in these distant and hasty hunts little meat could be brought in ; and the whole band was soon suffering with hunger. Many of the hunters, and I among others, for want of food became extremely weak, and unable to hunt far from home." What an approach is this to the case of the lower animals ; and how forcibly it reminds us of the passage in Job (c. iv., v. 11), " The fierce lion perisheth for lack of prey."* In another place he says, " I began to be dissatisfied at remaining with large bands of Indians, as was usual for them, after having remained a short time in a place, to suffer from hunger." These sufferings were not, The authorized version has old; the more correct translation is/. erce. 26 VICISSITUDES OF SAVAGE LIFE. CHAP. III. in many cases, of short duration, or of trifling intensity. Tanner describes one instance of famine in the following words : " The Indians gathered around, one after another, until we became a considerable band, and then we began to suffer from hunger. The weather was very severe, and our suffering increased. A young woman was the first to die of hunger. Soon after this, a young man, her brother, was taken with that kind of delirium or madness which precedes death in such as die of starvation. In this condition he had left the lodge of his debilitated and desponding parents ; and when, at a late hour in the evening, I returned from my hunt, they could not tell what had become of him. I left the camp about the middle of the night, and, following his track, I found him at some distance, lying dead in the snow." This worst species of suffering equally existed at par- ticular periods, whether food was sought for by large or by small parties, by bands or by individuals. Tanner was travelling with the family of the woman who had adopted him. He says, " We had now a short season of plenty ; but soon became hungry again. It often happened that for two or three days we had nothing to eat ; then a rabbit or two, or a bird, would afford us a prospect of protracting the suf- ferings of hunger a few days longer." Again he says, " Having subsisted for some time almost entirely on the inner bark of trees, and particularly of a climbing vine found there, our strength was much reduced." The misery which is thus so strikingly described pro- ceeded from the circumstance that the labour of the Indians did not take a profitable direction ; and that this waste of labour (for unprofitable applications of labour are the greatest of all wastes) arose from the one fact, that in certain particulars these Indians laboured without appro- priation. They depended upon the chance productions of nature, without compelling her to produce ; and they did not compel her to produce, because there was no appro- priation of the soil, the most efficient natural instrument of production. If the Indians had directed the productive powers of the earth to the growth of corn, instead of to the CHAP. Ill WANT OF DIVISION OF LABOUR. 27 growth of foxes' skins, they would have become rich. But they could not have reached this point without appropriation of the soil. They had learnt the necessity of appropriating the products of the soil, when they had bestowed labour upon obtaining them; but the last step towards pro- ductiveness was not taken. The Indians therefore were poor ; the European settlers who had taken this last step were rich. The imperfect appropriation which existed amongst the Indians, preventing, as it did, the accumulation of capital, prevented the application of that skill and knowledge which is preserved and accumulated by the Division of employment. Tanner describes a poor fellow who was wounded in the arm by the accidental discharge of a gun. As there was little surgical skill amongst the community, because no one could devote himself to the business of surgery, the Indian, as the only chance of saving his life, resolved to cut off his own arm ; " and taking two knives, the edge of one of which he had hacked into a sort of saw, he with his right hand and arm cut off his left, and threw it from him as far as he could." The labour which an individual must go through when the state of society is so rude that there is scarcely any division of employment, and consequently scarcely any exchanges, is exhibited in many passages of Tanner's narrative. "We select one. " I had no pukkavi, or mats for a lodge, and therefore had to build one of poles and long grass. I dressed more skins, made my own mocassins and leggings, and those for my children ; cut wood and cooked for myself and family, made my snow-shoes, &c. &c. All the attention and labour I had to bestow about home sometimes kept me from hunting, and I was occasionally distressed for want of provisions. I busied myself about my lodge in the night-time. "When it was sufficiently light I would bring wood, and attend to other things without ; at other times I was repairing my snow-shoes, or my own or my children's clothes. For nearly all the winter I slept but a very small part of the night," *28 WANT OF DIVISION OF LABOUR. CHAP. III. Tanner was thus obliged to do everything for himself, and consequently to work at very great disadvantage, because the principle of exchange was so imperfectly acted upon by the people amongst whom he lived. This principle of exchange was imperfectly acted upon, because the prin- ciple of appropriation was imperfectly acted upon. The occupation of all, and of each, was to hunt game, to prepare skins, to sell them to the traders, to make sugar from the juice of maple-trees, to build huts, and to sew the skins which they dressed and the blankets which they bought into rude coverings for their bodies. Every one of them did all of these things for himself, and of course he did them very imperfectly. The people were not divided into hunters, and furriers, and dealers, and sugar-makers, and builders, and tailors. Every man was his own hunter, furrier, dealer, sugar-maker, builder, and tailor; and con- sequently, every man, like Tanner, was so occupied by many things, that want of food and want of rest were ordinary sufferings. He describes a man who was so borne down and oppressed by these manifold wants, that, in utter despair of being able to surmount them, he would lie still till he was at the point of starvation, replying to those who tried to rouse him to kill game, that he was too poor and sick to set about it. By describing himself as poor, he meant to say that he was destitute of all the necessaries and comforts whose possession would encourage him to add to the store. He had little capital. The skill which he pos- sessed of hunting game gave him a certain command over the spontaneous productions of the forest ; but, as his power of hunting depended upon chance supplies of game, his labour necessarily took so irregular a direction, and was therefore so unproductive, that he never accumulated sufficient for his support in times of sickness, or for his comfortable support at any time. He became, therefore, despairing ; and had that perfect apathy, that indifference to the future, which is the most pitiable evidence of extreme wretchedness. This man felt his powerless situation more keenly than his companions; but with all savage tribes CHAP. III. IRREGULAR LABOUR. 29 there is a want of steady and persevering exertion, pro- ceeding from the same cause. Severe labour is succeeded by long fits of idleness, because their labour takes a chance direction. This is a universal case. Habits of idleness, of irregularity, of ferocity, are the characteristics of all those who maintain existence by the pursuit of the unappropriated productions of nature ; while constant application, orderly arrangement of time, and civility to others, result from systematic industry. The savage and the poacher are equally the slaves of violent impulses equally disgusted at the prospect of patient application. When the support of life depends upon chance supplies, the reckless spirit of a gambler is sure to take possession of the whole man ; and the misery which results from these chance supplies pro- duces either dejection or ferocity. The author of this book used to observe the habits of a class of such persons, who frequent the Thames at Eton ; and he thus described them in verses of his boyhood : What boat is this which creeps so lazily Up the still stream ? How quietly falls the drip Of the slow paddle ! Now it shoots along, As if that lone man fear'd us. Well I ken His rough and dangerous trade. He knows each hole Where the quick-sighted eel delights to swim When clouds obscure the moon ; and there he lays His traps and gins, and then he sleeps awhile ; But rouses up before the prying dawn Betrays his course ; and out he cautiously glides To try his doubtful luck. Perchance he finds Stores that may buy him bread ; but oft'ner still His toil is fruitless, and deject he comes Home to his emberless hearth, and sits him down, Idle and starving through the busy day. Mungo Park describes the wretched condition of the inha- bitants of countries in Africa where small particles of gold are found in the rivers. Their lives were spent in hunting for the gold to exchange for useful commodities, instead of raising the commodities themselves ; and they were conse- quently poor and miserable, listless and unsteady. Their fitful industry had too much of chance mixed up with it to aiford a certain and general profit. The accounts which of 30 INDIAN APPROPRIATION. CHAP. III. late years we have received from the gold-diggings of California and Australia exhibit the same suffering from the same cause. The natives of Cape de la Hogue, in Normandy, were the most wretched and ferocious people in all France, because they depended principally for support on the wrecks that were frequent on their coasts. When there were no tempests, they made an easy transition from the character of wreckers to that of robbers. A benefactor of his species taught these unhappy people to collect a marine plant to make potash. They immediate!} 7 " became profitable labourers and exchangers ; they obtained a pro- perty in the general intelligence of civilized life ; the capital of society raised them from misery to wealth, from being destroyers to being producers. The Indians, as we thus see, were poor .and wretched, because they had no appropriation beyond articles of domestic use ; because they had no property in land, and consequently no cultivation. Yet even they were not insensible to the importance of the principle, for the pre- servation of the few advantages that belonged to their course of life. Tanner says, " I have often known a hunter leave his traps for many days in the woods, without visiting them, or feeling any anxiety about their safety." The Indians even carried the principle of appropriation almost to a division of land ; for each tribe, and sometimes each individual, had an allotted hunting-ground imperfectly appropriated, indeed, by the first comer, and often contested with violence by other hunters, but still showing that they approached the limit which divides the savage from the civilized state, and that, if cultivation were introduced amongst them, there would be a division of land, as a matter of necessity. The security of individual property is the foundation of all social improvement. It is impossible to speak of the productive power of labour in the civilized state, without viewing it in connexion with that great principle of society which considers .all capital as appro- priated. When Capital and Labour ' was written twenty years CHAP. III. CONDITION OF AMERICAN INDIANS. ^ 31 ago, the Indian tribes who were abiding in the territory of the United States were principally in the condition which has been described by Tanner. The want of resources in the country of the Indians was so manifest, that, when com- missioners from the government of the United States, in 1802, gathered together the chiefs of the various tribes of the Creek Indians in their own country, to propose to them a plan for their civilization, it became necessary to provide for the support of the people so assembled by conveying food into the forests from the stores of the American towns. The Indians have now vanished from their old hunting- grounds. Where they so recently maintained a precarious existence, there are populous cities, navigable rivers, roads, railways. The clink of the hammer is heard in the forge, and the rush of the stream from the mill-dam tells of agri- culture and commerce. But even the Indians themselves have become labourers. They have been removed to a large tract of country, far away from the settled parts of the United States, and have been raised into the dignity of cul- tivators. The Cherokees, the Creeks, and the Choctaws, with many smaller tribes, now breed cattle instead of hunt- ing martens. They have houses in the place of huts ; they have schools and churches. Instead of being extirpated by famine or the sword, they have been adopted into the great family of civilized man. But this wise and humane arrangement of the United States has not wholly removed the Indians from the wide regions of North America. In the Hudson's Bay territories the life which Tanner described still goes forward. The wants of civilized society the desire to possess the earth have transported the Indians from the banks of the Ohio to the lands watered by the A rkansas. The opposite principle has retained them on the shores of Hudson's Bay. They are wanted there as hunters, and are not encouraged as culti- vators. They are kept out of the pale of civilization, and not received within it. The rude industry of the Hudson's Bay Indians is stimulated by the luxury of Europe into an employ w^hich would cease to exist if the people became 32 HUDSON'S BAY INDIANS. CHAP. III. civilized. If agriculture were introduced amongst them if they were to grow corn and keep domestic animals they would cease to be hunters of foxes and martens, because their wants would be much better supplied by other modes of labour, involving less suffering and less uncertainty. As it is, the traders, who want skins, do not think of giving the Indians tools to work the ground, and seeds to put in it, and cows and sheep to breed other cows and sheep. They avail themselves of the uncivilized state of these poor tribes, to render them the principal agents in the manufacture of fur, to supply the luxuries of another hemisphere. But still the exchange which the hunters carry on with the Euro- pean traders, imperfect as it is in all cases, and unjust as it is in many, is better for the Indians than no exchange ; although we fear that ardent spirits take away from the In- dians the greater number of the advantages which would otherwise remain with them as exchangers. If the Indians had no skins to give to Europe, Europe would have no blankets and ammunition to give to them. They would obtain their food and clothing by the use of the bow alone. They would live entirely from hand to mouth. They would have no motive for accumulation, because there would be no exchanges ; and they would consequently be even poorer and more helpless than they are now as exchangers of skins. They are suffering from the effects of small accumulations and imperfect exchange ; but these are far better than no accumulation and no exchange. If the course of their in- dustry were to be changed by perfect appropriation if they were consequently to become cultivators and manufacturers, instead of wanderers in the woods to hunt for wild and noxious animals they would, in the course of years, have abundance of profitable labour, because they would have abundance of capital. This is the better lot of the tribes with whom the government of the United States has made a far nobler treaty than Penn made with his Indians. As it is, their accumulations are so small, that they cannot proceed with their own uncertain labour of hunting without an ad- vance of capital on the part of the traders ; and thus, even CHAP. III. PEXX'S TREATY WITH THE IXDIAXS. 33 34 HUDSON'S BAY INDIANS. CHAP. in. in the rude tradings of these poor Indians, credit, that com- plicated instrument of commercial exchange, operates upon the direction of their labour. Of course credit would not exist at all without appropriation. Their rights of property are perfect as far as they go ; but they are not carried far enough to direct their labour into channels which would ensure sufficient production for the labourers. Their labour is unproductive because they have small accumulations ; their accumulations are small because they have imperfect exchange ; their exchange is imperfect because they have limited appropriation. We may illustrate this state of imperfect production by another passage from Tanner's story : " The Hudson's Bay Company had now no post in that part of the country, and the Indians were soon made con- scious of the advantage which had formerly resulted to them from the competition between rival trading companies. Mr. "Wells, at the commencement of winter, called us all together; gave the Indians a ten-gallon keg of rum and some tobacco, telling them at the same time he would not credit one of them the value of a single needle. When they brought skins he would buy them, and give in exchange such articles as were necessary for their comfort and subsistence during the winter. I was not with the Indians when this talk was held. "When it was reported to me, and a share of the presents offered me, I not only refused to accept any- thing, but reproached the Indians for their pusillanimity in submitting to such terms. They had been accustomed for many years to receive credits in the fall ; they were now en- tirely destitute not of clothing merely, but of ammunition, and.Qia5jy of vtherrn o guns and traps. How were they, without the accustomed aid from the traders, to subsist t,b,emspivjes and their, families during the ensuing winter ? A few days afterwards I went to Mr. "Wells, and told him that I was poor, with a large family to support by my own exertions ; and that I must unavoidably suffer, and perhaps perish, unless he would give me such a credit as I had always in the fall been accustomed to receive. He would CHAP. III. HUDSON S BAY INDIANS. 35 not listen to my representation, and told me roughly to be gone from his house. I then took eight silver beavers, such as are worn by the women as ornaments on their dress, and which I had purchased the year before at just twice the price that was commonly given for a capote ;* I laid them before him on the table, and asked him to give me a capote for them, or retain them as a pledge for the payment of the price of the garment, as soon as I could procure the peltries.t He took up the ornaments, threw them in my face, and told me never to come inside of his house again. The cold weather of the winter had not yet set in, and I went imme- diately to my hunting-ground, killed a number of moose, and set my wife to make the skins into such garments as were best adapted to the winter season, and which I now saw we should be compelled to substitute for the blankets and woollen clothes we had been accustomed to receive from the traders." This incident at once shows us that the great blessing of the civilized state is its increase of the powers of production. Here we see the Indians, surrounded on all sides by wild animals whose skins might be made into garments, reduced to the extremity of distress because the traders refused to advance them blankets and other necessaries, to be used during the months when they were employed in catching the animals from which they might obtain the skins. It is easy to see that the Indians were a long way removed from the power of making blankets themselves. Before they could reach this point, their forests must have been con- verted into pasture-grounds ; they must have raised flocks of sheep, and learnt all the various complicated arts, and possessed all the ingenious machinery, for converting wool into cloth. By their exchange of furs for blankets, they obtained a share in the productiveness of civilization ; they obtained comfortable clothing with much less labour than they could have made it out of the furs. If Tanner had not considered the capote which he desired to obtain from the traders, better, and less costly, than the garment * A sort of great-coat. f Skins. D 2 36 HUDSON'S BAY INDIANS. CHAP. HI. of moose-skins, he would not have earned on any exchange of the two articles with the traders. The skins of martens and foxes were only valuable to the Indians, without exchange, for the purpose of sewing together to make covering. They had a different value in Europe as articles of luxury ; and therefore the Indians by exchange obtained a greater plenty of superior clothing than if they had used the skins themselves. But the very nature of the trade, depending upon chance supplies, rendered it impossible that they should accumulate. They had such pressing deed of ammunition, traps, and blankets, that the produce of the labour of one hunting season was not more than sufficient to procure the commodities which they required to consume in the same season. But supposing the Indians could have bred foxes and martens and beavers, as we breed rabbits, for the supply of the European demand for fur, doubtless they would have then advanced many steps in the character of producers. The thing is perhaps impos- sible : but were it possible, and were the Indians to have practised it, they would immediately have become capitalists, to an extent that would have soon rendered them independent of the* credit of the traders. They must, however, have previously established a more perfect appropriation. Each must have enclosed his own hunting-ground; and each must have raised some food for the maintenance of his own stock of beavers, foxes, and martens. It would be easier, doubtless, to raise the food for themselves, and ultimately to exchange corn for clothing, instead of furs for clothing. When this happens and it will happen sooner or later, unless the remnant of the hunting Indians are extirpated by their poverty, which proceeds from their imperfect pro- duction Europe must go without the brilliant variety of skins which we procure at the cost of so much labour, accompanied with so much wretchedness, because the labour is so unproductive to the labourers. When the ladies of London and Paris are compelled to wear boas of rabbits instead of sables, and when the hair of the beaver ceases to be employed in the manufacture of our CHAP. III. HUDSON S BAY INDIANS. hats, the wooded regions of Hudson's Bay will have been cleared the fur-bearing animals will have perished corn will be growing in the forest and the marsh the inha- bitants will be building houses instead of trapping foxes ; there will be appropriation and capital, profitable labour and comfort. Three hundred thousand mink and marten- skins will no longer be sent from those shores to London in one year ; but Liverpool may send to those shores woven cottons and worsteds, pottery and tools, in exchange for products whose cultivation will have exterminated the minks and martens. Pine-Marten. 38 THE PRODIGAL. CHAP. IV. CHAPTEE IV. The Prodigal Advantages of the poorest man in civilized life over the richest savage Savings-banks, deposits, and interest Progress of accumulation Insecurity of capital, its causes and results Property, its constituents Accumulation of capital. THERE is an account in Foster's Essays of a man who, having by a short career of boundless extravagance dissi- pated every shilling of a large estate which he inherited from his fathers, obtained possession again of the whole property by a course which the writer well describes as a singular illustration of decision of character. The unfor- tunate prodigal, driven forth from the home of his early years by his own imprudence, and reduced to absolute want, wandered about for some time in a state of almost unconscious despair, meditating self-destruction, till he at last sat down upon a hill which overlooked the fertile fields that he onoe called his own. " He remained," says the narrative, " fixed in thought a number of hours, at the end of which he sprang from the ground with a vehement exulting emotion. He had formed his resolution, which was, that all these estates should be his again ; he had formed his plan, too, which he instantly began to execute." We shall show, by and by, how this plan worked in detail; it will be suflicient, just now, to examine the principles upon which it was founded. He looked to no freak of fortune to throw into his lap by chance what he had cast from him by wilfulness. He neither trusted to inherit those lands from their present possessor by his favour, nor to wring them from him by a course of law. He was not rash and foolish enough to dream of obtaining again by force those possessions which he had exchanged CHAP. IV. THE PRODIGAL. 39 for vain superfluities. But lie resolved to become once more their master by the operation of the only principle which could give them to him in a civilized society. He resolved to obtain them again by the same agency through which he had lost them by exchange. But what had he to exchange ? His capital was gone, even to the uttermost farthing ; he must labour to obtain new capital. "With a courage worthy of imitation he resolved to accept the very- first work that should be offered to him, and, however low the wages of that work, to spend only a part of those wages, leaving something for a store. The day that he made this resolution he carried it into execution. He found some service to be performed irksome, doubtless, and in many eyes degrading. But he had a purpose which made every occupation appear honourable, as every occupa- tion truly is that is productive of utility. Incessant labour and scrupulous parsimony soon accumulated for him a capital ; and the store, gathered together with such energy, was a rapidly increasing one. In no very great number of years- the once destitute labourer was again a rich pro- prietor. He had earned again all that he had lost. The lands of his fathers were again his. He had accomplished his plan. A man so circumstanced one who possesses no capital, and is only master of his own natural powers if suddenly thrown down from a condition of ease, must look upon the world, at the first view, with deep apprehension. He sees everything around him appropriated. He is in the very opposite condition of Alexander Selkirk, when he is made to exclaim "I am monarch of all I survey." Instead of feeling that his " right there is none to dispute," he knows that every blade of corn that covers the fields, every animal that grazes in the pastures, is equally numbered as the property of some individual owner, and can only pass into his possession by exchange. In the towns it is the same as in the country. The dealer in bread and in clothes, the victualler from whom he would ask a cup of beer and a night's lodging, will give him nothing, although they 40 ADVANTAGES OF CIVILIZATION. CHAP. IV. will exchange everything. He cannot exist, except as a beggar, unless he puts himself in the condition to become an exchanger. But still, with all these apparent difficulties, his prospects of subsisting, and of subsisting comfortably, are far greater than in any other situation in which he must labour to live. As we have already seen, the condition of by far the greater number of the millions that constitute the exchangers of civilized society is greatly superior to that of the few thousands who exist upon the precarious supplies of the unappropriated productions of nature in the savage life. Although an exchange must always be made although in very few cases " the fowl and the brute " offer themselves to the wayfaring man for his daily food although no herbs worth the gathering can be found for the support of life in the few uncultivated parts of a highly cultivated country the aggregate riches are so abundant, and the facilities which exist for exchanging capital for labour are therefore so manifold, that the poorest man in a state of civilization has a much greater certainty of supplying all his wants, and of supplying them with considerably more ease, than the richest man in a state of uncivilization. The principle upon which he has to rely is, that in a highly civilized country there is large production. There is large production because there is profitable labour ; there is profitable labour because there is large accumulation; there is large accumulation because there is unlimited exchange ; there is unlimited exchange because there is universal appropriation. John Tanner was accounted a rich man by the Indians doubtless because he was more industrious than the greater number of them ; but we have seen what privations he often suffered. He suffered priva- tions because there was no capital, no accumulation of the products of labour, in the country in which he lived. Where such a store exists, the poorest man has a tolerable certainty that he may obtain his share of it as an ex- changer ; and the greater the store the greater the certainty that his labour, or power of adding to the store, will CHAP. IV. SAVINGS-BANKS. 41 obtain a full proportion of what previous labour has gathered together. In 1853 the amount of stock vested to the account of depositors in savings-banks in the United Kingdom was 34,546,434?. Since the establishment of savings-banks, 68,885,283?. had been so invested; and the gross amount of interest paid to the depositors had been 25,733,771?. This large capital, which had so fructified as to produce more than twenty-five millions as interest, was an accumu- lation, penny by penny, shilling by shilling, and pound by pound, of the savings of that class of persons who, in every country, have the greatest difficulty in accumulating. Habitual efforts of self-denial, and a rigid determination to postpone temporary gratification to permanent good, could alone have enabled these accumulators to retain so much of what they had produced beyond the amount of what they consumed. The capital sum of more than thirty-four millions now belonging to the depositors in 575 savings-banks, repre- sents as many products of industiy as could be bought by that sum. It is a capital which remains for the encourage- ment of productive consumption ; that is, it is now applied as a fund for setting others to produce, to enable them to consume while they produce, and in like manner to accu- mulate some part of their productions beyond what they consume. The millions of interest which the depositors have received is the price paid for the use of the capital by others who require its employment. The whole amount of our national riches the capital of this and of every other country has been formed by the same slow but certain process of individual savings, and the accumulations of savings, stimulating new industry, and yielding new accu- mulations. The consumption of any production is the destruction of its value. The production was created by industry to ad- minister to individual wants, to be consumed, to be de- stroyed. When a thing capable of being consumed is produced, a value is created ; when it is consumed, that 42 FEATURES OF ACCUMULATION CHAP. IV. value is destroyed. The general mass of riches then remains the same as it was before that production took place. If the power to produce, and the disposition to consume, were equal and constant, there could be no saving, no accumulation, no capital. If mankind, by their intelligence, their skill, their division of employments, their union of forces, had not put themselves in a condition to produce more than is consumed while the great body of industrious undertakings is in progress, society would have been stationary, civilization could never have ad- vanced. It may assist us in making the value of capital more clear, if we take a rapid view of the most obvious features of the accumulation of a highly civilized country. The first operation in a newly settled country is what is termed to clear it. Look at a civilized country, such as England. It 'is cleared. The encumbering woods are cut down, the unhealthy marshes are drained. The noxious animals which were once the principal inhabitants of the land are exterminated ; and their place is supplied with useful creatures, bred, nourished, and domesticated by human art, and multiplied to an extent exactly proportioned to the wants of the population. Forests remain for the produce of timber, but they are confined within the limits of their utility; mountains "where the nibbling flocks do stray," have ceased to be barriers between nations and dis- tricts. Every vegetable that the diligence of man has been able to transplant from the most distant regions is raised for food. The fields are producing a provision for the coming year ; while the stock for immediate consumption is ample, and the laws of demand and supply are so. per- fectly in action, and the facilities of communication with every region so unimpeded, that scarcity seldom occurs, and famine never. Rivers have been narrowed to bounds which limit their inundations, and they have been made t navigable wherever their navigation could be profitable. The country is covered with roads, with canals, and now, more especially, with railroads, which render distant pro- CHAP. IV. IX A CIVILIZED COUNTRY. 43 vinces as near to each other for commercial purposes as neighbouring villages in less advanced countries. Science has created the electric telegraph, by which prices are equalized through every district, by an instant communica- tion between producers and consumers. Houses, all pos- sessing some comforts which were unknown even to the rich a few centuries ago, cover the land, in scattered farm- houses and mansions, in villages, in towns, in cities, in capitals. These houses are filled with an almost incon- ceivable number of conveniences and luxuries furniture, glass, porcelain, plate, linen, clothes, books, pictures. In the stores of the merchants and traders the resources of human ingenuity are displayed in every variety of sub- stances and forms that can exhibit the multitude of civilized wants ; and in the manufactories are seen the wonderful adaptations of science for satisfying those wants at the cheapest cost. The people who inhabit such a civilized land have not only the readiest communication with each other by the means of roads and canals, but can trade by the agency of ships with all parts of the world. To carry on their intercourse amongst themselves they speak one common language, reduced to certain rules, and not broken into an embarrassing variety of unintelligible dialects. Their written communications are conveyed to the obscurest corners of their own country, and even to the most remote lands, with prompt and unfailing regularity, and now with a cheapness which makes the poorest and the richest equal in their power to connect the distant with their thoughts by mutual correspondence. Whatever is transacted in such a populous hive, the knowledge of which can afford profit or amusement to the community, is recorded with a rapidity which is not more astonishing than the general accuracy of the record. "What is more important, the discoveries of science, the elegancies of literature, and all that can advance the general intelligence, are preserved and diffused with the utmost ease, expedition, and security, so that the public stock of knowledge is constantly increasing. Lastly, the general well-being of all is sustained by laws sometimes 44 LAWS OF EXCHANGE. CHAP. IV indeed imperfectly devised and expensively administered, but on the whole of infinite value to every member of the community ; and the property of all is defended from ex- ternal invasion and from internal anarchy by the power of government, which will be respected only in proportion as it advances the general good of the humblest of its subjects, by securing their capital from plunder and defending their industry from oppression. This capital is ready to be won by the power of every man capable of work. But he must exercise this power in com- plete subjection to the natural laws by which every exchange of society is regulated. These laws sometimes prevent labour being instantly exchanged with capital, for an exchange necessarily requires a balance to be preserved between what one man has to supply and what another man has to demand ; but in their general effect they secure to labour the certainty that there shall be abundance of capital to exchange with ; and that, if prudence and diligence go to- gether, the labourer may himself become a capitalist, and even pass out of the condition of a labourer into that of a proprietor, or one who lives upon accumulated produce. The experience of every day shows this process going for- ward not in a solitary instance, as in that of the ruined and restored man whose tale we have just told, but in the case of thriving tradesmen all around us, who were once servants. But if the labourer or the great body of la- bourers were to imagine that they could obtain such a proportion of the capital of a civilized countiy except as exchangers, the store would instantly vanish. They might perhaps divide by force the crops in barns and the clothes in warehouses but there would be no more crops or clothes. The principle upon which all accumulation de- pends, that of security of property, being destroyed, the accumulation would be destroyed. "Whatever tends to make the state of society insecure, tends to prevent the employ- ment of capital. In despotic countries, that insecurity is produced by the tyranny of one. In other countries, where the people, having been misgoverned, are badly educated, CHAP. IV. INSECURITY OF PROPERTY IN THE EAST. 45 that insecurity is produced by the tyranny of many. In either case, the bulk of the people themselves are the first to suffer, whether by the outrages of a tyrant, or by their own outrages. They prevent labour, by driving away to other channels the funds which support labour. In some eastern countries, where, when a man becomes rich, his property is seized upon by the one tyrant, nobody dares to avow that he has any property. Capital is not employed ; it is hidden : and the people who have capital live not upon its profits, but by the diminution of the capital itself. In the very earliest times we hear of concealed riches. In the book of Job those who " long for death " are said to " dig for it more than for hid treasures." The tales of the East are full of allusions to money buried and money dug up. The poor Treasure-finding. 46 HIDDEN TREASURES. CHAP. IV. woodman, in making up his miserable faggot, discovers a trap-door, and becomes rich. In India, where the rule of Mohammedan princes was usually one of tyranny, even now the search after treasure goes on. The popular mind is filled with the old traditions ; and so men dream of bags of gold to be discovered in caves and places of desolation, and they forthwith dig, till hope is banished, and the real trea- sure is found in systematic industry. It was the same in the feudal times in England, when the lord tyrannized over his vassals, and no property was safe but in the hands of the strongest. In those times people who had treasure buried it. Who thinks of burying treasure now in England ? In the plays and story-books which depict the manners of our own early times, we constantly read of people finding bags of money. We never find bags of money now, except when a very old hoard, hidden in some time of national trouble, comes to light. So little time ago as the reign of Charles II. we read of the Secretary to the Admiralty going down from London to his country-house, with all his money in his car- riage, to bury it in his garden. What Samuel Pepys records of his doings with his own money, was a natural conse- quence of the practices of a previous time. He also chro- nicles, in several places of his curious Diary, his laborious searches, day by day, for 7000/. hid in butter fit-kins in the cellars of the Tower of London. Why is money not hidden and not sought for now ? Because people have security for the employment of it, and by the employment of it in creating new produce the nation's stock of capital goes on hourly increasing. When we read in Blackstone's ' Commentaries on the Laws of England,' that the concealment of treasure- trove, or found treasure, from the king, is a misdemeanour punishable by fine and imprisonment, and that it was formerly a capital offence, we at once see that this is a law no longer for our time ; and we learn from this instance, as from many others, how the progress of civilization silently repeals laws which belong to another condition of the people. When we look at the nature of the accumulated wealth CHAP. IV. PROGRESS OF ACCUMULATION. 47 of society, it is easy to see that the poorest member of it who dedicates himself to profitable labour is in a certain sense rich rich, as compared with the unproductive and therefore poor individuals of any uncivilized tribe. The very scaffolding, if we may so express it, of the social struc- ture, and the moral forces by which that structure was reared, and is upheld, are to him riches. To be rich is to possess the means of supplying our wants to be poor is to be destitute of those means. Riches do not consist only of money and lands, of stores of food or clothing, of machines and tools. The particular knowledge of any art the general understanding of the laws of nature the habit from expe- rience of doing any work in the readiest way the facility of communicating ideas by written language the enjoy- ment of institutions conceived in the spirit of social im- provement the use of the general conveniences of civilized life, such as roads these advantages, which the poorest man in England possesses or may possess, constitute indi- vidual property. They are means for the supply of wants, which in themselves are essentially more valuable for obtaining his full share of what is appropriated, than if all the productive powers of nature were unappropriated, and if, consequently, these great elements of civilization did not exist. Society obtains its almost unlimited command over riches by the increase and preservation of knowledge, and by the division of employments, including union of power. In his double capacity of a consumer and a pro- ducer, the humblest man has the full benefit of these means of wealth of these great instruments by which the produc- tive power of labour is carried to its highest point. But if these common advantages, these public means of society, offering so many important agents to the individual for the gratification of his wants, alone are worth more to him than all the precarious power of the savage state how incomparably greater are his advantages when we consider the wonderful accumulations, in the form of private wealth, which are ready to be exchanged with the labour of all those who are in a condition to add to the store. It has been truly 48 PROGRESS OF ACCUMULATION. CHAP. IV. said by M. Say, a French economist, " It is a great misfor- tune to be poor, but it is a much greater misfortune for the poor man to be surrounded only with other poor like him- self." The reason is obvious. The productive power of labour can be carried but a very little way without accumu- lation of capital. In a highly civilized country, capital is heaped up on every side by ages of toil and perseverance. A succession, during a long series of years, of small advan- tages to individuals unceasingly renewed and carried forward by the principle of exchanges, has produced this prodigious amount of the aggregate capital of a country whose civiliza- tion is of ancient date. This accumulation of the means of existence, and of all that makes existence comfortable, is principally resulting from the labours of those who have gone before us. It is a stock which was beyond their own immediate wants, and which was not extinguished with their lives. It is our capital. It has been produced by labour alone, physical and mental. It can be kept up only by the same power which has created it, carried to the highest point of productiveness by the arrangements of society. CHAP. V. INTERESTS OF CAPITAL AND LABOUR. 49 CHAPTEE V. Common interests of Capital and Labour Labour directed by Accumulation Capital enhanced by Labour Balance of rights and duties Relation of demand and supply Money exchanges Intrinsic and representative value of money. THERE is an old proverb, that " When two men ride on one horse, one man must ride behind." Capital and Labour are, as we think, destined to perform a journey together to the end of time. We have shown how they proceed on this journey. We have shown that, although Labour is* the parent of all wealth, its struggles for the conversion of the rude supplies of nature into objects of utility are most feeble in their effects till they are assisted by accumulation. Before the joint interests of Labour and Capital were at all understood, they kept separate ; when they only began to be understood, as we shall show, they were constantly pulling different ways, instead of giving " a long pull, a strong pull, and a pull altogether ;" and even now, when these interests in many respects are still imperfectly under- stood, they occasionally quarrel about the conditions upon which they will continue to travel in company. In the very outset of the journey, Labour, doubtless, took the lead. In the dim morning of society Labour was up and stirring before Capital was awake. Labour did not then ride ; he travelled slowly on foot through very dirty ways. Capital, at length, as slowly followed after, through the same mire, but at an humble distance from his parent. But when Capital grew into strength, he saw that there were quicker and more agreeable modes of travelling for both than labour had found out. He procured that fleet and untiring horse Exchange ; and when he proposed to Labour that they 50 FIRST STEPS TOWARDS PRODUCTION. CHAP. V. should mount together, he claimed the right, and kept it, for their mutual benefit, of taking the direction of the horse. For this reason, as it appears to us, we are called upon to assign to one of the companions, according to the practice of the old Knights Templars, the privilege of sitting before the other holding the reins, indeed, but in all respects having a community of interests, and an equality of duties, as well as rights, with his fellow- traveller. Let us endeavour to advance another step in the illustra- tion of these positions, by going back to the prodigal who had spent all his substance. Let us survey him at the moment when he had made the wise, and in many respects heroic, resolution to pass from the condition of a consumer into that of a producer. The story says, " The first thing that drew his attention was a heap of coals shot out of a oart on the pavement before a house. He offered himself to shovel or wheel them into the place where they were to be laid, and was employed." Here, then, we see that the labour of this man was wholly and imperatively directed by accumulation. It was directed as absolutely by the accumulation of others as the labour of Dampier's Moskito Indian was directed by his own accumulation. The Indian could not labour profitably he could not obtain fish and goats for his food, instead of seal's flesh till he had called into action the power which he possessed in his knife and his gun-barrel. The prodigal had no accumulation whatever of his own. He had not even the accumulation of peculiar skill in any mode of labour ; for a continual process of waste enlarges neither the mental nor physical faculties, and generally leaves the wretched being who has to pass into the new condition of a producer as helpless as the weakest child. He had nothing but the lowest power, of labouring without peculiar knowledge or skill. He had, however, an intensity and consistency of purpose which raised this humble power into real strength. He was determined never to go backward always to go on. He knew, too, his duties as well as his rights; and he saw CHAP. V. VALUE OF MONEY EXCHANGES. 51 that he must wholly accommodate his power to the greater power which was in action around him. "When he passed into the condition of a producer, he saw that his powers and rights were wholly limited and directed by the prin- ciples necessary to advance production ; and that his own share of what he assisted in producing must be measured by the laws which enabled him to produce at all. He found himself in a position where his labour was absolutely governed by the system of exchanges. No other system could operate around him, because he was in a civilized country. Had he been thrown upon a desert land without food and shelter, his labour must have been instantly and directly applied to procuring food and shelter. He was equally without food and shelter in a civilized country. But the system of exchanges being in action, he did not apply his labour directly to the production of food and lodging for himself. He added by his labour a new value to a heap of coals ; he enabled another man more readily to acquire the means of warmth ; and by this service, which he exchanged for " a few pence " and " a small gratuity of meat and drink," he indirectly obtained food and lodging. He conferred -an additional value upon a heap of coals; and that additional value was represented by the "few pence " and " a small gratuity of meat and drink." Had the system of exchange been less advanced, that is, had society been less civilized, he would probably have ex- changed his labour for some object of utility, by another and a ruder mode. He would have received a portion of the coals as the price of the labour by which he gave an additional value to the whole heap. But mark the incon- venience of such a mode of exchange. His first want was food ; his next, shelter : had he earned the coals, he must have carried them about till he had found some other person ready to exchange food and lodging for coals. Such an occurrence might have happened, but it would have been a lucky accident. He could find all persons ready to exchange food and clothes for money because money was ready again to exchange for other articles of utility which E 2 52 ILLUSTRATION OF INCREASED VALUE CHAP. V. they might require, and which they would more readily obtain by the money than by the food and clothes which our labourer had received for them. During the course of the unprofitable labour of waiting till he had found an exchanger who wanted coals, he might have perished. What then gave him the means of profitable labour, and furnished him with an article which every one was ready to receive in exchange for articles of immediate necessity ? Capital in two forms. The heap of coals was capital. The coals represented a very great and various accumulation of former labour that had been employed in giving them value. The coals were altogether valueless till labour had been employed to raise them from the pit, and to convey them to the door of the man who was about to consume them. But with what various helps had this labour worked I Mere manual labour could have done little or nothing with the coals in the pit. Machines had raised them from the pit. Machines had transported them from the pit to the door of the consumer. They would have remained buried in the earth but for large accumulations of knowledge, and large accumulations of pecuniaiy wealth to set that knowledge in action by exchanging with it. The heap of coals represented all this accumulation ; and it more immediately represented the Circulating Capital of consumable articles of utility, which had been paid in the shape of wages, at every stage of the labour exercised in raising the coals from the mine, and conveying them to the spot in which the prodigal found them laid. The coals had almost attained their highest value by a succession of labour ; but one labour was still wanting to give them the highest value. They were at their lowest value when they remained unbroken in the coal-pit ; they were at their highest value when they were deposited in the cellar of the consumer. For that last labour there was circu- lating capital ready to be exchanged. The man whose course of production we have been tracing imparted to them this last value, and for this labour he received a " few pence " and a " gratuity of meat and drink." These CHAP. V. CONFERRED BY LABOUR. 53 consumable commodities, and the money which might be exchanged for other consumable commodities, were circu- lating capital. They supplied his most pressing wants with incomparably more readiness and certainty than if he had been turned loose amongst the unappropriated pro- ductions of nature, with unlimited freedom and absolute rights. In the state in which he was actually placed his rights were limited by his duties, but this balance of rights and duties was the chief instrument in the satisfaction of his wants. Let us examine the principle a little more in detail. An exchange was to be carried on between the owner of the coals and the man who was willing to shovel them into the owner's cellar. The labourer did not want any distinct portion of the coals, but he wanted some articles of more urgent necessity in exchange for the new value which he was ready to bestow upon the coals. The object of each exchanger was, that labour should be exchanged with capital. That object could not have been accomplished, or it would have been accomplished slowly, imperfectly, and therefore unprofitably, unless there had been interchange- able freedom and security for both exchangers, for the exchanger of capital, and the exchanger of labour. The first right of the labourer was, that his labour should be free ; the first right of the capitalist was, that his capital should be free. The rights of each were built upon the se- curity of property. Could this security have been violated, it might have happened, either that the labourer should have been compelled to shovel in the coals or, that the capitalist should have been compelled to employ the la- bourer to shovel them in. Had the lot of the unfortunate prodigal been cast in such a state of society as would have allowed this violation of the natural rights of the labourer and the capitalist, he would have found little accumulation to give a profitable direction to his labour. He would have found production suspended, or languishing. There would probably have been no heap of coals wanting his labour to give them the last value ; for the engines would have been 54 DEMAND AND SUPPLY. CHAP. V. idle that raised them from the pit, and the men would have been idle that directed the engines. The circulating capital that found wages for the men, and fuel for the engines, would have been idle, because it could not have worked with security. Accumulation, therefore, would have been suspended ; and all profitable labour would, in conse- quence, have been suspended. It was the unquestionable right of the labourer that his labour should be free ; but it was balanced by the right of the capitalist that his accumu- lation should be secure. Could the labour have seized upon the capital, or the capital upon the labour, production would have been stopped altogether, or in part. The mutual free- dom and security of labour and capital compel production to go forward ; and labour and capital take their respective stations, and perform their respective duties, altogether with reference to the laws which govern production. These laws are founded upon the natural action of the system of exchange, carrying forward all its operations by the natural action of the great principle of demand and supply. When capital and labour know how to accommodate themselves to the direction of these natural laws, they are in a healthy state with respect to their individual rights, and the rights of industry generally. They are in that state in which each is working to the greatest profit in carrying forward the business of production. The story of the prodigal goes on to say, " He then looked out for the next thing that might chance to offer ; and went with indefatigable industry threugh a succession of servile employments, in different places, of longer and shorter du- ration." Here we see the principle of Demand and Supply still in active operation. " He looked out for the next thing that might chance to offer." He was ready with his supply of labour immediately that he saw a demand for it. Doubt- less, the " indefatigable industry" with which he was ready with his supply created a demand, and thus he had in some degree a control over the demand. But in most cases the demand went before the supply, and he had thus to watch and wait upon the demand. In many instances demand and CHAP. V. DEMAND AND SUPPLY. 55 supply exercise a joint influence and control, each with re- gard to the other. Pliny, the Roman naturalist, relates that in the year 454 of the building of Rome (300 years before Christ) a number of barbers came over from Sicily to shave the Romans, who till that time had worn long beards. But the barbers came in consequence of being sent for by a man in authority. The demand here distinctly went before the supply ; but the supply, doubtless, acted greatly upon the demand. During a time of wild financial speculation in Paris, created by what is called the Mississippi bubble, a hump-backed man went daily into the street 'where the stock-jobbers were accustomed to assemble, and earned money by allowing them to sign their contracts upon the natural desk with which he was encumbered. The hump- back was doubtless a shrewd fellow, and saw the difficulty under which the stock-jobbers laboured. He supplied what they appeared to want ; and a demand was instantly created for his hump. He was well paid, says the story. That was because the supply was smaller than the demand. If other men with humps had been attracted by the demand, or if persons had come to the street with portable desks more convenient than the hump, the reward of his service would naturally have become less. He must have yielded to the inevitable law by which the amount of circulating capital, as compared with the number of labourers, prescribes the terms upon which capital and labour are united. By following the direction which capital gave to his in- dustry, the prodigal, whos^ course we have traced up to the point when he went into the condition of a labourer, became at length a capitalist. " He had gained, after a considerable time, money enough to purchase, in order to sell again, a few cattle, of which he had taken pains to understand the value. He speedily, but cautiously, turned his first gains into second advantages ; retained, without a single deviation, his extreme parsimony ; and thus advanced by degrees into larger transactions and incipient wealth. The final result was that he more than recovered his lost possessions, and died an inveterate miser, worth 60,000/." 56 EXCHANGE OF LABOUR FOR CAPITAL. CHAP. V. He gained "money," and he "purchased" cattle. In the simple transaction which has been recorded of the first exchange of the prodigal's labour for capital, we find the circumstances which represent every exchange of labour for capital. The prodigal wanted meat and drink, and he gave labour in exchange for meat and drink ; the capitalist wanted the produce of labour he wanted a new value be- stowed upon his coals by labour and he gave meat and drink in exchange for the labour which the prodigal had to give. But the prodigal wanted something beyond the meat and drink which was necessary for the supply of the day. He had other immediate necessities beyond food ; and he had determined to accumulate capital. He therefore re- quired "a few pence" in addition to the "meat and drink." The capitalist held that the labour performed had conferred a value upon his property, which would be fairly exchanged for the pence in addition to the food, and he gave, therefore, in exchange, that portion of his capital which was represented by the money and by the food. This blending of one sort of consumable commodity, and of the money which represented any other consumable commo- dity which the money could be exchanged with, was an ac- cident arising out of the peculiar circumstances in which the prodigal happened to be placed. In ordinary cases he would have received the money alone, that is, he would have received a larger sum of money to enable him to ex- change for meat and drink, instead of receiving them in direct payment. It is clear, therefore, that as the money represented one portion of the consumable commodities which were ready to pay for the labour employed in giving a new value to the cpals, it might represent another portion the meat, for instance, without the drink ; or it might represent all the consumable commodities, meat, drink, lodging, clothes, fuel, which that particular labourer might want ; and even represent the accumulation which he might extract out of his self-denial as to the amount of meat, drink, lodging, clothes, and fuel which he might require as a consumer ; and the farthing saved out of CHAP. V. IMPERFECT EXCHANGE. 57 his money-payment might be the nest-egg which was to produce the increase out of which he purchased cattle, and died a rich miser. We may be excused for calling attention to the fact, which is a very obvious one, that if the labourer, whose story we have told, had received a portion of the coals upon which he had conferred a new value in exchange for the labour which produced that value, he would have been paid in a way very unfavourable for production. It would have required a new labour before the coals could have procured him the meat, and drink, and lodging of which he had an instant want ; and he therefore must have received a larger portion of coals to compensate for his new labour, or other- wise his labour must have been worse paid. There would have been unprofitable labour, whose loss must have fallen somewhere, either upon the capitalist or the labourer in the first instance, but upon both ultimately, because there would have been less production. All the unprofitable la- bour employed in bringing the exchange of the first labour for capital to maturity would have been so much power withdrawn from the efficiency of the next labour to be per- formed ; and therefore production would have been impeded to the extent of that unprofitable labour. The same thing would have happened if, advancing a step forward in the science of exchange, the labourer had received an entire payment in meat and drink, instead of a portion of the coals, which he could have exchanged for meat and drink. Wanting lodging, he wou^d have had to seek a person who wanted meat and drink in exchange for lodging, before he could have obtained lodging. But he had a few pence, he had money. He had a commodity to exchange that he might divide and subdivide as long as he pleased, whilst he was carrying on an exchange, that is, he might obtain as much lodging as he required for an equivalent portion of his money. If he kept his money, it would not injure by keeping as the food would. He might carry it from place to place more easily than he could carry the food. He would have a commodity to exchange, whose value could not be 58 INTRINSIC AND REPRESENTATIVE CHAP. V. made matter of dispute, as the value of meat and drink would unquestionably have been. This commodity would represent the same value, with little variation, whether he kept it a day, or a week, or a month, or a year ; and there- fore would be the only commodity whose retention would advance his design of accumulating capital with certainty and steadiness. It is evident that a commodity possessing all these advantages must have some intrinsic qualities which all exchangers would recognise that it must be a standard of value at once a commodity possessing real value, and a measure of all other values. This commodity exists in all commercial or exchanging nations in the shape of coined metal. The metal itself possesses a real value, which represents the labour employed in producing it; and, in the shape of coin, represents also a measure of other value, because the value of the coin has been determined by the sanction of some authority which all admit. That authority is most conveniently expressed by a Government, as the representative of the aggregate power of society. The metal itself, unless in the shape of coined money, would not re- present a definite value ; because the metal might be depre- ciated in value by the admixture of baser or inferior metals, unless it bore the impress of authority to determine its value. The exchangers of the metal for other articles of utility could not, without great loss of labour, be constantly employed in reducing it to the test of value, even if they had the knowledge requisite for so ascertaining its value. It used to cost 1000Z. a year to the Bank of England for the wages of those who weighed the gold coin brought to the Bank ; and it has been estimated that 30,000 sovereigns pass over the Bank counter daily. A machine is now used at the Bank, which separates the full-weight sovereigns and the light ones, at the rate of 10,000 an hour. In Greece a piece of gold in the rude times was stamped with the figure of an ox, to indicate that it would exchange for an ox. In modern England, a piece of gold, called a sovereign, repre- sents a certain weight in gold uncoined, and the Govern- ment stamp indicates its purity; whilst the perpetual CHAP. V. VALUE OF MONEY. 59 separation of the light sovereigns from those of full-weight affords a secnrity that very few light ones are in general circulation. A sovereign purchases so many pounds weight of an ox, and a whole ox purchases so many sovereigns. The great use of the coined metal is to save labour in ex- changing the ox for other commodities. The money pur- chases the ox, and a portion of the ox again purchases some other commodity i such as a loaf of bread from the baker, who obtains a portion of the ox through the medium of the money, which is a standard of value between the bread and the beef. Our great poetical satirist, Pope, in con- ducting his invective against the private avarice and poli- tical corruption of his day, imagines a state of things in which, money and credit being abolished, ministers would bribe and be bribed in kind. It is a true picture of what would be universal, if the exchanges of men resolved themselves into barter : " A statesman's slumbers how this speech would spoil ! ' Sir, Spain has sent a thousand jars of oil ; Huge bales of British cloth blockade the doov ; A hundred oxen at your levee roar.' " 60 IMPORTANCE OF CAPITAL. CHAP. VI. CHAPTEE VI. Importance of capital to the profitable employment of labour Contrast between the prodigal and the prudent man : the Dukes of Buckingham and Bridgewater Making good for trade Unprofitable consumption War against capital in the middle ages Evils of corporate privileges Condition of the people under Henry VIII. IF we have succeeded in making our meaning clear, by stating a general truth, not in an abstract form, but as brought out by various instances of the modes in which it is exhibited, we shall have led the reader to the conclusion that accumulation, or capital, is absolutely essential to the profitable employment of labour ; and that the greater the accumulation the greater the extent of that profitable em- ployment. This truth, however, has been denied altoge- ther by some speculative writers; and, what is more important, has been practically denied by the conduct of nations and individuals in the earlier state of society, and is still denied by existing prejudices, derived from the current maxims of former days of ignorance and half- knowledge. With the speculative writers we have little to do. When Rousseau, for instance, advises governments not to secure property to its possessors, but to deprive them of all means of accumulating, it is sufficient to know that the same writer advocated the savage state, in which there should be no property, in preference to the social, which is founded on appropriation. Knowing this, and being convinced that the savage state, even with imperfect appropriation, is one of extreme wretchedness, we may safely leave such opinions to work their own cure. For it is not likely that any individual, however disposed to think that accumulation is an evil, would desire, by de- CHAP. VI, THE PRODIGAL AND THE PRUDENT MAN. 61 stroying accumulation, to pass into the condition, described by John Tanner, of a constant encounter with hunger in its most terrific forms : and seing, therefore, the fallacy of such an opinion, he will also see that, if he partially destroys accumulation, he equally impedes production, and equally destroys his share in the productive power of capital and labour working together for a common good in the social state. But, without going the length of wishing to destroy capital, there are many who think that accumulation is a positive evil, and that consumption is a positive benefit ; and, therefore, that economy is an evil, and waste a bene- fit. The course of a prodigal man is by many still viewed with considerable admiration. He sits up all night in frantic riot he consumes whatever can stimulate his sa- tiated appetite he is waited upon by a crowd of unproduc- tive and equally riotous retainers he breaks and destroys everything around him with an unsparing hand he rides his horses to death in the most extravagant attempts to wrestle with time and space ; and when he has spent all his substance in these excesses, and dies an outcast and a beggar, he is said to have been a hearty fellow, and to have " made good for trade." When, on the contrary, a man of fortune economizes his revenue lives like a virtuous and reasonable being, whose first duty is the cultivation of his understanding eats and drinks with regard to his health keeps no more retainers than are sufficient for his proper comfort and decency breaks and destroys nothing has respect to the inferior animals, as well from motives of prudence as of mercy and dies without a mortgage on his lands ; he is said to have been a stingy fellow who did not know how to " circulate his money." To " circulate money," to " make good for trade," in the once common meaning of the terms, is for one to consume unprofitably what, if economized, would have stimulated production in a way that would have enabled hundreds, instead of one, to consume profitably. Let us offer two historical examples of these two opposite modes of making good for trade, and 62 DUKES OF BUCKINGHAM AND BRIDGE WATER. CHAP. VI. circulating money. The Duke of Buckingham, " having been possessed of about 50,000?. a*year, died in 1687, in a remote inn in Yorkshire, reduced to the utmost misery."* After a life of the most wanton riot, which exhausted all his princely resources, he was left at the last hour, under circumstances which are well described in the following lines by Pope : " In the worst inn's worst room, with mat half hung, The floors of Blaster, and the walls of dung, On once a flock bed, but repair'd with straw, With tape-tied curtains never meant to draw, The George and Garter dangling from that bed Where tawdry yellow strove with dirty red ; Great Villiers lies. .... No wit to flatter left of all his store, No fool to laugh at, which he valued more, There, victor of his health, of fortune, friends, And fame, this lord of useless thousands ends." Contrast the course of this unhappy man with that of the Duke of Bridgewater, who devoted his property to really " making good for trade," by constructing the great canals which connect Manchester with the coal countries and with Liverpool. The Duke of Buckingham lived in a round of sensual folly : the Duke of Bridgewater limited his personal expenditure to 400/. a-year, and devoted all the remaining portion of his revenues to the construction of a magnificent work of the highest public utility. The one supported a train of cooks and valets and horse- jockeys : the other called into action the labour of thou- sands, and employed in the direction of that labour the skill of Brindley, one of the greatest engineers that any country has produced. The one died without a penny, loaded with debt, leaving no trace behind him but the ruin which his waste had produced: the other bequeathed almost the largest property in Europe to his descendants, and opened a channel for industry which afforded, and still affords, employment to thousands. When a mob amused themselves by breaking windows, CHAP. VI. MAKING GOOD FOR TRADE." 63 as was once a common recreation on an illumination night, by way of showing the amount of popular intelligence, some were apt to say they have " made good for trade." Brindley. Is it not evident that the capital which was represented by the unbroken windows was really so much destroyed of the national riches when the windows were broken ? for if the windows Jiad remained unbroken, the capital would have remained to stimulate the production of some new object of utility. The glaziers, indeed, replaced the win- dows ; but there having been a destruction of windows, there must have been a necessary retrenchment in some other outlay, that would have afforded benefit to the con- sumer. Doubtless, when the glazier is called into activity by a mob breaking windows, some other trade suffers ; for the man who has to pay for the broken windows must re- trench somewhere, and, if he has less to lay out, some other person has less to lay out. The glass-maker, probably, makes more glass at the moment ; but he does so to ex- change with the capital that would otherwise have gone to 64 PRODIGALITY AND ECONOMY. CHAP. VI. the maker of clothes or of furniture : and, there being an absolute destruction of the funds for the maintenance of labour, by an unnecessary destruction of what former labour has produced, trade generally is injured to the extent of the destruction. Some now say that a fire makes good for trade. The only difference of evil between the fire which destroys a house, and the mob which breaks the windows, is, that the fire absorbs capital for the maintenance of trade, or labour, in the proportion of a hundred to one when compared with the mob. Some say that war makes good for trade. The only difference of pecuniary evil (the moral evils admit of no comparison) between the fire and the war is, that the war absorbs capital for the maintenance of trade, or labour, in the proportion of a million to a hundred when compared with the fire. If the incessant energy of produc- tion were constantly repressed by mobs, and fires, and wars, the end would be that consumption would altogether exceed production ; and that then the producers and the consumers would both be starved into wiser courses, and perceive that nothing makes good for trade but profitable industry and judicious expenditure. Prodigality devotes itself too much to the satisfaction of present wants : avarice postpones too much the present wants to the possible wants of the future. Real economy is the happy measure between the two ex- tremes ; and that only " makes good for trade," because, while it carries on a steady demand for industry, it accumu- lates a portion of the production of a country to stimulate new production. That judicious expenditure consists in " The sense to value riches, with the art T' enjoy them." The fashion of " making good for trade" by unprofitable consumption is a relic of the barbarous ages. In the twelfth century a count of France commanded his vassals to plough up the soil round his castle, and he sowed the ground with coins of gold, to the amount of fifteen hundred guineas, that he might have all men talk of his magnificence. Piqued at the lordly prodigality of his neighbour, another CHAP. VI.* UNPROFITABLE CONSUMPTION. 65 noble ordered thirty of his most valuable horses to be tied to a stake and burnt alive, that he might exhibit a more striking instance of contempt for accumulation. In the latter part of the fourteenth century, a Scotch noble, Colin Campbell, on receiving a visit from the O'Neiles of Ireland, ostentatiously burnt down his house at Inverary upon their departure ; and an Earl of Athol pursued the same course in 1528, after having entertained the papal legate, upon the pretence that it was " the constant habitude of the high- landers to set on fire in the morning the place which had lodged them the night before." When the feudal lords had so little respect for their own property, it was not likely that they would have much regard for the accumulation of others. The Jews, who were the great capitalists of the middle ages, and who really merit the gratitude of Euro- peans for their avarice, as that almost alone enabled any accumulation to go forward, and any production to increase, were, as it is well known, persecuted in every direction by the crown, by the nobles, by the people. When a solitary farmer or abbot attempted to accumulate corn, which accu- mulation could alone prevent the dreadful famines invari- ably resulting from having no stock that might be available upon a bad harvest, the people burnt the ricks of the pro- vident men, by way of lessening the evils of scarcity. The consequence was, that no person thought of accumu- lating at all, and that the price of wheat often rose, just before the harvest, from five shillings a quarter to five pounds. We are accustomed to read and talk of " merry England," but we sometimes fail to think how much real suffering lay beneath the surface of the merriment. Herrick, one of our charming old lyric poets, has sung the glories of the hock- cart th'e cart that bore the full sheaves to the empty barn : " The harvest swains and wenches bound For joy, to see the hock-cart crown'd ; About the cart hear how the rout Of rural younglings raise the shout, Pressing before, some coming after, Those with a shout, and these with laughter. 66 THE HOCK-CART. ^CiiAP. VI. Some bless the cart, some kiss the sheaves, Some prank them up with oaken leaves ; Some cross the fill-horse, some with great Devotion stroke the home-borne wheat." Assuredly there was joy and there was devotion ; for the laden cart made the difference between plenty and starva- tion. Before that harvest-home came there had been many an aching heart in the village hovels, for there was no store to equalize prices, and no communication to make the abund- ance of one district much less of one country mitigate the scarcity of another. It was not a question of the rise or the fall of a penny or two in the price of a loaf of bread ; it was a question of bread or no bread. The Hock-Cart. CHAP. VI. WAR AGAINST CAPITAL. 67 During these dark periods the crown carried on the war against capital with an industry that could not be exceeded by that of the nobles or the people. Before the great charter the Commons complained that King Henry seized upon whatever was suited to his royal pleasure horses, imple- ments, food, anything that presented itself in the shape of accumulated labour. In the reign of Henry III. a statute was passed to remedy excessive distresses ; from which it appeared that it was no unfrequent practice for the king's officers to take the opportunity of seizing the farmer's oxen at the moment when they were employed in ploughing, or, as the statute says, " winning the earth," taking them off, and starving them to death, or only restoring them with new and enormous exactions for their keep. Previous to the Charter of the Forest no man could dig "a marl-pit on his own ground, lest the king's horses should fall into it when he was hunting. As late as the time of James I. we find, from a speech of the great Lord Bacon, that it was a pretty constant practice of the king's purveyors to extort large sums of money by threatening to cut down favourite trees which grew near a mansion-house or in avenues. Despotism, in all ages, has depopulated the finest countries, by rendering capital insecure, and therefore unproductive ; insomuch that Montesquieu lays it down as a maxim, that lands are not cultivated in proportion to their fertility, but in proportion to their freedom. In the fifteenth century, in England, we find sums of money voted for the restoration of decayed towns and villages. Just laws would have restored them much more quickly and effectually. The state of agriculture was so low that the most absurd enactments were made to compel farmers to till and sow their own lands, and calling upon every man to plant at least forty beans. All the laws for the regulation of labourers, at the same period, assumed that they should be compelled to work, and not wander about the country, just in the same way that farmers should be compelled to sow and till. It is perfectly clear that the towns would not have been depopu- lated, and gone to decay, if the accumulation of capital had F 2 68 EXCLUSIVE PRIVILEGES. CHAP. VI. not been obstructed by insecurity and wasted by ignor- ance, and that the same insecurity and the same waste rendered it necessary to assume that the farmer would not till and sow, and the labourer would not labour, without compulsion. The natural stimulus to industry was wanting, and therefore there was no industry, or only unprofitable industry. The towns decayed, the country was unculti- vated production languished the people were all poor and wretched; and the government dreamt that acts of parliament and royal ordinances could rebuild the houses and cultivate the land, when the means of building and cultivation, namely, the capital of the country, was ex- hausted by injustice producing insecurity. But if the king, the nobles, and the people of the middle ages conspired together, or acted at least as if they conspired, to prevent the accumulation of capital, the few capitalists themselves, by their monstrous regulations, which still throw some dark shadows over our own days, prevented that freedom of industry without which capital could not accu- mulate. Undoubtedly the commercial privileges of corpo- rations originally offered some barriers against the injustice of the crown and of the nobility ; but the good was always accompanied with an evil, which rendered it to a certain extent valueless. Where these privileges gave security, they were a good; where they destroyed freedom, they were an injury. Instead of encouraging the intercourse between one trade and another, they encircled every trade with the most absurd monopolies and exclusive privileges. Instead of rendering commerce free between one district and another, they, even in the same country, encompassed commerce with the most harassing restrictions, which separated county from county, and town from town, as if seas ran between them. If a man of Coventry came to London with his wares, he was encountered at every step with the privileges of companies; if the man of London sought to trade at Coventry, he was obstructed by the same corporate rights, preventing either the Londoner or the Coventry man trading with advantage. The revenues of CHAP. VI. THIEVES AND GIPSIES. 69 every city were derived from forfeitures upon trades, almost all established upon the principle that, if one trade became too industrious or too clever, it would be the ruin of another trade. Every trade was fenced round with secrets ; and the commonest trade, as we know from the language of an apprentice's indenture, was called an " art and mystery." All these follies went upon the presump- tion that " one man's gain is another man's loss," instead of vanishing before the truth, that, in proportion as the in- dustry of all men is free, so will it be productive ; and that production on all sides ensures a state of things in which every exchanger is a gainer, and no one a loser. It is not to be wondered at that, while such opinions existed, the union of capital and labour should have been very imperfect ; and that, while the capitalists oppressed the labourers, in the same way that they oppressed each other, the labourers should have thought it not unreason- able to plunder the capitalists. It is stated by Harrison, an old writer of credit,* that during the single reign of Henry VIII. seventy-two thousand thieves were hanged in England. No fact can exhibit in a stronger light the universal misery that must have existed in those days. The whole kingdom did not contain half a million grown-up males, so that, considering that the reign of Henry VIII. extended over two generations, about one man in ten must have been, to use the words of the same historian, " de- voured and eaten up by the gallows." In the same reign the first statute against Egyptians (gipsies) was passed. These people went from place to place in great companies spoke a cant language, which Harrison calls Pedler's French and were subdivided into fifty-two different classes of thieves. The same race of people prevailed throughout Europe. Cervantes, the author of * Don Quixote,' says of the Egyptians or Bohemians, that they seem to have been born for no other purpose than that of pillaging. While this universal plunder went forward, it is evident that the insecurity of property must have been so great that there * Preface to the Chronicles of Holinshed. 70 UNIVERSAL PLUNDER. CHAP. VI. could have been little accumulation, and therefore little production. Capital was destroyed on every side; and "because profitable labour had become so scarce by the de- struction of capital, one-half of the community sought to possess themselves of the few goods of the other half, not as exchangers but as robbers. As the robbers diminished the capital, the diminution of capital increased the number of robbers; and if the unconquerable energy of human industry had not gone on producing, slowly and painfully indeed, but still producing, the country would have soon fallen back to the state in which it was a thousand years before, when wolves abounded more than men. One great cause of all this plunder and misery was the oppression of the labourers. CHAP. VII. RIGHTS OF LABOUR. Adam Smith. CHAPTEE VII. Rights of labour Effects of slavery on production Condition of the Anglo- Saxons Progress of freedom in England Laws regulating labour Wages and prices Poor-law Law of settlement. ADAM SMITH, in his great work, ' The Wealth of Nations,' says, " The property which every man has in his own labour, as it is the original foundation of all other property, so it is the most sacred and inviolable. The patrimony of a poor man lies in the strength and dexterity of his hands ; and to hinder him from employing this strength and dexterity in what manner he thinks proper, without injury to his neighbour, is a plain violation of this most sacred property." The right of property, in general, has been denned by another writer, M. Say, to be " the exclusive faculty guaranteed to a man, or body of men, to dispose, at their own pleasure, of that which belongs to them." There can be no doubt that labour is entitled to the same protection. 72 RIGHTS OF LABOUR. CHAP. VII. as a property that capital is entitled to. There can be no doubt that the labourer has rights over his labour which no government and no individual should presume to interfere with. There can be no doubt that, as an exchanger of labour for capital, the labourer ought to be assured that the exchange shall in all respects be as free as the exchanges of any other description of property. His rights as an ex- changer are, that he shall not be compelled to part with his property, by any arbitrary enactments, without having as ample an equivalent as the general laws of exchange will afford him ; that he shall be free to use every just means, either by himself or by union with others, to obtain such an equivalent ; that he shall be at full liberty to offer that pro- perty in the best market that he can find, without being limited to any particular market ; that he may give to that property every modification which it is capable of receiving from his own natural or acquired skill, without being nar- rowed to any one form of producing it. In other words, natural justice demands that the working-man shall work when he please, and be idle when he please, always pro- viding that, if he make a contract to work, he shall not violate that engagement by remaining idle ; that no labour shall be forced from him, and no rate of payment for that labour prescribed by statutes or ordinances ; that he shall be free to obtain as high wages as he can possibly get, and unite with others to obtain them, always providing that in his union he does not violate that freedom of industiy in others which is the foundation of his own attempts to im- prove his condition ; that he may go from place to place to exchange his labour without being interfered with by cor- porate rights or monopolies of any sort, whether of masters or workmen ; and that he may turn from one employment to the other, if he so think fit, without being confined to the trade he originally learnt, or may strike into any line of employment without having regularly learnt it at all. When the working-man has these rights secured to him by the sanction of the laws, and the concurrence of the institu- tions and customs of the country in which he lives, he is in CHAP. VII. TRANSITION FROM SLAVERY TO FREEDOM. 73 the condition of a free exchanger. He has the full, uninter- rupted, absolute possession of his property. He is upon a perfect legal equality with the capitalist. He may labour cheerfully with the well-founded assurance that his labour will be profitably exchanged for the goods which he desires for the satisfaction of his wants, as far as laws and institu- tions can so provide. In a word, he may assure himself that, if he possesses anything valuable to offer in exchange for capital, the capital will not be fenced round with any arti- ficial barriers, or invested with any unnatural preponder- ance, to prevent the exchange being one of perfect equality, and therefore a real benefit to both exchangers. We are approaching this desirable state in England. Indeed, there is scarcely any legal restriction acted upon which prevents the exchange of labour with capital being completely unembarrassed. Yet it is only within a few centuries that the working-men of this country have emerged from the condition of actual slaves into that of free labourers ; it is only a few hundred years ago since the cultivator of the ground, the domestic servant, and sometimes even the artisan, was the absolute property of another man bought, sold, let, without any will of his own, like an ox or a horse producing nothing for himself and transmitting the miseries of his lot to his children. The progress of civilization destroyed this monstrous sys- tem, in the same way that at the present day it is destroying it in Russia and other countries where slavery still exists. But it was by a very slow process that the English slave went forward to the complete enjoyment of the legal rights of a free exchanger. The transition exhibits very many years of gross injustice, of bitter suffering, of absurd and ineffectual violations of the natural rights of man ; and of struggles between the capitalist and the labourer, for exclu- sive advantages, perpetuated by ignorant lawgivers, who could not see that the interest of all classes of producers is one and the same. We may not improperly devote a little space to the description of this dark and evil period. We shall see that while such a struggle goes forward that is, 74 EFFECTS OF SLAVERY ON PRODUCTION. CHAP. VII. while security of property and freedom of industry are not held as the interchangeable rights of the capitalist and the labourer there can be little production and less accumula- tion. Wherever positive slavery exists wherever the labourers are utterly deprived of their property in their labour, and are compelled to dispose of it without retaining any part of the character of voluntary exchangers there are found idleness, ignorance, and unskilfulness ; industry- is enfeebled the oppressor and the oppressed are both poor there is no national accumulation. The existence of slavery amongst the nations of antiquity was a great impe- diment to their progress in the arts of life. The community, in such nations, was divided into a caste of nobles called citizens, and a caste of labourers called slaves. The Romans were rich, in the common sense of the word, because they plundered other nations ; but they could not produce largely when the individual spirit to industry was wanting. The industry of the freemen was rapine : the slaves were the producers. No man will work willingly when he is to be utterly deprived of the power of disposing at his own will of the fruits of his labour ; no man will work skilfully when the same scanty pittance is doled out to each and all, what- ever be the difference in their talents and knowledge. Wherever the freedom of industry is thus violated, property cannot be secure. If Rome had encouraged free labourers, instead of breeding menial slaves, it could not have hap- pened that the thieves, who were constantly hovering round the suburbs of the city, like vultures looking out for carrion, should have been so numerous that, during the insurrection of Catiline, they formed a large accession to his army. But Rome had to encounter a worse evil than that of the swarms of highwaymen who were ready to plunder whatever had been produced. Production itself was so feeble when car- ried on by the labour of slaves, that Columella, a writer on rural affairs, says the crops continued so gradually to fall off that there was a general opinion that the earth was growing old and losing its power of productiveness. Wher- ever slavery exists at the present day, there we find feeble CHAP. VII. THE ANGLO-SAXONS. 75 production and national weakness. Poland, the most prolific corn -country in Europe, is unquestionably the poorest country. Poland has been partitioned, over and over again, by governments that knew her weakness ; and she has been said to have fallen " without a crime." That is not correct. Her " crime " was, and is, the slavery of her labourers. There is no powerful class between the noble and the serf or slave ; and whilst this state of things endures, Poland can never be independent, because she can never be indus- trious, and therefore never wealthy. England, as we have said, once groaned under the evils of positive slavery. The Anglo-Saxons had what they called " live money," such as sheep and slaves. To this cause may be doubtless attributed the easy conquest of the country by the Norman invaders, and the oppression that succeeded that conquest. If the people had been free, no king could have swept away the entire population of a hundred thousand souls that dwelt in the country between the Humber and the Tees, and converted a district of sixty miles in length into a dreary desert, which remained for years without houses and without inhabitants. This the Conqueror did. In the reign of Henry II. the slaves of England were exported in large numbers to Ireland. These slaves, or villeins, as is the case in Russia and Poland at the present day, differed in the degree of the oppression which was exercised towards them. Some, called " villeins in gross," were at the abso- lute disposal of the lord transferable from one owner to another, like a horse or a cow. Others, called "villeins regardant," were annexed to particular estates, and were called upon to perform whatever agricultural offices the lord should demand from them, not having the power of acquiring any property, and their only privilege being that they were irremoveable except with their own consent. These distinctions are not of much consequence, for, by a happy combination of circumstances, the bondmen of every kind, in the course of a century or two after the Conquest, were rapidly passing into the condition of free labourers. But still capital was accumulated so slowly, and labour was 76 PROGRESS OF FREEDOM. CHAP. VII. so unproductive, that the land did not produce the tenth part of a modern crop ; and the country was constantly ex- posed to the severest inflictions of famine, whenever a worse than usual harvest occurred. In the reign of Edward III. the woollen manufacture was introduced into England. It was at first carried on exclu- sively by foreigners ; but as the trade extended, new hands were wanting, and the bondmen of the villages began to run away from their masters, and take refuge in the towns. If the slave could conceal himself successfully from the pursuit of his lord for a year and a day, he was held free for ever. The constant attraction of the bondmen to the towns, where they could work for hire, gradually emboldened those who remained as cultivators to assert their own natural rights. The nobility complained that the villeins refused to perform their accustomed services; and that com re- mained uncut upon the ground. At length, in 1351, the 25th year of Edward III., the class of free labourers was first recognised by the legislature ; and a statute was passed, oppressive indeed, and impolitic, but distinctly acknow- ledging the right of the labourer to assume the character of a free exchanger. Slavery, in England, was not wholly abolished by statute till the time of Charles II. : it was attempted in vain to be abolished in 1526. As late as the year 1775, the colliers of Scotland were accounted ascripti glebce- that is, as belonging to the estate or colliery where they were born and continued to work. It is not necessary for us further to notice the existence of villeinage or slavery in these kingdoms. Our business is with the slow progress of the establishment of the rights of free labourers and this principally to show that, during the long period when a contest was going forward between the capitalists and the labourers, industry was comparatively unproductive. It was not so unproductive, indeed, as during the period of absolute slavery ; but as long as any man was compelled to work, or to continue at work, or to receive a fixed price, or to remain in one place, or to follow one employment, labour could not be held to be free property could not be held to CHAP. VII. LAWS REGULATING LABOUR. 77 be secure capital and labour could not have cordially united for production accumulation could not have been certain and rapid. In the year 1349 there was a dreadful pestilence in England, which swept off large numbers of the people. Those of the labourers that remained, foil owing the natural course of the great principle of demand and supply, refused to serve, unless they were paid double the wages which they had received five years before. Then came the * Statute of Labourers,' of 1351, to regulate wages ; and this statute enacted what should be paid to haymakers, and reapers, and thrashers ; to carpenters, and masons, and tilers, and plasterers. No person was to quit his own village, if he could get work at these wages ; and labourers and artificers flying from one district to another in conse- quence of these regulations, were to be imprisoned. Good laws, it has been said, execute themselves. When legislators make bad laws, there requires a constant in- crease of vigilance and severity, and constant attempts at reconciling impossibilities, to allow such laws to work at all. In 1360 the Statute of Labourers was confirmed with new penalties, such as burning in the forehead with the letter F those workmen who left their usual abodes. Having controlled the wages of industry, the next step was for these blind lawgivers to determine how the work- men should spend their scanty pittance ; and accordingly, in 1363, a statute was passed to compel workmen and all persons not worth forty shillings to wear the coarsest cloth called russet, and to be served once a day with meat, or fish, and the offal of other victuals. We were not without imitations of such absurdities in other nations. An ordinance of the King of France, in 1461, determined that good and fat meat should be sold to the rich, while the poor should be allowed only to buy the lean and. stinking. While the wages of labour were fixed by statute, the price of wheat was constantly undergoing the most ex- traordinary fluctuations, ranging from 2s. a quarter to 78 WAGES AND PRICES. CHAP. VII. 1?. 65. 8c?. It was perfectly impossible that any profitable industry could go forward in the face of such unjust and ridiculous laws. In 1376 the Commons complained that masters were obliged to give their servants higher wages to prevent their running away ; and that the country was covered with staf -strikers and sturdy rogues, who robbed in every direction. The villages were deserted by the labourers resorting to the towns, where commerce knew how to evade the destroying regulations of the statutes ; and to prevent the total decay of agriculture, labourers were not allowed to move from place to place without letters patent : any labourer, not producing such a letter, was to be imprisoned and put in the stocks. If a lad had been brought up to the plough till he was twelve years of age, he was compelled to continue in husbandry all his life ; and in 1406 it was enacted that all children of parents not possessed of land should be brought up in the occupa- tion of their parents. While the legislature, however, was passing these abominable laws, it was most effectually preparing the means for their extermination. Children were allowed to be sent to school in any part of the king- dom. When the light of education dawned upon the people, they could not long remain in the " darkness visible " that succeeded the night of slavery. When the industry of the country was nearly annihilated by the laws regulating wages, it was found out that some- thing like a balance should be preserved between wages and prices ; and the magistrates were therefore empowered twice a year to make proclamation, according to the price of provisions, how much every workman should receive. The system, however, would not work well. In 1496 a new statute of wages was passed, the preamble of which recited that the former statutes had not been executed, because "the remedy by the said statutes is not very perfect." Then came a new remedy : that is, a new scale of wages for all trades ; regulations for the hours of work and of rest ; and penalties to prevent labour being trans- ported from one district to another. As a necessary con- CHAP. VII. THE POOR-LAW. 79 sequence of a fixed scale for wages, came another fixed scale for regulating the prices of provisions ; till at last, in the reign of Henry VIII., lawgivers began to open their eyes to the folly of their proceedings, and the preamble of a stafute says ** that dearth, scarcity, good cheap, and plenty of cheese, butter, capons, hens, chickens, and other victuals necessary for man's sustenance, happeneth, riseth, and chanceth, of so many and divers occasions, that it is very hard and difficile to put any certain prices to any such things." Yet they went on with new scales, in spite of the hardness of the task ; till at last some of the worst of these absurd laws were swept from the statute-book. The justices, whose principal occupation was to balance the scale of wages and labour, complained incessantly of the difficulty of the attempt ; and the statute of the 5th Elizabeth acknowledged that these old laws " could not be carried into execution without the great grief and burden of the poor labourer and hired man." Still new laws were enacted to prevent the freedom of industry working out plenty for capitalists as well as labourers ; and at length, in 1601, a general assessment was directed for the support of the impotent poor, and for setting the unemployed poor to work. The capitalists at length paid a grievous penalty for their two centuries of oppression ; and had to maintain a host of paupers, that had gradually filled the land during these unnatural contests. It would be perhaps incorrect to say, that these contests alone produced the paupers that required this legislative protection in the reign of Elizabeth; but certainly the number of those paupers would have been far less, if the laws of industry had taken their healthy and natural course, if capital and labour had gone hand in hand to produce abundance for all, and fairly to distribute that abundance in the form of profits and wages, justly balanced by the steady operation of demand and supply in a free and extensive market. The whole of these absurd and iniquitous laws, which had succeeded the more wicked laws of absolute slavery, proceeded from a struggle on the part of the capitalists in 80 LAW OF SETTLEMENT. CHAP. VJI. land against the growing power and energy of free labour. If the capitalists had rightly understood their interests, they would have seen that the increased production of a thriving and happy peasantry would have amply compen- sated them for all the increase of wages to which they were compelled to submit ; and that at every step by which the condition of their labourers was improved their own con- dition was also improved. If then capital had worked naturally and honestly for the encouragement of labour, there would have been no lack of labourers ; and it would not have been necessary to pass laws to compel artificers, under the penalty of the stocks, to assist in getting in the harvest (5 Eliz.). If the labourers in agriculture had been adequately paid, they would not have fled to the towns ; and if they had not been liable to cruel punishments for the exercise of this their natural right, the country would not have been covered with " valiant rogues and sturdy beggars." The Law of Settlement, which, however modified, yet remains upon our statute-book, has been the curse of industry for nearly two centuries. All the best men of past times have cried out against its oppression. Roger North, soon after its enactment, in the time of Charles II., clearly enough showed its general operation : " Where most work is, there are fewest people, and e contra. In Norfolk, Suffolk, and Essex, a labourer hath 12d. a day; in Oxfordshire, 8d. ; in the North, 6^., or less ; and I have been credibly informed that in Cornwall a poor man will be thankful for 2d. a day and poor diet : and the value of provisions in all these places is much the same. Whence should the difference proceed? Even from plenty and scarcity of work and men, which happens crossgrainedly, so that one cannot come to the other." When men honestly went from home to seek work, they were called vagrants, and were confounded with the common beggars, for whom every severity was provided by the law the stocks, the whip, the pillory, the brand. It was all in vain. Happy would it have been for the land if the law had left honest CHAP. VII. LAW OF SETTLEMENT. 81 industry free, and in the case of dishonesty had applied itself to more effectual work than punishments and terror. One of our great judges, Sir Matthew Hale, said, long ago, what we even now too often forget " The prevention of poverty, idleness, and a loose and disorderly education, even of poor children, would do more good to this kingdom than all the gibbets, and cauterizations, and whipping- posts, and jails in this kingdom." The whole scheme of legislation for the poor was to set the poor to work by forced contributions from capital. If the energy of the people had not found out how to set themselves to work in spite of bad laws, we might have remained a nation of slaves and paupers. 82 POSSESSIONS OF DIFFERENT CLASSES. CHAP. VIII. CHAPTEE VIII. Possessions of the different classes in England Condition of Colchester in 1301 Tools, stock-in-trade, furniture, &c. Supply of food Com- parative duration of human life Want of facilities for commerce Plenty and civilization not productive of effeminacy Colchester in the present day. IT will be desirable to exhibit something like an average view of the extent of the possessions of all classes of society, and especially of the middling and labouring classes, in this country, at a period when the mutual rights of capital- ists and labourers were so little understood as in the four- teenth century. We have shown how, at that time, there was a general round of oppression, resulting from ignorance of the proper interests of the productive classes ; and it would be well also to show that during this period of disunion and contest between capital and labour, each plundering the other, and both plundered by arbitrary power, whether of the nobles or the crown, production went on very slowly and imperfectly, and that there was little to plunder and less to exchange. It is difficult to find the materials for such an inquiry. There is no very accurate record of the condition of the various classes of society before the inven- tion of printing ; and even after that invention we must be content to form our conclusions from a few scattered facts not recorded for any such purpose as we have in view, but to be gathered incidentally from slight observations which have come down to us. Yet enough remains to enable us to form a picture of tolerable accuracy ; and in some points to establish conclusions which cannot be disputed. It is in the same way that our knowledge of the former state of the physical world must be derived from relics of that CHAP. VIII. COLCHESTER IN 1301. 83 former state, to which the inquiries and comparisons of the present times have given an historical value. We know, for instance, that the animals of the southern countries once abounded in these islands, because we occasionally find their bones in quantities which could not have been accu- mulated unless such animals had been once native to these parts ; and the remains of sea-shells upon the tops of hills now under the plough show us that even these heights have been heaved up from the bosom of the ocean. In the same way, although we have no complete picture of the state of property at the period to which we allude, we have evi- dence enough to describe that state from records which may be applied to this end, although preserved for a very differ- ent object. In the reign of Edward III., Colchester, in Essex, was considered the tenth city in England in point of population. It then paid a poll-tax for 2955 lay persons. In 1301, about half a century before, the number of inhabitant house- keepers was 390 ; and the whole household furniture, utensils, clothes, money, cattle, corn, and every other pro- perty found in the town, was valued at 518?. 16s. Of to re-create what security has accumulated for our present use. From the moment that the industry of this country began to work with security, and capital and labour applied themselves in union perhaps not a perfect union, but still in union to the great business of production, they worked with less and less expenditure of unprofitable labour. They continued to labour more and more pro- fitably, as they laboured with knowledge. The labour of all rude nations, and of all uncultivated individuals, is labour with ignorance. Peter the wild boy, whom we have already mentioned, could never be made to perceive the right direction of labour, because he could not trace it through its circuitous courses for the production of utility. He would work under control, but, if left to himself, he would not work profitably. Having been trusted to fill a cart with manure, he laboured with diligence till the work was accomplished; but no one being at hand to direct him, he set to work as diligently to unload the cart again. He thought, as too many think even now, that the good was in the labour, and not in the results of the labour. The same ignorance exhibits itself in the unprofitable labour and unprofitable application of capital, even of persons far removed beyond the half-idiocy of Peter the wild boy. In the thirteenth century many of the provinces of France were overrun with rats, and the people, instead of vigorously hunting the rats, were persuaded to carry on a process against them in the ecclesiastical courts ; and there, after the cause of the injured people and the injuring rats was solemnly debated, the rats were declared cursed and excommunicated if they did not retire in six days. The historian does not add that the rats obeyed the in- 102 UNPROFITABLE LABOUR. CHAP. IX. junction ; and doubtless the farmers were less prepared to resort to the profitable labour of chasing them to death when they had paid the ecclesiastics for the unprofitable labour of their excommunication. There is a curious instance of unprofitable labour given in a book on the f i *- Coal Tirade of Scotland, written as recently as 1812. The c %v c ., .people., of. Edinburgh had a passion for buying their coals ; ,'' ;ih immense." lumps, and, to gratify this passion, the greatest care was taken not to break the coals in any of the opera- tions of conveying them from the pit to the cellar of the consumer. A wall of coals was first built within the pit, another wall under the pit's mouth, another wall when they were raised from the pit, another wall in the waggon which conveyed them to the port where they were shipped, another wall in the hold of the ship, another wall in the cart which conveyed them to the consumer, and another wall in the consumer's cellar; and the result of these seven different buildings-up and takings-down was, that after the consumer had paid thirty per cent, more for these square masses of coal than for coal shovelled together in large and small pieces, his servant had daily to break the large coals to bits to enable him to make any use of them. It seems extraordinary that such waste of labour and capital should have existed amongst a highly acute and refined community within the last forty years. They, perhaps, thought they were making good for trade, and therefore submitted to the evil ; while the Glasgow people, on the contrary, by saving thirty per cent, in their coals, had that thirty per cent, to bestow upon new enterprises of industry, and for new encouragements to labour. The unprofitable applications of capital and labour which the early history of the civilization of every people has to record, and which, amongst many, have subsisted even whilst they held themselves at the height of refinement, have been fostered by the ignorance of the great, and even of the learned, as to the causes which, advancing pro- duction or retarding it, advanced or retarded their own interests, and the interests of all the community. Princes CHAP. IX. FORMER NOTIONS ON COMMERCE. 103 and statesmen, prelates and philosophers, were equally ignorant of " What makes a nation happy, and keeps it so ; What ruins kingdoms, and lays cities flat." It was enough for them to consume ; they thought it beneath them to observe even, much less to assist in, the direction of production. This was ignorance as gross as that of Peter the wild boy, or the excommunication of rats. It has always been the fashion of ignorant greatness to despise the mechanical arts. The pride of the Chinese mandarins was to let their nails grow as long as their fingers, to show that they never worked. Even European nobles once sought the same absurd distinction. In France, under the old monarchy, no descendant of a nobleman could embark in trade without the highest disgrace ; and the principle was so generally recognised as just, that a French writer, even as recently as 1758, reproaches the sons of the English nobility for the contrary practice, and asks, with an air of triumph, how can a man be fit to serve his country in Parliament after having meddled with such paltry concerns as those of commerce ? Montesquieu, a writer in most respects of enlarged views, holds that it is beneath the dignity of governments to interfere with such trumpery things as the regulation of weights and measures. Society might have well spared the interference of govern- ments with weights and measures if they had been content to leave all commerce equally free. But, in truth, the regu- lation of weights and measures is almost a solitary exception to the great principle which governments ought to practise, of not interfering, or interfering little, with commerce. Louis XIV. did not waste more capital and labour by his ruinous wars, and by his covering France with fortifications and palaces, than by the perpetual interferences of himself and his predecessors with the freedom of trade, which com- pelled capital and labour to work unprofitably. The natu- rally slow progress of profitable industry is rendered more slow by the perpetual inclination of those in authority to 104 PREJUDICES, CHAP. IX divert- industry from its natural and profitable channels. It was therefore wisely said by a committee of merchants to Colbert, the prime minister of France in the reign of Louis XIV., when he asked them what measures govern- ment could adopt to promote the interests of commerce, " Let us alone, permit us quietly to manage our own business." It is undeniable that the interests of all are best promoted when each is left free to attend to his own interests, under the necessary social restraints which pre- vent him doing a positive injury to his neighbour. It is thus that agriculture and manufactures are essentially allied in their interests; that unrestrained commerce is equally essential to the real and permanent interests of agriculture and manufactures ; that capital and labour are equally united in their interests, whether applied to agri- culture, manufactures, or commerce ; that the producer and the consumer are equally united in their most essential interest, which is, that there should be cheap production. While these principles are not understood at all, and while they are imperfectly understood, as they still are by many classes and individuals, there must be a vast deal of un- profitable expenditure of capital, a vast deal of unprofit- able labour, a vast deal of bickering and heart-burning between individuals who ought to be united, and classes who ought to be united, and nations who ought to be united ; and as long as it is not felt by all that their mutual rights are understood and will be respected, there is a feeling of insecurity which more or less affects the prosperity of all. The only remedy for these evils is the extension of knowledge. Louis XV. proclaimed to the French that the English were their " veritables ennemis," their true enemies. When knowledge is triumphant it will be found that there are no "veritables ennemis," either among nations, or classes, or individuals. The pre- judices by which nations, classes, and individuals are led to believe that the interest of one is opposed to the interest of another, are, nine times out of ten, as utterly absurd as the reason which a Frenchman once gave for CHAP. IX. AND THEIR REMEDY. 105 hating the English which was, "that they poured melted butter on their roast veal ;" and this was not more ridiculous than the old denunciation of the English against the French, that " they ate frogs, and wore wooden shoes." When the world is disabused of the belief that the wealth of one nation, class, or individual must be created by the loss of another's wealth, then, and then only, will all men steadily and harmoniously apply to produce and to enjoy to acquire prosperity and happiness lifting themselves to the posses- sion of good " By Reason's light, on Resolution's wings." 106 EMPLOYMENT OF MACHINERY CHAP. X. CHAPTEE X. Employment of machinery in manufactures and agriculture Erroneous notions formerly prevalent on this subject Its advantages to the labourer Spade-husbandry The principle of machinery Machines and tools Change in the condition of England consequent on the introduction of machinery Modern New Zealanders and ancient Greeks Hand-mills and water-mills. ONE of the most striking effects of the want of knowledge producing disunions amongst mankind that are injurious to the interests of each and all, is the belief which still exists amongst many well-meaning but unreflecting persons, that the powers and arrangements which Capital has created and devised for the advancement of production are injurious to the great body of working-men in their character of pro- ducers. The great forces by which capital and labour now work, forces which are gathering strength every day, are accumulation of skill and division of employments. It will be for us to show that the applications of science to the manufacturing arts have the effect of ensuring cheap production and increased employment. These applications of science are principally displayed in the use of MACHINERY ; and we shall endeavour to prove that, although individual labour may be partially displaced, or unsettled for a time, by the use of this cheaper and better power than unassisted manual labour, all are great gainers by the general use of that power. Through that power all principally possess, however poor they may be, many of the comforts which make the difference between man in a civilized and man in a savage state ; and further, that, in consequence of ma- chinery having rendered productions of all sorts cheaper, and therefore caused them to be more universally purchased, it has really increased the demand for that manual labour, CHAP. X. IN MANUFACTURES. 107 which it appears to some, reasoning only from a few in- stances, it has a tendency to dimmish. In the year 1827 a Committee of the House of Commons was appointed to examine into the subject of Emigration. The first person examined before that Committee was Joseph Foster, a working weaver of Glasgow. He told the Com- mittee that he and many others, who had formed them- selves into a society, were in great distress ; that numbers of them worked at the hand-loom from eighteen to nineteen hours a day, and that their earnings, at the utmost, did not amount to more than seven shillings a- week, and that some- times they were as low as four shillings. That twenty years before that time they could readily earn a pound a-week by the same industry ; and that as power-loom weaving had in- creased, the distress of the hand- weavers also had increased in the same proportion. The Committee then put to Joseph Foster the following questions, and received the following answers : " Q. Are the Committee to understand that you attribute the insufficiency of your remuneration for your labour to the introduction of machinery ? .4. Yes. Q. Do you consider, therefore, that the introduction of machinery is objectionable ? A. We do not. The weavers in general, of Glasgow and its vicinity, do not consider that machinery can or ought to be stopped, or put down. They know perfectly well that machinery must go on, that it will go on, and that it is im- possible to stop it. They are aware that every implement of agriculture or manufacture is a portion of machinery, and, indeed, everything that goes beyond the teeth and nails (if I may use the expression) is a machine. I am authorized, by the majority of our society, to say that I speak their minds, as well as my own, in stating this." It is worthy of note how the common sense of this work- ing-man, a quarter of a century ago, saw clearly the great principle which overthrows, in the outset, all unreasoning hostility to machinery. Let us follow out his principle. 108 EMPLOYMENT OF MACHINERY CHAP. X. Amongst the many accounts which the newspapers in December, 1830, gave of the destruction of machinery by agricultural labourers, we observed that in the neighbour- hood of Aylesbury a band of mistaken and unfortunate men destroyed all the machinery of many farms, down even to the common drills. The men conducted themselves, says the county newspaper, with civility ; and such was their consideration, that they moved the machines out of the farm-yards, to prevent injury arising to the cattle from the nails and splinters that flew about while the machinery was being destroyed. They could not make up their minds as to the propriety of destroying a horse-churn, and therefore that machine was passed over. A quarter of a century has made a remarkable difference in the feelings, even in the least informed, with regard to machinery. The majority of the people now know, as the weavers of Glasgow knew in 1827, that " machinery must go on, that it will go on, and that it is impossible to stop it." We therefore, adapting this volume to the improved times in which it is now published, think it needless to urge, as fully as we once did, any of the notions of the labourers of Aylesbury to their inevitable conclusions. It is sufficient briefly to show, that, if the labourers had been successful in their career, had broken all those ingenious implements which have aided in rendering British agricul- ture the most perfect in the world, they would not have advanced a single step in obtaining more emploj'ment, or being better paid. We will suppose, then, that the farmer has yielded to this violence ; that the violence has had the effect which it was meant to have upon him ; and that he takes on all the hands which were out of employ, to thrash and winnow, to cut chaff, to plant with a dibber instead of with a drill, to do all the work, in fact, by the dearest mode instead of the cheapest. But he employs just as many people as are absolutely necessary, and no more, for getting his corn ready for market, and for preparing, in a slovenly way, for the seed-time. In a month or two the victorious destroyers find that not a CHAP. X. IN AGRICULTURE. 109 single hand the more of them is really employed. And why not ? There are no drainings going forward, the hedges and ditches are neglected, the dung-heap is not turned over, the chalk is not fetched from the pit ; in fact, all those labours are neglected which belong to a state of agricultural indus- try which is brought to perfection. The farmer has no funds to employ in such labours ; he is paying a great deal more than he paid before for the same, or a less, amount of work, because his labourers choose to do certain labours with rude tools instead of perfect ones. We will imagine that this state of things continues till the next spring. All this while the price of grain has been rising. Many farmers have ceased to employ capital at all upon the land. The neat inventions, which enabled them to make a living out of their business, being destroyed, they have abandoned the business altogether. A day's work will now no longer purchase as much bread as before. The horse, it might be probably found out, was as great an enemy as the drill-plough ; for, as a horse will do the field- work of six men, there must be six men employed, without doubt, instead of one horse. But how would the fact turn out ? If the farmer still went on, in spite of all these losses and crosses, he might employ men in the place of horses, but not a single man more than the number that would work at the price of the keep of one horse. To do the work of each horse turned adrift, he would require six men ; but he would only have about a shilling a-day to divide between these six the amount which the horse consumed. As the year advanced, and the harvest approached, it would be discovered that not one-tenth of the land was sown : for although the ploughs were gone, because the horses were turned off, and there was plenty of labour for those who chose to labour for its own sake, or at the price of horse-labour, this amazing employment for human hands, somehow or other, would not quite answer the purpose. It has been calculated that the power of horses, oxen, &c., employed in husbandry in Great Britain is ten times the amount of human power. If the human power insisted 110 MACHINERY IN AGRICULTURE. CHAP. X. upon doing all the work with the worst tools, the certainty is that not even one-tenth of the land could be cultivated. Where, then, would all this madness end ? In the starvation of the labourers themselves, even if they were allowed to eat up all they had produced by such imperfect means. They would be just in the condition of any other barbarous people, that were ignorant of the inventions that constitute the power of civilization. They would eat up the little corn which they raised themselves, and have nothing to give in exchange for clothes, and coals, and candles, and soap, and tea, and sugar, and all the many comforts which those who are even the worst off are not wholly deprived of. All this may appear as an extreme statement; and certainly we believe that no such evils could have happened : for if the laws had been passive, the most ignorant of the labour- ers themselves would, if they had proceeded to carry their own principle much farther than they had done, see in their very excesses the real character of the folly and wickedness to which it had led, and would lead them. Why should the labourers of Aylesbury not have destroyed the harrows as well as the drills 9 Why leave a machine which separates the clods of the earth, and break one which puts seed into it? Why deliberate about a horse-chum, when they were resolved against a winnowing-machine ? The truth is, these poor men perceived, even in the midst of their excesses, the gross deception of the reasons which induced them to commit them. Their motive was a natural, and, if lawfully expressed, a proper impatience, under a condition which had certainly many hardships, and those hardships in great part produced by the want of pro- fitable labour. But in imputing those hardships to ma- chinery, they were at once embarrassed when they came to draw distinctions between one sort of machine and another. This embarrassment decidedly shows that there were fear- ful mistakes at the bottom of their furious hostility to ma- chinery. It has been said, by persons whose opinions are worthy attention, that spade-husbandry is, in some cases, better CHAP. X. SPADE AND PLOUGH HUSBANDRY. HI than plough-husbandry ; that is, that the earth, under particular circumstances of soil and situation, may be more fitly prepared for the influences of the atmosphere by digging than by ploughing. It is not our business to enter into a consideration of this question. The growth of corn is a manufacture, in which man employs the chemical properties of the soil and of the air in conjunction with his own labour, aided by certain tools or machines, for the pro- duction of a crop ; and that power, whether of chemistry or machinery, whether of the salt, or the chalk, or the dung, or the guano, which he puts upon the earth, or the spade or the plough which he puts into it, that power which does the work easiest is necessarily the best, because it diminishes the cost of production. If the plough does not do the work so well as the spade, it is a less perfect machine ; but the less perfect machine may be preferred to the more perfect, because, taking other conditions into consideration, it is a cheaper machine. If the spade, applied in a peculiar man- ner by the strength and judgment of the man using it, more completely turns up the soil, breaks the clods, and removes the weeds than the plough, which receives one uniform direction from man with the assistance of other animal power, then the spade is a more perfect machine in its combination with human labour than the plough is, worked with a lesser degree of the same combination. But still it may be a machine which cannot be used with advan- tage to the producer, and is therefore not desirable for the consumer. All such questions must be determined by the cost of production ; and that cost in agriculture is made up of the rent of land, the profit of capital, and the wages of labour or the portions of the produce belonging to the landlord, the farmer, and the labourer. "Where rent is high, as in the immediate neighbourhood of large towns, it is important to have the labour performed as carefully as possible, and the succession of crops stimulated to the utmost extent by manure and labour. It is economy to turn the soil to the greatest account, and the land is cul- tivated as a garden. Where rent is low, it is important to 112 PRINCIPLE OF MACHINERY. CHAP. X. have the labour performed upon other principles, because one acre cultivated by hand may cost more than two culti- vated by the plough; and though it may be the truest policy to carry the productiveness of the earth as far as possible, field cultivation and garden cultivation must have essential differences. In one case, the machine called a spade is used ; in the other, the machine called a plough is employed. The use of the one or the other belongs to prac- tical agriculture, and is a question only of relative cost. And this brings us to the great principle of all machinery. .A tool of the simplest construction is a machine ; a ma- chine of the most curious construction is only a compli- cated tool. There are many cases in the arts, and there may be cases in agriculture, in which the human arm and hand, with or without a tool, may do work that no machine can so well perform. There are processes in polishing, and there is a process in copperplate printing, in which no substance has been found to stand in the place of the human hand. And, if therefore the man with a spade alone does a certain agricultural work more completely than a man guiding a plough, and a team of horses dragging it (which we do not affirm or deny), the only reason for this is, that the man with the spade is a better machine than the man with the plough and the horses. The most stupid man that ever existed is, beyond all comparison, a machine more cun- ningly made by the hands of his Creator, more perfect in all his several parts, and with all his parts more exquisitely adapted to the regulated movement of the whole body, less liable to accidents, and less injured by wear and tear, than the most beautiful machine that ever was, or ever will be, invented. There is no possibility of supplying in many cases a substitute for the simplest movements of a man's body, by the most complicated movements of the most in- genious machinery. The laws of mechanism are the same whether applied to a man, or to a lever, or a wheel ; but the man has more pliability than any combination of wheels and levers. " "When a porter carries a burden, the attitude of the body must accommodate itself to the position of the CHAP. X. PRINCIPLE OF MACHINERY. 113 common centre of gravity of himself and his load. Thus, in the accompanying figures it will be observed that when the man stands upright the centre of gravity of the man G falls within the base of support ; and if his load L falls without the base, as does likewise g, the common centre of gravity of the man and load, the consequence would be that he would fall backwards ; but this is prevented, or, which is the same thing, the point g is brought within the base by the man bending his body forward."* What is called the lay figure of the painter a wooden image with many joints may be bent here and there ; but the artist who wanted to draw a porter with a load could not put a hundredweight upon the back of his image and keep it upon its legs. The natural machinery by which a man even lifts his hand to his head is at once so complex and so simple, so apparently easy and yet so entirely dependent upon the right adjust- ment of a great many contrary forces, that no automaton, or machine imitating the actions of man, could ever be made to effect this seemingly simple motion, without showing that the contrivance was imperfect, that it was a mere imitation, and a very clumsy one. What an easy thing it appears to be for a farming man to thrash his corn with a flail ; and yet what an expensive arrangement of wheels * See an article by Mr. Bishop, on ' Locomotion of Animals,' in ' English Cyclopaedia.' 1 114 MACHINES AND TOOLS. CHAP. X. is necessary to produce the same effects with a thrashing- machine ! The truth is, that the man's arm and the flail form a much more curious machine than the other ma- chine of wheels, which does the same work ; and the real question as regards the value of the two machines is, which machine in the greater degree lessens the cost of produc- tion? We state this principle broadly, in our examination into the value of machinery in diminishing the cost of pro- ducing human food. A machine is not perfect because it is made of wheels or cylinders, employs the power of the screw or the lever, is driven by wind or water or steam, but because it best assists the labour of man, by calling into action some power which he does not possess in himself. If we could imagine a man entirely dispossessed of this power, we should see the feeblest of animal beings. He has no tools which are a part of himself, to build houses like the beaver, or cells like the bee. He has not even learnt from nature to build, instinctively, by certain and unchangeable rules. His power is in his mind ; and that mind teaches him to subject all the physical world to his dominion, by availing himself of the forces which nature has spread around him. To act upon material objects he arms his weakness with tools and with machines. As we have De- fore said, tools and machines are in principle the same. When we strike a nail upon the head with a hammer, we avail ourselves of a power which we find in nature the effect produced by the concussion of two bodies ; when we employ a water-wheel to beat out a lump of iron with a much larger hammer, we still avail ourselves of the same power. There is no difference in the nature of the instru- ments, although we call the one a tool, and the other a ma- chine. Neither the tool nor the machine has any force of itself. In one case the force] is in the arm, in the other in the weight of water which turns the wheel. The dis- tinctions which have been taken between a tool and a machine are really so trivial, and the line of separation between the one and the other is so slight, that we can only CHAP. X. MACHINES AND TOOLS. 115 speak of both as common instruments for adding to the efficiency of labour. The simplest application of a prin- ciple of mechanics to an every-day hand-tool may convert it into what is called a machine. Take a three-pronged fork one of the universal tools ; fasten a rope to the end of the handle ; put a log under the fork as a fulcrum ; and we have a lever, when pulled down by the rope, which will grub up a strongly-rooted large shrub in a few minutes. The labourer has called in a powerful ally. The tool has become a machine. The chief difference between man in a rude,* and man in a civilized state of society is, that the one wastes his force, whether natural or acquired, the other economizes, that is, saves it. The man in a rude state has very rude instru- ments ; he therefore wastes his force : the man in a civil- ized state has very perfect ones ; he therefore economizes it. Should we not laugh at the gardener who went to hoe his potatoes with a stick having a short crook at the end ? It would be a tool, we should say, fit only for children to use. Yet such a tool was doubtless employed by some very ancient nations ; for there is an old medal of Syracuse I 2 116 CHANGES PRODUCED BY CHAP. X. which represents this very tool. The common hoe of the English gardener is a much more perfect tool, because it saves labour. Could we have any doubt of the madness of the man who would propose that all iron hoes should be abolished, to furnish more extensive employ to labourers who should be provided only with a crooked stick cut out of a hedge ? .The truth is, if the working men of England had no better tools than crooked sticks, they would be in a state of actual starvation. One of the chiefs of New Zealand, before that country had been colonized by us, told Mr. Marsden, a missionary, that his wooden spades were all broken, and he had not an axe to make any more ; his canoes were all broken, and he had not a nail or a gimlet to mend them with; his potato-grounds were unculti- vated, and he had not a hoe to break them up with ; and that for want of cultivation he and his people would have nothing to eat. This shows the state of a people without tools. The man had seen English tools, and knew their value. About three or four hundred years ago, from the times of king Henry IV. to those of king Henry VI., and. indeed, long before these reigns, there were often, as we have already mentioned, grievous famines in this country, because the land was very wretchedly cultivated. Men, women, and children perished of actual hunger by thou- sands ; and those who survived kept themselves alive by eating the bark of trees, acorns, and pig-nuts. There were no machines then ; but the condition of the labourers was so bad, that they could not be kept to work upon the land without those very severe and tyrannical laws noticed in Chap. VII., which absolutely forbade them to leave the station in which they were born as labourers, for any hope of bettering their condition in the towns. There were not labourers enough to till the ground, for they worked without any skill, with weak ploughs and awk- ward hoes. They were just as badly off as some of the people of Portugal and Spain, who are miserably poor, because they have bad machines; or as the Chinese la- CHAP. X. MACHINERY IN ENGLAND. 117 bourers, who have scarcely any machines, and are the poorest in the world. There was plenty of labour to be performed, but the tools were so bad, and the want of agri- cultural knowledge so universal, that the land was never half cultivated, and therefore all classes were poorly off. They had little corn to exchange for manufactures, and in consequence the labourer was badly clothed, badly lodged, and had a very indifferent share of the scanty crop which he raised. The condition of the labourer would have pro- ceeded from bad to worse, had agricultural improvement not gone forward to improve the general condition of all classes. Commons were enclosed ; arable land was laid down to pasture ; sheep were kept upon grass-land where wretched crops had before been growing. This was superseding labour to a great extent, and much clamour was raised about this plan, and probably a large amount of real distress was produced. But mark the consequence. Although the money wages of labour were lowered, because there were more labourers in the market, the real amount of wages was higher, for better food was created by pas- turage at a cheaper rate. The labourer then got meat who had never tasted it before ; and when the use of animal food became general, there were cattle and corn enough to be exchanged for manufactured goods, and the labourer got a coat and a pair of shoes, who had formerly gone half naked. Step by step have we been going in the same direction for two centuries ; and the agricultural industry of Great Britain is now as much directed to the production of meat, milk, butter, cheese, as to the growth of corn and other cereals. The once simple husbandry of our fore- fathers has become a scientific manufacture. There may be some persons still who object to machinery, because, having grown up surrounded with the benefits it has conferred upon them, without understanding the source of these benefits, they are something like the child who sees nothing but evil in a rainy day. The people of New Zealand very rarely came to us ; but when they did come they were acute enough to perceive the advantages which 118 NEW ZEALANDERS IN ENGLAND. CHAP. X. machinery has conferred upon us, and the great distance in point of comfort between their state and ours, principally for the reason that they have no machinery, while we have a great deal. One of these men burst into tears when he saw a rope-walk ; because he perceived the immense supe- riority which the process of spinning ropes gave us over his own countrymen. He was ingenious enough, and so were many of his fellow islanders, to have twisted threads together after a rude fashion ; but he knew that he was a long way off from making a rope. The New Zealander saw the spinner in the rope-walk, moving away from a wheel, and gradually forming the hemp round his body into a strong cord. By the operation of the wheel he is enabled so to twine to- gether a number of separate fibres, that no one fibre can be separated from the mass, but forms part of a hard and com- pact body. A series of these operations produces a cable, Spinning. such as may hold a barge at anchor. The twisted fibres of hemp become yarn; many yarns become a strand; three strands make a rope; and three ropes make a cablet, or small cable. By carefully untwisting all its separate parts, CHAP. X. NEW ZEALANDERS IN" ENGLAND. 119 the principle upon which it is constructed is evident. The operation is a complex one ; and the rope-maker is a skilled workman. Rope-making machinery is now carried much farther. But the wheel that twisted the hemp into yarn was a prodigy to the inquiring savage. k ~ ' Analysis of a Cablet. Another of these New Zealanders, and he was a very- shrewd and intelligent person, carried back to his country a small hand-mill for grinding corn, which he prized as the greatest of all earthly possessions. And well might he prize it ! He had no machine for converting corn into meal, but two stones, such as were used in the remote parts of the highlands of Scotland some years ago. And to beat the grain into meal by these two stones (a machine, remember, however imperfect) would occupy the labour of one-fourth of his family, to procure subsistence for the other three- fourths. The ancient Greeks, three thousand years ago, had improved upon the machinery of the hand-stones, for 120 LABOUR AND ITS RESULTS. CHAP. X. they had hand-mills. But Homer, the old Greek poet, describes the unhappy condition of the slave who was always employed in using this mill. The groans of the slave were unheeded by those who consumed the produce of his labour; and such was the necessity for meal, that the women were compelled to turn these mills when there were not slaves enough taken in war to perform this" irksome office. There was plenty of labour then to be performed, even with the machinery of the hand-mill ; but the slaves and the women did not consider that labour was a good in itself, and therefore they bitterly groaned under it. By and bye the understandings of men found out that water and wind would do the same work that the slaves and the women had done ; and that a large quantity of labour was at liberty to be employed for other purposes. Does any one ask if society was in a worse state in consequence ? We answer, labour is worth nothing without results. Its value is only to be measured by what it produces. If, in a country where hand-mills could be had, the people were to go on beating grain between two stones, all would pro- nounce them fools, because they could obtain an equal quantity of meal with a much less expenditure of labour. Some have a general prejudice against that sort of machinery which does its work with very little human assistance ; it is not quite so certain, therefore, that they would agree that a people would be equal fools to use the hand-mill when they could employ the wind-mill or the water-mill. But we believe they would think that, if flour could drop from hea- ven, or be had like water by whoever chose to seek it, it would be the height of folly to have stones, or hand-mills, or water- mills, or wind-mills, or any machine whatever for manu- facturing flour. Does any one ever think of manufacturing water ? The cost of water is only the cost of the labour which brings it to the place in which it is consumed. Yet this admission overturns all objections against machinery. We admit that it -is desirable to obtain a thing with no labour at all ; can we therefore doubt that it is desirable to obtain it with the least labour ? The only difference between no labour and CHAP. X. HAND-MILLS AND WATER-MILLS. 121 a little labour is the difference of the cost of production. And the only difference between little labour and much labour is precisely the same. In procuring anything that administers to his necessities, man makes an exchange of his labour for the thing produced, and the less he gives of his labour the better of course is his bargain. To return to the hand-mill and the water-mill. An ordi- nary water-mill for grinding corn will grind about thirty- six sacks a day. To do the same work with a hand-mill would require 150 men. At two shillings a day the wages of these men would amount to 15?., which, reckoning six working days, is 90?. a week, or 4680?. a year. The rent and taxes of a mill would be about 150?. a year, or 10.s. a working day. The cost of machinery would be certainly more for the hand-mills than the water-mill, therefore we will not take the cost of machinery into calculation. To produce, therefore, thirty-six sacks of flour by hand we should pay 15?.; by the water-mill we should pay 10s.: that is, we should pay thirty times as much by the one pro- cess as by the other. The actual saving is something about the price of the flour in the market ; that is, the consumer, if the corn were ground by hand, would pay double what he pays now for flour ground at a mill. But if the system of grinding corn by hand were a very recent system of society, and the introduction of so great a benefit as the water-mill had all at once displaced the hand- grinders, as the spinning machinery displaced the spinning- wheel, what must become, it is said, of the one hundred and fifty men who earned the 1 51. a-day, of which sum the con- sumer has now got 14?. 10s. in his pocket ? They must go to other work. And what is to set them to that work ? The same 14?. 10s. ; which, being saved in the price of flour, gives the poor man, as well as the rich man, more animal food and fuel ; a greater quantity of clothes, and of a better quality ; a better house than his hand-labouring ancestors used to have, much as his house might yet be improved; better furniture, and more of it; domestic utensils; and books. To produce these things there must be more labourers em- 122 HAND-MILLS AND WATER-MILLS. CHAP. X. ployed than before. The quantity of labour is, therefore, not diminished, while its productiveness is much increased. It is as if every man among us had become suddenly much stronger and more industrious. The machines labour for us, and are yet satisfied without either food or clothing. They increase all our comforts, and they consume none themselves. The hand-mills are not grinding, it is true : but the ships are sailing that bring us foreign produce; the looms are moving that give us more clothes; the potter, and glass- maker, and joiner, are each employed to add to our house- hold goods; we are each of us elevated in the scale of society ; and all these things happen because machinery has diminished the cost of production. The water-mill is, however, a simple machine compared with some mills of modern times. We are familiar with the village-mill. As we walk by the side of some gentle stream, such as that which turns the mill at Guy's Cliff, in Warwickshire, we hear at a distance the murmur of water and the growl of wheels. We come upon the old mill, such as it has stood for a couple of centuries. No Mill at Guy's Cliff. CHAP. X. MILL AT PITTSBURGH. 123 peasant quarrels with the mill. It is an object almost of his love; for he knows that it cheapens his food. It seems a part of the natural scenery amidst which he has been reared. But let a more efficient machine for grinding corn be in- troduced, such as the Americans have at Pittsburgh, and the peasant might think that the working millers would be ruined. And yet the mill at Pittsburgh is making flour cheaper in England, by that competition which here forces onward improvement in mill-machinery ; and by increasing the consumption of flour calls into action more superintend- ing labour for its production. That particular American mill produces 500 barrels of flour per day, each containing 1961bs., and it employs forty managing persons. It pro- duces cheap flour by saving labour in all its processes. It stands on the bank of a navigable river a high building into which the corn for grinding must be removed from boats alongside. Is the grain necessary to produce these 500 barrels of flour per day, amounting to 98,0001bs., carried by man's labour to the topmost floor of that high mill ? It is "raised by an elevator consisting of an endless band, to which are fixed a series of metal cans revolving in a long wooden trough, which is lowered through the respective hatchways into the boat, and is connected at its upper end with the building where its belt is driven. The lower end of the trough is open, and, as the endless band revolves, six or eight men shovel the grain into the ascending cans, which raise it so rapidly that 4000 bushels can be lifted and deposited in the mill in an hour."* The drudging and un- skilled labourers who would have toiled in carrying up the grain are free to do some skilled labour, of which the amount required is constantly increasing; and the cost saved by the elevator goes towards the great universal fund, out of which more labour and better labour are to find the means of employment. * Whitworth's Special Report. 124 PROGRESS OF CULTIVATION. CHAP. XI. CHAPTEE XL Present and former condition of the country Progress of cultivation Evil influence of feudalism State of agriculture in the sixteenth century Modern improvements Prices of wheat Increased breadth of land under cultivation Average consumption of wheat Implements of agriculture now in use Number of agriculturists in Great Britain. IT is the remark of foreigners, as they travel from the sea- coast to London, that the country is a garden. It has taken nineteen centuries to make it such a garden. The marshes in which the legions of Julius Caesar had to fight, up to their loins, with the Britons, to whom these swamps were habitual, are now drained. The dense woods in which the Druids worshipped are now cleared. Populous towns and cheerful villages offer themselves on every side. Wherever the eye reaches there is cultivation. Instead of a few scat- tered families painfully earning a subsistence by the chace, or by tilling the land without the knowledge and the instruments that science has given to the aid of manual labour, that cultivation is carried on with a systematic routine that improves the fertility of a good season, and diminishes the evils of a bad. Instead of the country being divided amongst hostile tribes, who have little communica- tion, the whole territory is covered with a network of roads, and canals, and navigable rivers, and railroads, through which means there is an universal market, and wherever there is demand there is instant supply. Eightly considered, there is no branch of production which has so largely benefited by the power of knowledge as that of agriculture. It was ages before the great physical changes were accomplished which we now behold on every side ; and we are still in a state of progress towards the perfection of those results which an over-ruling Providence had in CHAP. XI. INFLUENCE OF FEUDALISM. 125 store for the human race, in the gradual manifestation of those discoveries which have already so changed our condi- tion and the condition of the world. The history of cultivation in Great Britain is full of instruction as regards the inefficiency of mere traditional practice and the slowness with which scientific improve- ment establishes its dominion. It is no part of our plan to follow out this history ; but a few scattered facts may not be without their value. The oppressions of tenants that were perpetrated under the feudal system, when ignorant lords of manors impeded production by every species of extortion, may be estimated by one or two circumstances. There can be no doubt that the prosperity of a tenant is the best security for the land- lord's due share of the produce of the land. Without ma- nure, in some form or other, the land cannot be fertilized : the landlords knew this, but they required to have a mono- poly of the fertility. Their tenants kept a few sheep, but the landlords reserved to themselves the exclusive privilege of having a sheepfold ; so that the little tenants could not fold their own sheep on their own lands, but were obliged to let them be folded with those of their lord, or pay a fine.* The flour-mill was the exclusive property of the manorial lord, whether lay or ecclesiastical ; and whatever the distance, or however bad the road, the tenant could grind nowhere but at the lord's mill. No doubt the rent of land was exceedingly low, and the lord was obliged to maintain himself and his dependents by adding something considerable to his means by many forms of legalized extor- tion. The rent of land was so low because the produce was inconsiderable, to an extent which will be scarcely compre- hended by modern husbandmen. In the law-commentary called ' Fleta,' written about the end of the thirteenth cen- tury, the author says the farmer will be a loser unless corn be dear, if he obtains from an acre of wheat only three times the seed sown. He calculated the low produce at six bushels an acre : the average produce was perhaps little * Cullum's History of Hawsted.' 126 INFLUENCE OF FEUDALISM. CHAP. XI. higher ; we have distinct records of its being no higher a century afterwards. In 1390, at Hawsted, near Bury, the produce of the manor-farm was forty -two quarters of wheat, or three hundred and thirty-six bushels, from fifty-seven acres ; and upon an average of three years sixty-one acres produced only seventy quarters, or five hundred and sixty bushels. Sir John Cullum, who collected these details from the records of his own property, says, "no particular dearness of corn followed, so that, probably, those very- scanty crops were the usual and ordinary effects of the imperfect husbandry then practised." The husbandry was so imperfect that an unfavourable season for corn-crops, which in our days would have been compensated by a greater production of green crops, was followed by famine. When the ground was too hard, the seed could not be sown for want of the sufficient machine-power of plough and harrow. The chief instrument used was as weak and im- perfect as the plough which we see depicted in Egyptian monuments, and which is still found in parts of Syria. The Oriental ploughman was with such an instrument obliged to bend over his plough, and load it with all the weight of his body, to prevent it merely scratching the ground instead of turning it up. His labour was great and his care incessant, as we may judge from the words of our Saviour," No man having put his hand to the plough, 1 The plough. 2. The pole. 3. The share (various). 4. The handle, or plough- tail. 5. Yokes. CHAP. XI. AGRICULTURE OF THE 16TH CENTURY. 127 and looking back, is fit for the kingdom of God," Latimer, the Protestant martyr, in his ' Sermon of the Plough,' in which he holds that "preaching of the Gospel is one of God's plough-works, and the preacher is one of God's ploughmen," describes the labour upon which he raises his parallel : " For as the ploughman first setteth forth his plough, and then tilleth his land and breaketh it in furrows, and sometimes ridgeth it up again; and at another time harroweth it and clotteth it, and sometimes dungeth it and hedgeth it, diggeth it and weedeth it, purg- eth it and maketh it clean, so the prelate, the preacher, hath many divers offices to do." Latimer was the son of a Liecestershire farmer, and knew practically what he was talking about. He knew that the land would not bear an adequate crop without all this various and often-repeated labour. And yet the labour was so inadequately performed, that a few years after he had preached this famous sermon, we are told by a credible writer of the times of Queen Mary William Bulleyn, a physician and botanist that in 1555 " bread was so scant, insomuch that the plain poor people did make very much of acorns." A few years on- ward a great impulse was given to husbandry through various causes, amongst which the increased abundance of the precious metals through the opening of the mines of South America had no inconsiderable influence. The industrious spirit of England was fairly roused from a long sleep in the days of Queen Elizabeth. Harrison, 'in his ' Description of Britain,' says, " The soil is even now in these our days grown to be much more fruitful than it hath been in times past." This historian of manners saw the reason. "In times past" there was "idle and negligent occupation ;" but when he wrote (1593) " our countrymen are grown to be more painful, skilful, and careful, through recompense of gain." The cultivators had their share of the benefits of cultivation; they had their " recompense of gain." Capital had been spread amongst the class of tenants : they were no longer miserable dependents upon their grasping lords. For a century or so onward the improve- 128 AGRICULTURE IN THE 18xn CENTURY. CHAP. XI. ments in agriculture were not very decided. The rotation of crops was unknown ; and winter food for sheep and cattle not being raised, the greater number were slaughtered and salted at Martinmas. The fleeces were wretchedly small, for the few sheep nibbled the stubbles and commons bare till the spring-time. The carcases of beef were not half their present size. At the beginning of the last century the turnip cultivation was introduced, and in the middle of the century the horse-hoeing husbandry came into use. Our agricultural revolution was fairly begun a hundred years ago ; and yet for many years the value of manure was very imperfectly understood, and even up to our own time it has been wasted in every direction. There is given in Sir John Cullum's book an abstract of the lease of a farm in 1753. The tenant was to be allowed two shillings for every load of manure that he brought from Bury, about four miles distant. During twenty-one years the landlord was charged with only one load. At that period all agriculture was in a great degree traditional. There were no agricultural societies no special journals for this great branch of na- tional industry. Arthur Young applied his shrewd and observing talent to the dissemination of farming know- ledge ; but the agricultural mind, with very few exceptions, rejected book-knowledge as vain and impertinent. Che- mistry applied to the soil was as unknown to the culti- vator as the perturbations of the planets. Geology was an aifair of conjecture, and had assumed no form of utility. Meteorology entered into no farmer's mode of estimating the comparative value of one site and another. Sir John Cullum made a most curious and instructive estimate of the science of the Suifolk farmers in 1784, when he wrote, " The farm-houses are in general well furnished with every convenient accommodation. Into many of them a barometer has of late x y ears been introduced a most useful instrument for the husbandman, and which is mentioned here as a striking instance of the intelligence of this period" The wars of the French Revolution, and the high prices consequent upon the almost utter absence of foreign sup- CHAP. XI. PRICE AND CULTIVATION OF WHEAT. 129 plies, gave a stimulus to agriculture, which principally displayed itself in the effort to bring waste lands into cul- tivation. From 1790 to 1819, a period of thirty years, there were two thousand one hundred and sixty-nine Inclo- sure Bills passed by Parliament. In the first ten years of this period the average price of wheat had increased ten shillings above the average of the ten years from 1780 to 1789. In the second ten years it had increased thirty-six shillings above that average. In the third ten years it was very nearly double, being 88s. Sd. from 1810 to 1819, and 45s. Qd. from 1780 to 1789. A portion of these prices, however, must be attributed to a depreciated currency. During that period of thirty years, very few of the great scientific improvements which have cheapened production had been introduced, although better modes of cultivation unquestionably prevailed. During the twenty years from 1820 to 1839 there were only three hundred and thirty- one Inclosure Bills passed; and the price of wheat had fallen to about the average of the ten years from 1790 to 1799, and it continued at that average for another ten years. In the ten years from 1840 to 1849, we cannot gather the amount of land brought into new cultivation from the num- ber of Inclosure Bills, as there was a General Inclosure Act passed in 1835, to prevent the expense of particular bills for small tracts of land. But it has been calculated that, while more than three million acres were brought into cultivation in the twenty years from 1800 to 1819, about one million acres only were inclosed in the thirty years from 1820 to 1849.* If we look then, as we shall briefly do, at the won- derfully increased production of Great Britain, we shall be naturally led to the conclusion that some cause, much more efficient than the inclosure of waste lands, has given us the means of feeding a population which has doubled since the beginning of the century. This production is the result of the whole course of improvement effected by science, and stimulated by capital. The Bedford Level was drained by our ancestors. The fens of Cambridgeshire and Lincoln- * See various tables in Porter's ' Progress of the Nation.' K 130 CONSUMPTION OF WHEAT. CHAP. XI. sliire have been drained effectually in our time. That luxu- riant flat now rejoices in waving corn-crops over many a mile. A few years ago it was a land of stagnant ditches ; where little windmills, that looked to the solitary traveller through that cold district like the toys of children, lifted the water out of the trenches, and left an isolated acre or two of dry earth for man to toil in. Now mighty steam- pumps carry the water into artificial rivers, and the whole region is unrivalled for fertility. It is estimated by some statists that the average con- sumption of wheat for each individual of the population is eight bushels. Others estimate that consumption at six bushels. It will be sufficient for a broad view of the in- crease of production, as compared with the increase of popu- lation, to Hake the consumption at eight bushels, or a quarter of wheat per head. In the ten years from 1801 to 1810, deducting an annual average of 600,000 quarters of foreign wheat and flour imported, the population in 1811 being 11,769,725, the number fed by wheat of home growth was somewhat above eleven millions. In the ten years from 1841 to 1850, deducting an annual average of 3,000,000 quarters of foreign wheat and flour, the popula- tion in 1851 being 21,121,967, the number fed by wheat of home growth was somewhat above eighteen millions. The productive power of the country had increased, in the course of fifty years, to the enormous extent of giving subsistence, in one article of agricultural produce alone, to seven millions of people. The population in 1751 was esti- mated at little more than seven millions. It has trebled in a century ; and we may be perfectly sure that the production of the land has far more than trebled in that period. The probability is that it has quadrupled ; for there is no doubt that the great bulk of the people are better fed than in 1751, when rye-bread was the common sustenance of the great body of labourers throughout the country. Let us endeavour to take a rapid view of the implements of agriculture in common use at the present time imple- ments which have been described as "intended not to CHAP. XI. AGRICULTURAL IMPLEMENTS. 131 bring about new conditions of soil, nor to yield new pro- ducts of any kind, but to do with more certainty and cheapness what had been done hitherto by employing the rude implements of former centuries." Such are the words of Mr. Pusey's admirable Report on the Agricultural Imple- ments in the 4 Exhibition of the Works of Industry of all Nations.' We cannot do better than furnish a few slight notices of the leading subjects of this report. The plough and the harrow were the sole instruments of tillage at the beginning of this century. Bloomfield, in his ' Farmer's Boy,' describes them : " The ploughs move heavily, and strong the soil, And clogging harrows with augmented toil Dive deep." The old plough used to be drawn with four horses; and they were needed. It was a cumbrous instrument, " adapted to the clay soils when those soils were the chief source of corn to the country, and had been handed down from father to son, after the heavy lands had been widely laid down to grazing-ground, and the former downs had become our principal arable land." The modern plough is an imple- ment constructed on mathematical principles, which, by its mould-board, "raising each slice of earth (furrow-slice) from its flat position, through an upright one, lays it over half inclined on the preceding slice." The perfect instru- ment produces the skilled labourer. A good ploughman will set up a pole a quarter of a mile distant, and trace a furrow so true up to that goal that no eye can detect any divergence from absolute straightness. Mr. Pusey justly says that this is a triumph of art. With an agriculture that permits no waste, much of the picturesque has fled from our fields. Bloomfield describes the repose of the ploughman after he has driven his team to the boundary of his furrow : " Welcome green headland ! firm beneath his feet ; Welcome the friendly hank's refreshing seat; There, warm with toil, his panting horses browse Their sheltering canopy of pendenf boughs." K 2 132 AGRICULTURAL IMPLEMENTS. CHAP. XI. Gone is the green headland ; gone the cowslip bank ; gone the pendent boughs. The furrow runs up to the extreinest point of a vast field without hedges. Gone, too, are the green slips between the lands of common fields. Their very names of " balk " and " feather " are obsolete. These adornments of the landscape are inconsistent with the de- mands of a population that doubles itself in half a century. The labourer has small rest, and the soil has less. Under the old husbandry, before the culture of the green crops, one-third of the arable land was always idle. Two years of grain- crop, and one year of fallow, was the invariable rule. Look how the land is worked now. The plough and the harrow turn up and pulverize the soil, but they do it much more effectually than of old. The roller is a noble iron instrument, instead of an old pollard. Modem ingenuity has added the clod-ci usher. But something was still want- Clod-crusher. ing for the better preparation of land for seed this is the scarifier or cultivator ; which, according to Mr. Pusey, will save one half of the horse-labour employed upon the plough. Into the details of this saving it is no part of our purpose to enter.* We give a cut of the implement, covering as much ground in width as 8^ ploughs. We proceed to " Instruments used in the Cultivation of Crops." Mr. Pusey tells us that " the sower with his seed- lip has almost vanished from southern England, driven out by a complicated machine, the drill, depositing the seed in * See 'Journal of Royal Agricultural Society,' vol. xii. p. 595. CHAP. XI. MANURES. 133 rows, and drawn by several horses." We miss the sower; and the next generation may require a commentary upon the many religious and moral images that arose out of his primitive occupation. When James Montgomery says of Lec Scarifier. the seed of knoAvledge, " broadcast it o'er the land," some may one day ask what "broadcast" means. But the drill does not only sow the seed ; it deposits artificial manures for the reception of the seed. The bones that were thrown upon the dunghill are now crushed. The mountains of fertilizing matter that have been accumulated through ages on islands of the Pacific, from the deposits of birds resting in their flight upon rocks of that ocean, and which we call guano, now form a great article of commerce. Superphos- phate, prepared from bones, or from the animal remains of geological ages, is another of the precious dusts which the drill economizes. There are even drills for dropping water combined with superphosphate. " Such," says Mr. Pusey, "is the elastic yet accurate pliability with which, in agricul- 134 AGRICULTURAL IMPLEMENTS. CHAP. XI. ture, mechanism lias seconded chemistry." The system of horse-hoeing, which is the great principle of modem hus- Horse-hoe. bandry, entirely depends upon the use of the drill. The horse-hoe cannot be worked unless the plants are in rows. Such a hoe as this will clean at once nine rows of wheat, six of beans, and four of turnips. To manage such an instrument requires " a steady and cool hand." The skilled labourer is as essential as the beautiful machine. Of instruments for gathering the harvest, the most impor- tant are reaping-machines. In the United States they are sold to a great extent. Mr. M'Cormick, who completed his invention in 1845, states that the demand reaches to a thousand annually. Mr. Pusey says of this machine that, " in bad districts and late seasons, it may often enable the farmer to save the crop." In Scotland and the north of England Mr. Bell's reaping-machine is coming into exten- sive use. The Americans have also their mowing-machines, drawn by two horses, which mow, upon an average, six acres of grass per day. The haymaking machines, as labour- saving instruments, are not uncommon in England. Machines for preparing corn for market are amongst the most important inventions of modern times. Here, indeed, agriculture assumes many of the external features of a CHAP. XI. AGRICULTURAL IMPLEMENTS. 135 manufacture. Steam comes prominently into action. In many large farms there is fixed steam-power; and most efficient it is. But the moveable steam-engine comes to the aid of the small farmer; and in some districts that power is let out to those who want it. By this little engine applied to a thrashing-machine, corn is thrashed at once from the rick, instead of being earned into the barn. Here is a representation of the combined steam-engine and 4 Moveable steam-engine and thrashing-machine. thrashing-machine. The thrashing-machine with horse- power is that generally used in England. Rarely, now, can the beautiful description of Cowper be realized : " Thump after thump resounds the constant flail, That seems to swing uncertain, and yet falls Full on the destined ear." Few now wield that ancient instrument. Nor is the chaff now separated from the corn by the action of the wind, which was called winnowing, but we have the winnowing- machine, by which forty quarters of wheat can be taken from the thrashing-machine and prepared for the market in five hours. But machinery does not end here. The food of stock is prepared by machines. First, there is the turnip-cutter. Our ' Farmer's Boy ' will tell us how his sheep and kine were fed in the winter fifty years ago : 138 AGRICULTURAL IMPLEMENTS. CHAP. XI. CHAP. XI. AGRICULTURAL IMPLEMENTS. 137 " No tender ewe can break her nightly fast, Nor heifer strong begin the cold repast, Till Giles with ponderous beetle foremost go, And scattering splinters fly at every blow; When, pressing round him, eager for the prize, From their mix'd breath warm exhalations rise." We are told that " lambs fed with a turnip-cutter would be worth more at the end of a winter by eight shillings a head than lambs fed on whole turnips." The chaff-cutter is an instrument equally valuable. The last machine which we shall mention is connected with the greatest of all improvements in the crop-producing power of British land the system of tile-draining. Pipes are now made by machinery ; and land may be effectually drained at a cost of 41. per acre. Druining-tile machine. The farmers of England have made what we may fairly call heroic efforts to meet foreign competition; but their efforts would have been comparatively vain had science not come to the aid of production. According to the Census of 1851, the total population of Great Britain is 20,959,477 in round numbers, twenty-one millions. In the ' Return of Occupations,' one-half of this entire population is found under the family designation 138 NUMBER OF AGRICULTURISTS IN BRITAIN. CiiAr. XI. such as child at home, child at school, wife, daughter, sister, niece, with no particular occupation attributed to them. They are important members of the state ; they are growing into future producers, or they preside over the household comforts, without which there is little systematic industry. But they are not direct producers. Of this half of the entire population, one-fifth belong to the class of culti- vators, viz.: Male. Female. Holders of farms . 275,676 28,044 Farmers' relatives, in-door Out-door labourers Farm-servants, in-door Shepherds, out-door Woodmen . : . Gardeners . . Farm bailiffs ^ Graziers 137,446 1,006,728 70,899 235,943 128,251 19,075 9,832 78,462 2,484 12,805 3,036 1,779,003 229,678 This total (in which we omit the fanners' wives and daughters, amounting to about 240,000) shows that one- fifth of the working population provide food, with the exception of foreign produce, for themselves and families and the other four-fifths of the population. Such a result could not be accomplished without the appliances of scien- tific power which we have described in this chapter. In the early steps of British society a very small proportion of labour could be spared for other purposes than the culti- vation of the soil. It has been held that a community is considerably advanced when it can spare one man in three from working upon the land. Only twenty-six per cent, of our adult males are agricultural that is, three men labour at some other employment, while one cultivates the land. During the last forty years the proportion of agricultural employment, in comparison with manufacturing and com- mercial, has been constantly decreasing ; and is now about twenty per cent., whereas in 1811 it was thirty-five per cent, of all occupations. CHAP. XII. PRODUCTION OF A KNIFE. 130 CHAPTER XII. Production of a knife Manufacture of iron Raising coal The hot- blast Iron bridges Rolling bar-iron Making steel Sheffield manu- factures Mining in Great Britain Numbers engaged in mines and metal manufactures. WE have been speaking somewhat fully of agricultural instruments and .agricultural labour, because they are at the root of all other profitable industry. Bread and beef make the bone and sinew of the workman. Ploughs and harrows and drills and thrashing-machines are combinations of wood and iron. Rude nations have wooden ploughs. Unless the English labourer made a plough out of two pieces of stick, and carried it upon his shoulder to the field, as the toil-worn and poor people of India do, he must have some iron about it. He cannot get iron without machinery. He cannot get even his knife, his tool of all-work, without machinery. From the first step to the last in the produc- tion of a knife, machinery and scientific appliances have done the chief work. People that have no science and no machinery sharpen a stone, or bit of shell or bone, and cut or saw with it in the best way they can ; and after they have become very clever, they fasten it to a wooden handle with a cord of bark. An Englishman examines two or three dozens of knives, selects which he thinks the best, and pays a shilling for it, the seller thanking him for his custom. The man who has nothing but the bone or the shell would gladly toil a month for that which does not cost an English labourer half a day's wages. And how does the Englishman obtain his knife upon such easy terms ? From the very same cause that he 140 MANUFACTURE OF IRON. CHAP. XII. obtains all his other accommodations cheaper, in compari- son with the ordinary wages of labour, than the inhabitant of most other countries that is, from the operations of science, either in the making of the thing itself, or in pro- curing that without which it could not be made. We must always remember that, if we could not get the materials without scientific application, it would be impossible for us to get what is made of those materials even if we had the power of fashioning those materials by the rudest labour. Keeping this in mind, let us see how a knife could be obtained by a man who had nothing to depend upon but his hands. Ready-made, without the labour of some other man, a knife does not exist; but the iron, of which the knife is made, is to be had. Very little iron has ever been found in a native state, or fit for the blacksmith. The little that has been found in that state has been found only very lately ; and if human art had not been able to procure any in addition to that, gold would have been cheap as com- pared with iron. Iron is, no doubt, very abundant in nature ; but it is always mixed with some other substance that not only renders it unfit for use, but hides its qualities. It is found in the state of what is called iron-stone, or iron-we. Some- times it is mixed with clay, at other times with lime or with the earth of flint ; and there are also cases in which it is mixed with sulphur. In short, in the state in which iron is frequently met with, it is a much more likely sub- stance to be chosen for paving a road, or building a wall, than for making a knife. But suppose that the man knows the particular ore or stone that contains the iron, how is he to get it out? Mere force will not do, for the iron and the clay, or other substance, are so nicely mixed, that, though the ore were ground to the finest powder, the grinder is no nearer the iron than when he had a lump of a ton weight. A man who has a block of wood has a wooden bowl in CHAP. XII. MANUFACTURE CF IROX. 141 the heart of it ; and he can get it out too by labour. The knife will do it for him in time ; and if he take it to the turner, the turner with his machinery, his lathe, and his gouge, will work it out for him in half an hour. The man who has a lump of iron-ore has just as certainly a knife in the heart of it ; but no mere labour can work it out. Shape it as he may, it is not a knife, or steel, or even iron it is iron-ore ; and dress it as he will, it would not cut better than a brickbat certainly not so well as the shell or bone of the savage. There must be knowledge before anything can be done in this case. We must know what is mixed with the iron, and how to separate it. We cannot do it by mere labour, as we can chip away the wood and get out the bowl ; and therefore we have recourse to fire. In the ordinary mode of using it, fire would make matters worse. If we put the material into the fire as a stone, we should probably receive it back as slag or dross. We must, therefore, prepare our fuel. Our fire must be hot, very hot ; but if our fuel be wood we must burn it into charcoal, or if it be coal into coke. The charcoal, or coke, answers for one purpose ; but we have still the clay or other earth mixed with our iron, and how are we to get rid of that ? Pure clay, or pure lime, or pure earth of flint, remains stubborn in our hottest fires ; but when they are mixed in a proper proportion, the one melts the other. So charcoal or coke, and iron-stone or iron-ore, and limestone, are put into a furnace ; the charcoal or coke is lighted at the bottom, and wind is blown into the furnace, at the bottom also. If that wind is not sent in by ma- chinery, and very powerful machinery too, the effect will be little, and the work of the man great ; but still it can be done. In this furnace the lime and clay, or earth of flint, unite, and form a sort of glass, which floats upon the surface. At the same time the carbon, or pure charcoal, of the fuel, with the assistance of the limestone, mixes with the stone, 142 IRON AND COAL. CHAP. XII. or ore, and melts the iron, which, being heavier than the other matters, runs down to the bottom of the furnace, and remains there till the workman lets it out by a hole made at the bottom of the furnace for that purpose, and plugged with sand. When the workman knows there is enough melted, or when the appointed time arrives, he displaces the plug of sand with an iron rod, and the melted irbn runs out like water, and is conveyed into furrows made in sand, where it cools, and the pieces formed in the principal furrows are called " sows," and those in the furrows branching from them "pigs." \Ye are now advanced a considerable way towards the production of a knife. We have the materials of a knife. VVe have the iron extracted out of the iron-ore. Before we trace the progress of a knife to its final polish, let us see what stupendous efforts of machinery have been required to produce the cast iron. In every part of the operation of making iron in smelting the iron out of the ore ; in moulding cast iron into those articles for which it is best adapted ; in working malleable iron, and in applying it to use after it is made ; nothing can be done without fire, and the fuel that is used in almost every stage of the business is coal. The coal trade and the iron trade are thus so intimately connected, so very much dependent upon each other, that neither of them could be carried on to any extent without the other. The coal-mines supply fuel, and the iron-works give mining tools, pumps, railroads, wheels, and steam-engines, in re- turn. A little coal might be got without the iron engines, and a little iron might be made without coals, by the char- coal of wood. But the quantity of both would be trifling in comparison. The wonderful amount of the production of iron in Great Britain, and the cheapness of iron, as com- pared with the extent of capital required for its manufac- ture, arises from the fact that the coal-beds and the beds of iron-ore lie in juxta-position. The iron-stones alternate with the beds of coal in almost all our coal-fields ; and thus the same mining undertakings furnish the ore out of which CHAr. XII. RAISING COAL. 143 iron is made and the fuel by which it is smelted. If the coal were in the north, and the fuel in the south, the carriage of the one to the other would double the cost. There was a time when iron was made in this country with very little machinery. Iron was manufactured here in the time of the Romans ; but it was made with great manual labour, and was consequently very dear. Hutton, in his * History of Birmingham,' tells us that there is a large heap of cinders near that town which have been produced by an ancient iron-furnace ; and that from the quantity of cinders, as compared with the mechanical powers possessed by our forefathers, the furnace must have been constantly at work from the time of Julius Caesar. A furnace with a steam blast would produce as large a heap in a few years. At present a cottager in the south of England, where there is no coal in the earth, may have a bushel of good coals delivered at the door of his cottage for eighteen pence ; although that is far more than the price of coal at the pit's mouth. If he had even the means of transporting himself and his family to the coal district, he could not, without machinery, get a bushel of coals at the price of a year's work. Let us see how a resolute man would proceed in such an undertaking. The machinery, we will say, is gone. The mines are filled up, which the greater part of them would be, with water, if the machinery were to stop a single week. Let us suppose that the adventurous labourer knows exactly the spot where the coal is to be found. This knowledge, in a country that has never been searched for coals before, is no easy matter, even to those who understand the subject best : it is the province of geology to give that knowledge. But we shall suppose that he gets over that difficulty too, for after it there is plenty of difficulty before him. Well, he comes to the exact spot that he seeks, and places himself right over the seam of coal. That seam is only a hundred fathoms below the surface, which depth he will, of course, reach in good time. To work he goes ; pares off the green sod with his shovel, loosens the earth 144 RAISING COAL. CHAP. XII. with his pickaxe, and, in the course of a week, is twenty feet down into the loose earth and gravel, and clears the rock at the bottom. He rests during the Sunday, and comes refreshed to his work on Monday morning ; when, behold, there are twelve feet of water in his pit. Suppose he now calls in the aid of a bucket and rope, and that he bales away, till, as night closes, he has lowered the water three feet. Next morning it is up a foot and a half : but no matter ; he has done something, and next day he redoubles his efforts, and brings the water down to only four feet. That is encouraging ; but, from the depth, he now works his bucket with more difficulty, and it is again a week before his pit is dry. The weather changes ; the rain comes down heavily ; the surface on which it falls is spongy ; the rock which he has reached is water-tight ; and in twelve hours his pit is filled to the brim. It is in vain to go on. The sinking of a pit, even to a less depth than a hundred fathoms, sometimes demands, notwithstanding all the im- provements by machinery, a sum of not less than a hundred pounds a fathom, or ten thousand pounds for the whole pit ; and therefore, supposing it possible for a single man to do it at the rate of eighteen pence a day, the time which he would require would be between four hundred and five hundred years. Whence comes it that the labour of between four hundred and five hundred years is reduced to a single day? and that which, independently of the carriage, would have cost ten thousand pounds, is got for eighteen pence ? It is because man joins with man, and machinery is employed to do the drudgery. Nations that have no machinery have no coal fires, and are ignorant that there is hidden under the earth a substance which contributes more, perhaps, to the health and comfort of the inhabitants of Britain than any other commodity which they enjoy. No nations have worked coal to anything approaching the extent in which it has been worked by our countrymen. It has been calculated that France, Belgium, Spain, Prussia, CHAP. XII. RAISIXG COAL. 145 Bohemia, and the United States of America, do not annually produce more than seventeen million tons of coal, which is about half of our annual produce.* The greater part of the coal now raised in Britain is pro- duced by the employment of the most enormous mechanical power. There are in some places shallow and narrow pits, where coals may be raised to the surface by a windlass ; and there are others where horse-power is employed. But the number of men that can work at a windlass, or the number of horses that can be yoked to a gin, is limited. The power of the steam-engine is limited only by the strength of the materials of which it is formed. The power of a hundred horses, or of five hundred men, may be very easily made by the steam-engine to act constantly, and on a single point ; and thus there is scarcely anything in the way of mere force which the engine cannot be made to do. We have seen a pit in Staffordshire, which hardly gave coal enough to maintain a cottager and his family, for he worked the pit with imperfect machinery with a half- starved ass applied to a windlass. A mile off was a steam- engine of 200-horse power, raising tons of coals and pumping out rivers of water with a force equal to at least a thousand men. This vast force acted upon a point ; and therefore no advantage was gained over the machine by the opposing force of water, or the weight of the material to be raised. Before the steam-engine was invented, the produce of the coal-mines barely paid the expense of working and keeping them dry ; and had it not been for the steam-engines and other machinery, the supply would long before now have dwindled into a very small quantity, and the price would have become ten or twenty times its present amount. The quantity of coal raised in Great Britain was estimated by Professor Ansted in 1851 at thirty-five million tons; and the value at nine millions sterling at the pit-mouth, and eighteen millions at the place of consumption. The capital engaged in the coal trade was then valued at ten millions. * See a table by Professor Ansted in the Great Exhibition Catalogue voL i. p. 181. L 146 THE HOT-BLAST. CHAP. XII- In 1847 the annual value of all the precious metals raked throughout the world was estimated at thirteen millions sterling. That value has been increased within a few years. But the coal of Great Britain, as estimated by the cost at the pit's mouth, is above two-thirds of this value of the precious metals seven years ago; and the mean annual value, at the furnace, of iron smelted by British coal being eight millions sterling, the value together of our iron and our coal exceeds the value of all the gold and silver of South America, and California, and Australia, however large that amount has now become. How the value of our cast-iron has been increased by modem science may be in some degree estimated by a con- sideration of what the hot-blast has accomplished. The hot-blast blows hot air into the iron-furnace instead of cold air. The notion seems simple, but the results are wonderful. The inventor, Mr. JNeilson, has seen since 1827 the produc- tion of iron raised from less than seven hundred thousand tons to two million two hundred thousand tons. The iron is greatly cheaper than a quarter of a century ago, for only about one-half the coal formerly used is necessary for its production. That production is almost unlimited in amount. In 1788 we produced only sixty thousand tons, or one-thirty- sixth part of what we now produce. The beautiful iron bridge of Colebrook-dale, erected in 1779, consumed three hundred and seventy-eight tons of cast iron. The wonderful Britannia Bridge which has been carried over the Menai Strait, hung in mid air at the height of a hundred feet above the stream, has required ten thousand tons of iron for its completion. If chemistry and machinery had not been at work to produce more iron and cheaper iron, how would our great modem improvements have stopped short our railroads, our water-pipes, our gas-pipes, our steam- ships ! How should we have lacked the great material of every useful implement, from the gigantic anchor that holds the man-of-war finn in her moorings, and the mighty gun that, in the last resort, asserts a spirit without which all material improvement cannot avert a nation's decay, CHAP. XII. IRON BRIDGES. 147 to the steel pen with which thoughts aie exchanged between friends at the opposite ends of the earth, and the needle by which the poor seamstress in her garret maintains her place amongst competing numbers. Nearly all the people now engaged in iron-works are supported by the improvements that have been made in the manufacture, by machinery, since 1788. Yes, wholly by the machinery; for before then the quantity made by the L 2 148 BAE-IROX. CHAP. XII. charcoal of wood had fallen off one-fourth in forty-five years. The wood for charcoal was becoming exhausted, and nothing but the powerful blast of a machine will make iron with coke. Without the aid of machinery the trade would have become extinct. The iron and the coal em- ployed in making it would have remained useless in the mines. And now, having seen what is required to produce a " pig " of cast iron, let us return to the knife, whose course of manufacture we traced a little way. The lump of cast iron as it leaves the furnace has many processes to go through before it becomes fit for making a knife. It cannot be worked by the hammer, or sharpened to a cutting edge ; and so it must be made into malleable iron, into a kind of iron which, instead of melting in the fire, will soften, and admit of being hammered into shape, or united by the process of welding. The methods by which this is accomplished vary ; but they in general consist in keeping the iron melted in a fur- nace, and stirring it with an iron rake, till the blast of air in the furnace burns the greater part of the carbon out of it. By this means it becomes tough ; and, without cooling, is taken from the furnace and repeatedly beaten by large hammers, or squeezed through large rollers, until it be- comes the bar-iron of which so much use is made in every art of life. About the close of the last century the great improve- ment in the manufacture of bar-iron was introduced by passing it through grooved rollers, instead of hammering it on the anvil ; but in our own time the invention has become most important. The inventor, Mr. Coet, spent a fortune on the enterprise and died poor. His son, in 1812, peti- tioned Parliament to assign him some reward for the great gift that his father had bestowed upon the nation. He asked in vain. It is the common fate of the ingenious and the learned ; and it is well that life has some other consolations for the man that has exercised his intellect more profitably ,for the world than for himself, than the pride of the mere CHAP. XII. ROLLING BAR-IROX. 149 capitalist, who thinks accumulation, and accumulation only, the chief business of existence. Rolling bar-iron is one of the great labour-saving principles that especially prevail in every branch of manufacture in metals. The unaided Rolling bar-iron. strength of all the men in Britain could not make all the iron which is at present made, though they did nothing else. Machinery is therefore resorted to ; and water- wheels, steam-engines, and all sorts of powers are set to work in moving hammers, turning rollers, and drawing rods and wires through holes, till every workman can have the particular form which he wants. If it were not for the machinery that is employed in the manufacture, no man could obtain a spade for less than the price of a year's labour; the yokes of a horse would cost more than the horse himself; and the farmer would have to return to wooden plough-shares, and hoes made of sticks with crooked ends. 150 MAKING STEEL. CHAP. XII. After all this, the iron is not yet fit for a knife, at least for such a knife as an Englishman may buy for a shilling. Many nations would, however, be thankful for a little bit of it, and nations too in whose countries there is no want of iron-ore. But they have no knowledge of the method of making iron, and have no furnaces or machinery. When our ships sail among the people of the eastern islands, those people do not ask for gold. " Iron, iron !" is the call ; and he who can exchange his best commodity for a rusty nail or a bit of iron hoop is a fortunate individual. "We are not satisfied with that in the best form, which is a treasure to those people in the worst. "We must have a knife, not of iron, but of steel, a substance that will bear a keen edge without either breaking or bending. In order to get that, we must again change the nature of our material. How is that to be done ? The oftener that iron is heated and hammered, it becomes the softer and more ductile ; and as the heating and hammering forced the carbon^ out of it, if we give it the carbon back again, we shall harden it ; but it happens that we also give it other properties, by restoring its carbon, when the iron has once been in a ductile state. For this purpose, bars or pieces of iron are buried in powdered charcoal, covered up in a vessel, and kept at a red heat for a greater or less number of hours, according to the object desired. There are niceties in the process, which it is not necessary to explain, that produce the peculiar quality of steel, as distinguished from cast-iron. If the operation of heating the iron in charcoal is continued too long, or the heat is too great, the iron becomes cast steel, and cannot be welded ; but if it is not melted in the opera- tion, it can be worked with the hammer in the same man- ner as iron. In each case, however, it has acquired the property upon which the keenness of the knife depends ; and the chief dif- ference between the cast steel and the steel that can bear to be hammered is, that cast steel takes a keener edge, but is more easily broken. The property which it has acquired is that of bearing to CHAP. XII. SHEFFIELD MANUFACTURES. 151 be tempered. If it be made very hot, and plunged into cold water, and kept there till it is quite cooled, it is so hard that it will cut iron, but it is brittle. In this state the workman brightens the surface, and lays the steel upon a piece of hot iron, and holds it to the fire till it becomes of a colour which he knows from experience is a test of the proper state of the process. Then he plunges it again into water, and it has the degree of hardness that he wants. The grinding a knife, and the polishing it, even when it has acquired the requisite properties of steel, if they were not done by machinery, would cost more than the whole price of a knife upon which machinery is used. A travel- ling knife-grinder, with his treadle and wheels, has a ma- chine, but not a very perfect one. The Sheffield knife-maker grinds the knife at first upon wheels of immense size, turned by water or steam, and moving so quickly that they appear to stand still the eye cannot follow the motion. With these aids the original grinding and polishing cost scarcely anything ; while the travelling knife-grinder charges two pence for the labour of himself and his wheel in just sharpening it. The " Sheffield whittle " is as old as the time of Edward III., as we know from the poet Chaucer. Sheffield is still the metropolis of steel. It is in the change of iron into steel by a due admixture of carbon by hammering, by casting, by melting that the natural powers of Sheffield, her water and her coal, have become of such value. "Wherever there is a stream with a fall, there is the grind- ing-wheel at work : and in hundreds of workshops the nicer labour of the artificer is fashioning the steel into every instrument which the art of man can devise, from the scythe of the mower to the lancet of the surgeon. The machinery that made the steel has called into action the skill that makes the file-cutter. No machine can make a file. The file-cutter with a small hammer can cut notch after notch in a piece of softened steel, without a guide or gauge, even to the number of a hundred notches in an 152 SHEFFIELD MANUFACTURES. CHAP. XII. SHEFFIELD MANUFACTURES. 153 inch. It is one out of many things in which skilled labour triumphs over the uniformity of operation which belongs to ajnachine. The cutting of files alone in Great Britain gives employment to more than six thousand persons. This is one of the many instances in which it is evident that the application of machinery to the arts calls into action an almost infinite variety of handicrafts. An ordi- nary workman can obtain a knife for the price of a few hours' labour. The causes are easily seen. Every part of the labour that can be done by machinery is so done. One turn of a wheel, one stroke of a steam-engine, one pinch of a pair of rollers, or one blow of a die, will do more in a second than a man could do in a month. One man, also, has but one thing to do in connexion with the machinery ; and when the work of the hand succeeds to the work of the wheel or the roller, the one man, like the file-cutter, has still but one thing to do. In course of time he comes to do twenty times as much as if he were constantly shifting from one thing to another. The value of the work that a man does is not to be measured in all cases by the time and trouble that it cost him individually, but by the market value of what he produces ; which value is determined, as far as labour is concerned, by the price paid for doing it in the best and most expeditious mode. And does not all this machinery, and this economy of labour, it may still be said, deprive many workmen of em- ployment? No. By these means the iron trade gives bread to hundreds, .where otherwise it would not have given bread to one. There are more hands employed at the iron-works than there would have been if there had been no machinery ; because without machinery men could not produce iron cheap enough to be generally used. The machinery that is now employed in the iron trade, not only enables the people to be supplied cheaply with all sorts of articles of iron, but it enables a great number of people to find employment, not in the iron trade only, but in all other trades, who otherwise could not have been employed ; and it enables everybody to do more work with 154 BRITISH MINERALS. CHAP. XII. the same exertion by giving them better tools ; while it makes all more comfortable by furnishing them with more commodious domestic utensils. There are thousands of families on the face of ihe earth, that would be glad to exchange all they have for a tin kettle, or an iron pot, which can be bought anywhere in the three kingdoms for a shilling or two. And could the poor man in this country but once see how even the rich man in some other places must toil day after day before he can scrape or grind a stone so as to be able to boil a little water in it, or make it serve for a lamp, he would account himself a poor man no more. An English gipsy carries about with him more of the conveniences of life than are enjoyed by the chiefs or rulers in countries which naturally have much finer climates than that of England. But they have no machinery, and therefore they are wretched. Great Britain is a country rich in other minerals than iron-stone and coal. Our earliest ancestors are recorded to have exchanged tin with maritime people who came to our shores. They had lead also, which was cast into oblong blocks during the Roman occupation of the island, and which bear the imperial stamp. At the beginning of the eighteenth century we worked tin into pewter, which, in the shape of plates, had superseded wooden trenchers. But we raised and smelted no copper, importing it unwrought. The valuable tin and copper mines of Cornwall were im- perfectly worked in the middle of the last century, because the water which overflowed them was only removed by hydraulic engines, the best of which was introduced in 1700. When Watt had reconstructed the steam-engine, steam-power began to be employed in draining the Cornwall mines. In 1780, 24,443 tons of copper-ore were raised, producing 2932 tons of copper. In 1850, 155,025 tons of ore were obtained, producing 12,254 tons of copper. The tin-mines produced 1600 tons in 1750, and 10,719 tons in 1849. The produce of the lead-mines has not been accu- rately estimated. In all mining operations, conducted as they are in CHAP. XII. TIX ; COPPER ; LEAD. Io5 modern times, and in our own country, we must either go without the article produced, whether coal, or iron, or lead, or copper, if the machines were abolished, or we must employ human labour, in works the most painful, at a price which would not only render existence unbearable, but destroy it altogether. The people, in that case, would be in the condition of the unhappy natives of South America, when the Spaniards resolved to get gold at any cost of human suffering. The Spaniards had no machines but pickaxes and spades to put in the hands of the poor Indians. They compelled them to labour incessantly with these, and half the people were destroyed. Without machinery, in places where people can obtain even valuable ore for nothing, the collection and preparation of metals is hardly worth the labour. Mungo Parke describes the sad condition of the Africans who are always washing gold-dust ; and we have seen in Derbyshire a poor man separating small particles of lead from the limestone, or spar, of that country, and unable to earn a shilling a day by the process. A man of capital erects lead-works, and in a year or two obtains an adequate profit, and employs many labourers. It may enable us, in addition to our slight notices of quan- tities produced, to form something like an accurate conception of the vast mineral industry of this country, if we give the aggregate of men employed as miners and metal-workers, according to the census of 1851. Of coal-miners there were 216,366 ; of iron-miners, 27,098 ; of copper-miners, 18,468 ; of tin-miners, 12,912; of lead-miners, 21,617. This is a total of 296,461. In the manufacture of various articles of iron and steel, in addition to the iron and coal miners, who cannot be accurately distinguished, there are employed 281,578 male workers, and 18,807 female; and in the ma- nufacture of articles of brass and other mixed metals, 46,076 ; of which number 8370 are females. The workers in metal thus enumerated amount to 542,922. "We may add, from the class of persons engaged in mechanic pro- ductions, in which we find 48,050 engine and machine makers, and 7429 gunsmiths, a number that will raise 156 MINERS AND METAL-WORKERS. CHAP. XI f. the aggregate of miners and workers in metals to 600,000 persons. The boldness of some of the operations which are conducted in this department of industry, the various skill of the labourers, and the vastness of the aggre- gate results, impress the mind with a sense of power that almost belongs to the sublime. The fables of mythology are tame when compared with these realities of science. Vulcan, with his anvils in Jtna, is a feeble instrument by the side of the steam-hammer that forges an anchor, or the hydraulic press that lifts a bridge. A knot of Cupids co- operating for the fabrication of their barbed arrows is the poetry of painting applied to the arts. But there is higher poetry in that triumph of knowledge, and skill, and union of forces, which fills a furnace with fifty thousand pounds of molten iron, and conducts the red-hot stream to the enormous mould which is to produce a cylinder without a flaw. From Albani. CHAP. XIII. CONVEYANCE OF COAL. 157 CHAPTEE XIII. Conveyance and extended use of coal Consumption at various periods Condition of the roads in the seventeenth and eighteenth centuries Advantages of good roads Want of roads in Australia Turnpike-roads Canals Railway of 1680 Railway statistics. WE have seen how by machinery more than thirty -five million tons of coal now become one of the very first necessaries of life are obtained, which without machinery could not be obtained at all in the thousandth part of the quantity; and which, consequently, would be a thousand times the price would, in fact, be precious stones, instead of common fuel. Engines or machines, of some kind or other, not only keep the pits dry and raise the coals to the surface, but convey them to the ship upon railroads ; the ship, itself a machine, carries them round all parts of the coast ; barges and boats convey them along the rivers and canals ; and, within these few years, railways have carried the coals of the north into remote places in the southern and other counties, where what was called " sea-coal," from its being carried coastwise, was scarcely known as an article of domestic use. The inhabitants of such places had no choice but to consume wood and turf for every domestic purpose. Through the general consumption of wood instead of coal, a fire for domestic use in France is a great deal dearer than a fire in England ; because, although the coal- pits are not to be found at every man's door, nor within many miles of the doors of some men, machinery at the pits, and ships and barges, and railways, which are also machinery, enable most men to enjoy the blessings of a 158 CONSUMPTION OF COAL. ._ CHAP. XIII. coal fire at a much cheaper rate than a fire of wood, which is not limited in its growth to any particular district. Without the machinery to bring coals to his door,*not one man out of fifty of the present population of England could have had the power of warming himself in winter; any more than without the machines and implements of farming he could obtain food, or without those of the. arts he could procure clothing. The sufferings produced by a want of fuel cannot be estimated by those who have abundance. In Normandy, very recently, such was the scarcity of wood, that persons engaged in various works of hand, as lace-making by the pillow, absolutely sat up through the winter nights in the barns of the farmers, where cattle were littered down, that they might be kept warm by the animal heat around them. They slept in the day, and were warmed by being in the same outhouse with cows and horses at night ; and thus they worked under every disadvantage, because fuel was scarce and very dear. Coals were consumed in London in the time of Queen Elizabeth; but their use was, no doubt, very Jimited. Shakspere, who always refers to the customs of his own time, makes Dame Quickly speak of " sitting in my Dolphin-chamber at the round table, by a sea-coal fire, on Wednesday in Whitsun week." But Mrs. Quickly was a luxurious person, who had plate and tapestry and gilt goblets. Harrison, in his ' Description of Britain,' at the same period, says, that coal is " used in the cities and towns that lie about the coast;" but he adds, "I marvel not a little that there is no trade of ihese into Sussex and South- amptonshire ; for want thereof the smiths do work their iron with charcoal." He adds, with great truth, " 1 think that far carriage be the only cause." The consumption of coal in London in the last year of Charles II. (1685) amounted to three hundred and fifty thousand tons. This was really a large consumption, however insignificant it may sound when compared with the modern demand of the metropolis. In 1801 there were imported into London about a million tons of coals. In CHAP. XIII. IMPORTANCE OF ROADS. 159 1850, three million six hundred thousand tons were brought to Jhe London market. The average contract price in the ten years ending 1810 was 45s. 6d. ; in the ten years ending 1850 it was 18s. 6d. But in 1824 the oppressive duty of 7s. 6d. per ton on seaborne coals was reduced to 4s. ; and in 1831 the duty was wholly repealed. It is the boast of our present fiscal system that the chief materials of manufacture, and the great necessaries and conveniences of life, are no longer made dear by injudicious taxation. The chief power which produces coal and iron cheap is that of machinery. It is the same power which distributes these bulky articles through the country, and equalizes the cost in a considerable degree to the man who lives in London and the man who lives in Durham or Staffordshire. The difference in cost is the price of transport ; and machinery, applied in various improved ways, is every year lessening the cost of conveyance, and thus equalizing prices through- out the British Islands. The same applications of mecha- nical power enable a man to move from one place to another with equal ease, cheapness, and rapidity. Quick travelling has become cheaper than slow travelling. The time saved remains for profitable labour. About a hundred and ninety years ago, when the first turnpike-road was formed in England, a mob broke the toll-gates, because they thought an unjust tax was being put upon them. They did not perceive that this small tax for the use of a road would confer upon them innu- merable comforts, and double and treble the means of em- ployment. If there were no road, and no bridge, a man would take six months in finding his way from London to Edinbuigh, if indeed he found it at all. He would have to keep the line of the hills, in older that he might come upon the rivers at particular spots, where he would be able to jump over them with ease, or wade through them without danger. AVhen a man has gone up the bank of a river for twelve miles in one direction, in order to be able to cross it, he 160 ROADS IN THE 17xn AND 18TH CENTURIES. CHAP. XIII. may find that, before lie proceeds one mile in the line of his journey, he has to go along the bank of another river for twelve miles in the opposite direction ; and the courses of the rivers may be so crooked that he is really farther from his journey's end at night than he was in the morning. He may come to the side of a lake, and not know the end at which the river, too broad and deep for him to cross, runs out ; and he may go twenty miles the wrong way, and thus lose forty. Difficulties such as these are felt by every traveller in an uncivilized country. In reading books of travels, in Africa for instance, we sometimes wonder how it is that the adventurer proceeds a very few miles each day. We forget that he has no roads. Two hundred years ago even one hundred years ago in some places fifty years ago the roads of England were wholly unfit for general traffic and the conveyance of heavy goods. Pack-horses mostly carried on the communication in the manufacturing districts. The roads were as unfit for moving commodities of bulk, such as coal, wool, and corn, as the sandy roads of Poland were thirty years ago, and as many still are. Mr. Jacob, who went upon the continent to see what stores of wheat existed, found that in many parts the original price of wheat was doubled by the price of land conveyance for a very few miles. In 1663 the first turnpike act, which was so offensive to some of the people, was carried through Parliament. It was for the repair of the " ancient highway and post-road leading from London to York," which was declared to be " very ruinous, and become almost impassable." This was, on many accounts, one of the most important lines of the country. Let us see in what state it was seventeen years after the passing of the act. In the * Diary of Ralph Thoresby,' under the date of October, 1680, we have this entry : " To Ware, twenty miles from London, a most pleasant road in summer, and as bad in winter, because of the depth of the cart-ruts." Take another road a little later. In December, 1703, Charles III., King of Spain, CHAP. XIII. HIGHLAND ROADS. 161 slept at Petwortli on his way from Portsmouth to Windsor, and Prince George of Denmark went to meet him there by desire of the Queen. The distance from Windsor to Pet- worth is about forty miles. In the relation of the journey given by one of the prince's attendants, he states, " We set out at six in the morning, by torchlight, to go to Pet- worth, and did not get out of the coaches (save only when we were overturned or stuck fast in the mire) till we ar- rived at our journey's end. 'Twas a hard service for the Prince to sit fourteen hours in the coach that day without eating anything, and passing through the worst ways I ever saw in my life. We were thrown but once indeed in going, but our coach, which was the leading one, and his Highness's body-coach, would have suffered very much, if the nimble ooors of Sussex had not frequently poised it, or supported it with their shoulders, from Godalming almost to Petworth, and the nearer we approached the duke's house the more inaccessible it seemed to be. The last nine miles of the way cost us six hours' time to conquer them." From Hor- sham, the county-town of Sussex, about the beginning of the reign of George III., the roads were never in such a condition as to allow sheep or cattle to be driven on them to the London market ; and consequently, there not being sufficient demand at home to give a remunerating price, the beef and mutton were sold at a rate far below the average to the small population in the country , which was thus isolated from the common channels of demand and supply. In the Highlands of Scotland, at the beginning of the present century, the communication from one district to another was attended with such difficulty and danger, that some of the counties were excused from sending jurors to the circuit to assist in the administration of justice. The poor people inhabiting these districts were almost entirely cut off from intercourse with the rest of mankind. The Highlands were of less advantage to the British empire than the most distant colony. Parliament resolved to remedy the evil ; and, accordingly, from 1802 to 1817, the sum of two hundred thousand pounds was laid out in M 162 ADVANTAGES OF GOOD ROADS. CHAP. XIII. making roads and bridges in these mountainous districts. Mark the important consequences to the people of the Highlands, as described by Mr. Telford, the engineer of the roads : Telford. " Since these roads were made accessible, wheelwrights and cartwrights have been established, the plough has been introduced, and improved tools and utensils are used. The plough was not previously used in general ; in the interior and mountainous parts they frequently used crooked sticks with iron on them, drawn or pushed along. The moral habits of the great mass of the working classes are changed ; they see that they may depend on their own exertions for support. This goes on silently, and is scarcely perceived until apparent by the results. I consider these improve- ments one of the greatest blessings ever conferred upon any country. About two hundred thousand pounds has been granted in fifteen years. It has been the means of advancing the country at least one hundred years." There are many parts of Ireland which sustained the same miseries and inconveniences from the want of roads as the Highlands of Scotland did at the beginning of the present century. In 1823 Mr. Nimmo, the engineer, stated to parliament, that the fertile plains of Limerick, Cork, and CHAP. XIII. ADVANTAGES OF GOOD ROADS. 163 Kerry, were separated from each, other by a deserted country, presenting an impassable barrier between them. This region was the retreat of smugglers, robbers, and culprits of every description; for the tract was a wild, neglected, and deserted country, without roads, culture, or civilization. The government ordered roads to be made through this barren district. We will take one example of the immediate effect of this road-making, as described by a witness before Parliament: "A hatter, at Castle-island, had a small field through which the new road passed ; this part next the town was not opened until 1826. In making arrangements with him for his damages, he said that he ought to make me (the engineer) a present of all the land he had, for that the second year I was at the roads he sold more hats to the people of the mountains alone than he did for seven years before to the high and low lands together. Although he never worked a day on the roads, he got comfort and prosperity by them." The hatter of Castle-island got comfort and prosperity by the roads, because the man who had to sell and the man who had to buy were brought closer to each other by means of the roads. When there were no roads, the hatter kept his goods upon the shelf, and the labourer in the mountains went without a hat. When the labourer and the hatter were brought together by the roads, the hatter soon sold off his stock, and the manufacturer of hats went to work to produce him a new stock ; while the labourer, who found the advantage of having a hat, also went'to work to earn more money, that he might pay for another when he should require it. It became a fashion to wear hats, and of course a fashion to work hard, and to save time, to be able to pay for them. Thus the road created industry on both sides, on the side of the producer of hats and that of the consumer. Instances such as these of the want of cqmmunication between one district and another are now very rare indeed in these islands. But if we look to countries intimately connected with our own, we shall find no lack of examples M 2 164 WANT OF ROADS IN AUSTRALIA. CHAP. XIII. of a state of commercial intercourse attending a want of roads. The gold-fields of Australia have largely stimulated the export of manufactured goods from Great Britain. One of the colonists at Sydney writes thus to the chief organ of intelligence in England : " The roads throughout the colony, bad as they were, are now worse than ever. The inland mails cannot run by night, and stick fast and upset in all directions by day. Communication with the interior towns is possible only at enormous cost. The price of con- veying a ton of goods from Sydney to Bathurst, about 130 miles, is eight times the freight of the same quantity from London to Sydney. In cost of conveyance London and Liverpool are, in fact, only sixteen miles from Sydney by land, though the distance by sea is 16,000. We here see daily the most striking illustration of the truth that ' Seas but join the regions they divide.' Cargoes are poured into the seaports with the greatest facility, and then the distribution is suddenly checked. Hence the enormous rents of stores, cessation of demand, and the necessity of forced sales, with the natural conse- quence heavy losses to the exporters, who perhaps wonder how trade with Australia can be so unprofitable, scarcely suspecting one of the main causes of its uncertainty. Eng- lish merchants might do worse than help to open up the internal communications of this continent." The city of Sydney has a wharfage two miles in extent. The communication from the port to the interior is thus described : " Imagine the Great Western Railroad, in- stead of terminating in a splendid station, with every means of conveying and removing goods to roads in every direc- tion, ending suddenly in swamp, forest, and sand, through which, by dint of lashing, and swearing, and unloading, and reloading, a team of bullocks and a dray drag their Manchester goods ten miles per diem, at 50?. or 80?. per ton for the journey. The channel of trade is all that civiliza- tion, science, and capital can make it, from the threshold of the Manchester factory to the edge of the Sydney wharf. CHAP. XIII. WANT OF ROADS IN AUSTRALIA. 165 There it breaks suddenly, and beyond all is primitive, rude, and barbarous in the means of conveyance. The bale of goods last unloaded from the railway train is transferred to the bullock dray, to begin its 'crawl* up the country, costing all its freight from England for every twenty miles. It cannot be otherwise. There are no passable roads." It is impossible to have a more vivid picture than this of the sudden impediment which the commercial enterprise of one country receives from the want of the commonest means of communication in another. The bullock-cart of Syria, and the Australian bullock-cart, would be useful in- Modern Syrian Cart. struments if they had roads to work in. But there must be general civilization before there are extensive roads. Carts and bullocks are of readier creation than roads. It has taken eighteen centuries to make our English roads, and the Romans, the kings of the world, were our great road- makers, whose works still remain : " labouring pioneers, A multitude with spades and axes arm'd, To lay hills plain, tell woods, or valleys fill, Or where plain was raise hill, or overlay With bridges rivers proud, as with a yoke." PARADISE REGAINED, 166 TURNPIKE-ROADS. CHAP. XIII. What the Romans were to England, the colonized English must be to Australia. But the discovery of great natural wealth, the vigour of the race, the intercourse with commer- cial nations of the old and new world, the free institutions which have been transplanted there without any arbitrary meddling or chilling patronage, will effect in a quarter of a century what the parent people, struggling with ignorant rulers and feeble resources, have been ages in accom- plishing. It is encouraging to all nations to see what we have accomplished in this direction. In 1839 the turnpike-roads of England and "Wales amounted to 21,962 miles, and in Scotland to 3666 miles ; while in England and Wales the other highways amounted to 104,772 miles. The turnpike-roads were maintained at a cost of a million a year ; and the parish highways at a cost of about twelve hundred thousand pounds. There were at that time nearly eight thousand toll-gates in England and Wales. There had been two thousand miles of turnpike- roads, and ten thousand miles of other highways, added to the number existing in 1814. But the improvements of all our roads during that period had been enormous. Science was brought to bear upon the turnpike lines. Common sense changed their form and re-organized their material. The most beautiful engineering was applied to raise valleys and lower hills. Mountains were crossed with ease ; rivers were spanned over by massive piers, or by bridges which hung in the air like fairy platforms. The names of M' Adam and Telford became " household words ;" and even parish surveyors, stimulated by example, took thought how to mend their ways. The Canals of England date only for a hundred years back. The first Act of Parliament for the construction of a canal was passed in 1755. The Duke of Bridge water obtained his first Act of Parliament in 1759, for the con- struction of those noble works which will connect his me- mory with those who have been the greatest benefactors of their country. The great manufacturing prosperity of Eng- CHAP. XIII. CANALS. 167 land dates from this period ; and it will be for ever asso- ciated with the names of Watt, the improver and almost the inventor of the steam-engiife, of Arkwright, the pre- siding genius of cotton-spinning, and of Brindley, the great engineer of canals. In the conception of the vast works which Brindley undertook for the Duke of Bridge- water, there was an originality and boldness which may have been carried further in recent engineering, but which a century ago were the creators of works which were looked upon as marvels. To cut tunnels through hills to carry mounds across valleys to build aqueducts over navigable rivers were regarded then as wild and impracticable conceptions. Another engineer, at Brindley's desire, was called in to give an opinion as to a proposed aqueduct over the river Irwell. He looked at the spot where the aqueduct was to be built, and exclaimed, " I have often heard of castles in the air, but never before was shown the place where any of them were to be erected." Brindley's castle in the air still stands firm ; and his example, and that of his truly illustrious employer, have covered our land with many such fabrics, which owe their origin not to the government but to the people. The navigable canals of England are more than two thousand miles in length. For the slow transport of heavy goods they hold their place against the competition of rail- roads, and continue to be important instruments of internal commerce. When railways were first projected it is said that an engineer, being asked what would become of the canals if the new mode of transit were adopted, answered that they would be drained and become the beds of railways. Like many other predictions connected with the last great medium of internal communication, the engineer was wholly mistaken in his prophecy. The great principle of exchange between one part of this empire and another part, which has ceased to be an affair oi restrictions and jealousies, has covered the island with good roads, with canals, and finally with railways. The railway and the steam-carnage have carried the principle 168 CASALS. CHAP. XIII. of diminishing the price of conveyance, and therefore of commodities, by machinery, to an extent which makes all other illustrations almost unnecessary. A road with a waggon moving on it is a mechanical combination; a canal, with its locks, and towing-paths, and boats gliding along almost without effort, is a higher mechanical combi- nation ; a railway, with its locomotive engine, and carriage after carriage dragged along at the rate of thirty or forty CHAP. XIII. RAILWAY OF 1680. 169 miles an hour, is the highest of such mechanical combina- tions. The force applied upon a level turnpike-road, which is required to move 1800 Ibs., if applied to drag a canal- boat will move 55,500 Ibs., both at the rate of 2 miles per hour. But we want economy in time as well as economy in the application of motive power. It has been attempted to apply speed to canal travelling. Up to four miles an hour the canal can convey an equal weight more econo- mically than a railroad ; but after a certain velocity is ex- ceeded, that is 13 miles an hour, the horse on the turnpike- road can drag as much as the canal-team. Then comes in the great advantage of the railroad. The same force that is required to draw 1900 Ibs. upon a canal, at a rate above 13 miles an hour, will draw 14,400 Ibs. upon a railway, at the rate of 13 miles an hour. The producers and con- sumers are thus brought together, not only at the least cost of transit, but at the least expenditure of time* The road, the canal, and the railway have each their distinctive advantages ; and it is worthy of note how they work together. From every railway station there must be a road to the adjacent towns and villages, and a better road than was once thought necessary. Horses are required as much as ever, although mails and post-chaises are no longer the glories of the road ; and the post finds its way into every hamlet by the united agency of the road and the railway. Roger North described a Newcastle railway in 1680: " Another thing that is remarkable is their way-leaves ; for when men have pieces of ground between the colliery and the river, they sell leave to lead coals over their ground ; and so dear that the owner of a rood of ground will expect 20?. per annum for this leave. The manner of the carriage is by laying rails of timber, from the colliery down to the river, exactly straight and parallel ; and bulky carts are made with four rowlets fitting these rails ; whereby the carriage is so easy that the horse will draw down four or five chaldron of coals, and is an immense benefit to the coal-merchant." Who would have thought that this con- 170 RAILWAY STATISTICS. CHAP. XIII. trivance would have led to no large results till a hundred and fifty years had passed away ? Who could have believed that " the rails of timber, exactly straight and parallel," and the " bulky carts with four rowlets exactly fitting the rails," would have changed the face, and to a great degree the destinies, of the world ? If we add to the road, the canal, and the railway, the steam-boat traffic of our own coasts, we cannot hesitate to believe that the whole territory of Great Britain and Ireland is more compact, more closely united, more acces- sible, than was a single county two centuries ago. It may be said, without exaggeration, that it would now be impos- sible for a traveller in England to set himself down in any accessible situation where the post from London would not reach him in twelve hours. When the first edition of the ' Results of Machinery' was published in 1831, we said that the post from London would reach any part of England in three days ; and that, "fifty }*ears before, such a quickness of communication would have been considered beyond the compass of human means." In twenty-four years we have so diminished the practical amount of distance between one part of Great Britain and another, that the post from London to Aberdeen is carried five hundred and forty miles in little more than twenty hours. It is this wonderful rapidity of communication, in connection with the cheapness of postage, which has multiplied letters five-fold since 1839, when the penny rate was introduced. In that year the number of chargeable and franked letters distributed in the United Kingdom was eighty -two millions ; in 1853 it was four hundred and ten millions. The annual returns of our railways furnish some of the most astounding figures of modern statistics. On the 1st of January 1854 there were open in England 5811 miles of railway ; in Scotland, 995 miles ; in Ireland, 834 miles. In 1853 there were one hundred and two million passengers conveyed, who travelled one billion five hundred million miles, being an average of nearly fifteen miles to each passenger. In England considerably less than one-half of CHAP. XIII. KAIL WAY STATISTICS. 171 the passengers were by penny-a-mile and other third-class trains; in Ireland one-half; and in Scotland two-thirds. The receipts from goods traffic exceed those of the passenger traffic in England and Scotland, but are less in Ireland. These are indeed wonderful results from a system which was wholly experimental twenty-five years ago. Kailway Locomotive. When William Hutton, in the middle of last century, started from Nottingham (where he earned a scanty living as a bookbinder) and walked to London and back for the purpose of buying tools, he was nine days from home, six of which were spent in going and returning. He travelled on foot, dreading robbers, and still more dreading the cost of food and lodging at public-houses. His whole expenses during this toilsome expedition were only ten shillings and eight pence ; but he contented himself with the barest neces- saries, keeping the money for his topis sewed up in his shirt- collar. If William Hutton had lived in these days, he would, upon sheer principles of economy, have gone to London by the Nottingham train at a cost of twenty shillings for his transit, in one forenoon, and returned in another. The twenty 172 RAILWAY STATISTICS. CHAP. XIII. shillings would have been sacrificed for his conveyance, but he would have had a week's labour free to go to work with his new tools ; he need 'not have sewed his money in his shirt-collar for fear of thieves; and his shoes would not have been worn out and hid feet blistered in his toilsome march of two hundred and fifty miles. A very few years ago it was not uncommon to hear men say that this wonderful communication, the greatest triumph of modern skill, was not a blessing ; for the machinery had put somebody out of employ. Baron Humboldt, a tra- veller in South America, tells us that, upon a road being made over a part of the great chain of mountains called the Andes, the government was petitioned against the road by a body of men who for centuries had gained a living by carrying travellers in baskets strapped upon their backs over the fearful rocks, which only these guides could cross. Which was the better course to make the road, and create the thousand employments belonging to freedom of inter- course, for these very earners of travellers, and for all other men ; or to leave the mountains without a road, that the poor guides might gain a premium for risking their lives in an unnecessary peril ? But, looking at their direct results, we have no doubt that railroads have greatly mul- tiplied the employments connected with the conveyance of goods and passengers. In 1853 there were eighty thousand persons employed upon the railroads of the United King- dom in various capacities. We do not include those employed in working upon lines that are not open for traffic, which class in England amounted to twenty-five thousand persons in 1853. But the indirect occupations called into activity by railroads are so numerous as to defy all attempts at calculating the numbers engaged in them. No doubt many occupations were changed by railroads : there were fewer coachmen, guards, postboys, waggoners, and others, on such a post-road as that from London to York. But it is equally certain that throughout the kingdom there are far more persons employed in conducting the internal com- munication of the country, effecting that great addition to CHAP. XIII. RAILWAY STATISTICS. 173 its productive powers, without which all other production would languish and decay. The census returns of 1851 give the number of three hundred and eighty-six thousand males so employed, including those engaged on our rivers, canals, and coast traffic. The vast extension, and the new channels, of our foreign commerce have been greatly affected by the prodigious facilities of our internal communication. They have created, in a measure, special departments of industry, which can be most advantageously pursued in particular localities; but which railways and steam-vessels have united with the whole kingdom, with its colonies, with the habitable globe. The reindeer connects the Laplander with the markets of Sweden, and draws his sledge over the frozen wilds at a speed and power of continuance only rivalled by the loco- motive. The same beneficent Providence which has given this animal to the inhabitant of the polar regions, not only for food, for clothing, but for transport to associate him with some civilization, has bestowed upon us the mighty power of steam, to connect us with the entire world, from which we were once held to be wholly separated. Reindeer. 174 HOUSES. CHAP. XIV. Beaver. CHAPTER XIY. Houses The pyramids Mechanical power Carpenters' tools American machinery for building Bricks Slate Household fittings and furniture Paper-hangings Carpets Glass Pottery Improvements effected through the reduction or repeal of duties on domestic requirements. THE beaver builds his huts with the tools which nature has given him. He gnaws pieces of wood in two with his sharp teeth, so sharp that the teeth of a similar ;animal, the agouti, form the only cutting-tool which some rude nations possess. When the beavers desire to move a large piece of wood, they join in a body to drag it along. Man has not teeth that will cut wood : but he has reason, which directs him to the choice of much more perfect tools. CHAP. XIV. THE PYRAMIDS. 175 Some of the great monuments of antiquity, such as the pyramids of Egypt, are constructed of enormous blocks of stone brought from distant quarries. We have no means of estimating, with any accuracy, the mechanical knowledge possessed by the people engaged in these works. It was, probably, very small, and, consequently, the human labour employed in such edifices was not only enormous in quan- tity, but exceedingly painful to the workmen. The Egyp- tians, according to Herodotus, a Greek writer who lived two thousand five hundred years ago, hated the memory of the kings who built the pyramids. He tells us that the great pyramid occupied a hundred thousand men for twenty years in its erection, without counting the workmen who were employed in hewing the stones, and in conveying them to the spot where the pyramid was built. Herodotus speaks of this work as a torment to the people ; and doubt- less the labour engaged in raising huge masses of stone, that was extensive enough to employ a hundred thousand men for twenty years, which is equal to two millions of men for one year, must have been fearfully tormenting without machinery, or with very imperfect machinery. It has been calculated that about half the steam-engines of England, worked by thirty-six thousand men, would raise the same quantity of stones from the quarry, and elevate them to the same height as the great pyramid, in the short time of eighteen hours. The people of Egypt groaned for twenty years under this enormous work. The labourers groaned because they were sorely taxed ; and the rest of the people groa,ned because they had to pay the labourers. The labourers lived, it is true, upon the wages of their labour, that is, they were paid in food kept like horses as the reward of their work. Herodotus says that it was recorded on the pyramid that the onions, radishes, and garlic which the labourers consumed, cost sixteen hundred talents of silver: an immense sum, equivalent to several million pounds. But the onions, radishes, and garlic, the bread, and clothes of the labourer, were wrung out of the profitable labour of the rest of the people. The building of 176 THE PYRAMIDS. CHAP. XIV. the pyramid was an unprofitable labour. There was no immediate or future source of produce in the pyramid ; it produced neither food, nor fuel, nor clothes, nor any other necessary. The labour of a hundred thousand men for twenty years, stupidly employed upon this monument, without an object beyond that of gratifying the pride of the tyrant who raised it, was a direct tax upon the profitable labour of the rest of the people. " Instead of useful works, like nature great, Enormous cruel wonders crush'd the land/' But admitting that it is sometimes desirable for nations and governments to erect monuments which are not of direct utility, which may have an indirect utility in re- cording the memory of great exploits, or in producing feelings of reverence or devotion, it is clearly an ad- vantage that these works, as well as all other works, should be performed in the cheapest manner ; that is, that human labour should derive every possible assistance from mecha- CHAP. XIV. MECHANICAL POWER. 177 nical aid. We will give an illustration of the differences of the application of mechanical aid in one of the first operations of building, the moving a block of stone. The following statements are the result of actual experiment upon a stone weighing ten hundred and eighty pounds. To drag this stone along the smoothed floor of the quarry required a force equal to seven hundred and fifty-eight pounds. The same stone dragged over a floor of planks required six hundred and fifty-two pounds. The same stone placed on a platform of wood, and dragged over the same floor of planks, required six hundred and six pounds. When the two surfaces of wood were soaped as they slid over each other, the force required to drag the stone was reduced to one hundred and eighty-two pounds. When the same stone was placed upon rollers three inches in diameter, it required, to put it in motion along the floor of the quarry, a force only of thirty-four pounds ; and by the same rollers upon a wooden floor, a force only of twenty-eight pounds. With- out any mechanical aid, it would require the force of four or five men to set that stone in motion. With the mecha- nical aid of two surfaces of wood soaped, the same weight might be moved by one man. W^ith the more perfect me- chanical aid of rollers, the same weight might be moved by a very little child. From these statements it must be evident that the cost of a block of stone very much depends upon the quantity of labour necessary to move it from the quarry to the place where it is wanted to be used. We have seen that with the simplest mechanical aid labour may be reduced sixty- fold. With more perfect mechanical aid, such as that of water-carriage, the labour may be reduced infinitely lower. Thus, the streets of London are paved with granite from Scotland at a moderate expense. The cost of timber, which enters so largely into the cost of a house, is in a great degree the cost of transport. In countries where there are great forests, timber-trees are worth nothing where they grow, except there are ready means of transport. In many parts of North America, the N 178 MECHANICAL POWER. CHAP. XIV. great difficulty which the people find is in clearing the land of the timber. The finest trees are not only worthless, but are a positive incumbrance, except when they are growing upon the banks of a great river ; in which case the logs are thrown into the water, or formed into rafts, being floated several hundred miles at scarcely any expense. The same stream which carries them to a seaport turns a mill to saw the logs into planks; and when sawn into planks the timber is put on shipboard, and carried to distant countries where timber is wanted. Thus mechanical aid alone gives a value to the timber, and by so doing employs human labour. The stream that floats the tree, the sawing-mill that cuts it, the ship that carries it across the sea, enable men profitably to employ themselves in working it. "Without the stream, the mill, and the ship, those men would have no labour, because none could afford to bring the timber to their own doors. "What an infinite variety of machines, in combination with the human hand, is found in a carpenter's chest of tools ! The skilful hand of the workman is the power which sets these machines in motion ; just as the wind or the water is the power of a mill, or the elastic force of vapour the power of a steam-engine. When Mr. Boulton, the partner of the great James Watt, waited upon George III. to explain one of the improvements of the steam-engine which they had effected, the king said to him, " WTiat do you sell, Mr. Boulton ? " and the honest engineer answered, " What kings, sire, are all fond of power" There are people at Birmingham who let out power, that is, there are people who have steam-engines who will lend the use of them, by the day or the hour, to persons who require that saving of labour in their various trades ; so that a person who wants the strength of a horse, or half a horse, to turn a wheel for grinding, or for setting a lathe in motion, hires a room, or part of a room, in a mill, and has just as much as he requires. The power of a carpenter is in his hand, and the machines moved by that power are in his chest of tools. Every tool which he possesses has for its object to CHAP. xiv. CARPENTERS' TOOLS. 179 reduce labour, to save material, and to ensure accuracy- - the objects of all machines. What a quantity of waste both of time and stuff is saved by his foot-rule ! and when he chalks a bit of string and stretches it from one end of a plank to the other, to jerk off the chalk from the string, and thus produce an unerring line upon the face of the plank, he makes a little machine which saves him great labour. Every one of his hundreds of tools, capable of application to a vast variety of purposes, is an invention to save labour. Without some tool the carpenter's work could not be done at all by the human hand. A knife would do very laboriously what is done very quickly by a hatchet. The labour of using a hatchet, and the material which it wastes, are saved twenty times over by the saw. But when the more delicate operations of carpentry are required when the workman uses his planes, his rabbet-planes, his fillisters, his bevels, and his centre-bits what an infinitely greater quantity of labour is economized, and how beautifully that work is performed, which, without them, would be rough and imperfect! Every boy of mechanical ingenuity has tried with his knife to make a N 2 180 AMERICAN MACHINERY FOR BUILDIXG. CHAP. XIV. boat ; and with a knife only it is the work of weeks. Give him a chisel, and a gouge, and a vice to hold his wood, and the little boat is the work of a day. Let . a boy try to make a round wooden box, with a lid, having only his knife, and he must be expert indeed to produce anything that will be neat and serviceable. Give him a lathe and chisels, and he will learn to make a tidy box in half an hour. Nothing but absolute necessity can render it expedient to use an imperfect tool instead of a perfect. We sometimes see exhibitions of carving, "all done with the common penknife." Professor Willis has truly said, with reference to such weak boasting, " So far from admiring, we should pity the vanity and folly of such a display ; and the more, if the work should show a natural aptitude in the workman : for it is certain that, if he has made good work with a bad tool, he would make better with a good one." The Emperor Maximilian, at the beginning of the six- teenth century, ordered a woodcut to be engraved that should represent the carpentry operations of his time and country. This prince was, no doubt, proud of the advance of Germany in the useful arts. If the President of the United States were thus to record the advance of the republic of which he is the chief, he would show us his saw- mills and his planing-mills. The German carpenters, as we see, are reducing a great slab of wood into shape by the saw and the adze. The Americans have planing-mills, with cutters that make 4000 revolutions, and which plane boards eighteen feet long at the rate of fifty feet, per minute ; and while the face of the board is planed, it is tongued and grooved at the same time that is, one board is made to fit closely into another. But the Americans cany machinery much farther into the business of carpentry. Mr. Whit- worth tells us that "many works in various towns are occupied exclusively in making doors, window -frames, or staircases, by means of self-acting machinery, such as planing, tenoning, morticing, and jointing machines. They are able to supply builders with various parts of the wood- work required in building at a much cheaper rate than they CHAP. XIV. AMERICAN MACHINERY FOR BUILDING. 181 Carpenters and their tools. (From an old German woodcut.) can produce them in their own workshops without the aid of such machinery." By the use of those machines we are told that twenty men can make panelled doors at the rate of a hundred a day that is, one man can make five doors. A panelled door is a very expensive part of an English house ; and so are window-frames and staircases. If doors and windows and staircases can be made cheaper, more houses and better houses will be built ; and thus more carpenters will be employed in building than if those parts of a house were made by hand. The same principle applies to ma- chines as to tools. If carpenters had not tools to make houses, there would be few houses made ; and those that were made would be as rough as the hut of the savage who has no tools. The people would go without houses, and the carpenter would go without work, to say nothing of the people, who would also go without work, that now make tools for the carpenter. 182 BRICKS. CHAP. XIV. We build in this country more of brick than of stone, because brick-earth is found almost everywhere, and stone fit for building is found only in particular districts. Bricks used to pay the state a duty of five shillings and tenpence a thousand ; and yet at the kilns they were to be bought under forty shillings a thousand, which is less than a half- penny apiece. The government wisely resolved, in 1850, to repeal the excise-duty on bricks. In 1845 the duty on glass was repealed. In 1847 the timber-duties were reduced; and in 1848 they were further reduced. The ever-present necessities of the people the absolute want of house-accommodation for a population increasing so rapidly rendered it a paramount duty of the government no longer to let tax interfere with the cheap building of houses. Every invention that adds to cheapness acts in the same direction ; for although the direct taxes cease to press upon the various trades of building, the constant demand keeps bricks and timber at a price almost as high as before the removal or mitigation of the tax. But bricks, regarded as the production of a vast amount of labour, are intrinsically cheap. And why ? Because they are made by what is truly machinery; as they were made three thousand years ago by the Egyptians. The clay is ground in a horse-mill ; the wooden mould, in which every brick is made singly, is a copying machine. One brick is exactly like another brick. Every brick is of the form of the mould in which it is made. Without the mould the workman could not make the brick of uniform dimensions ; and without this uniformity the after labour of putting bricks together would be greatly increased. Without the mould the workman could not form the bricks quickly; his own labour would be increased ten-fold. The simple machine of the mould not only gives employ- ment to a great many brickmakers who would not be employed at all, but also to a great many bricklayers who would also want employment if the original cost of pro- duction were so enormously increased. There is another material for building which was little SLATE, 183 Egyptian labour in the brick-field. used at the beginning of the century. The consumption of slate in London alone was, in 1851, from thirty thousand to forty thousand tons per annum. The quarries of Wales principally supply this immense quantity ; but some slates are shipped from Lancashire and Westmorland, and from Scotland and Ireland. In the production of this one mate- rial, eight thousand quarriers are employed in Great Britain. Slates are not only used for roofing houses, but in slabs for 184: IR01SMONGERY. CHAP. XIV. cisterns and chimney-pieces. The great increase of the supply of water to houses by machinery led to a demand for a safer and cheaper material than lead for cisterns ; and slate supplied the want. How great a variety of things are contained in an iron- monger's shop ! Half his store consists of tools of one sort or another to save labour ; and the other half consists of articles of convenience or elegance most perfectly adapted to every possible want of the builder or the maker of fur- niture. The uncivilized man is delighted when he obtains a nail, any nail. A carpenter and joiner, who supply the wants of a highly civilized community, are not satisfied unless they have a choice of nails, from the finest brad to the largest clasp-nail. A savage thinks a nail will hold two pieces of wood together more completely than any- thing else in the world. It is seldom, however, that he can afford to put it to such a use. If it is large enough, he makes it into a chisel. An English joiner knows that screws will do the work more perfectly in some cases than any nail; and therefore we have as great a variety of screws as of nails. The commonest house built in England has hinges, and locks, and bolts. A great number are finished with ornamented knobs to door-handles, with bells and bell-pulls, and a thousand other things that have grown up into necessities, because they save domestic labour, and add to domestic comfort. And many of these things really are necessities. M. Say, a French writer, gives us an example of this ; and as his story is an amusing one, besides having a moral, we may as well copy it : " Being in the county," says he, " I had an example of one of those small losses which a family is exposed to through negligence. For the want of a latchet of small value, the wicket of a barn-yard leading to the fields was often left open. Every one who went through drew the door to : but as there was nothing to fasten the door with, it was always left flapping ; sometimes open, and sometimes shut. So the cocks and hens, and the chickens, got out, and were lost. One day a fine pig got out, and ran oft 7 into CHAP. XIV. IRONMONGERY. 185 the woods ; and after the pig ran all the people about the place, the gardener, and the cook, and the dairymaid. The gardener first caught sight of the runaway, and, hast- ening after it, sprained his ankle ; in consequence of which the poor man was not able to get out of the house again for a fortnight. The cook found, when she came back from pursuing the pig, that the linen she had left by the fire had fallen down and was burning ; and the dairymaid having, in her haste, neglected to tie up the legs of one of her cows, the cow had kicked a colt, which was in the same stable, and broken its leg. The gardener's lost time was worth twenty crowns, to say nothing of the pain he suf- fered. The linen which was burned, and the colt which was spoiled, were worth as much more. Here, then, was caused a loss of forty crowns, as well as much trouble, plague, and vexation, for the want of a latch which would not have cost threepence." M. Say's story is one of the many examples of the truth of the old proverb " for want of a nail the shoe was lost, for want of a shoe the horse was lost, for want of a horse the man was lost." Nearly all the great variety of articles in an ironmonger's shop are made by machinery. Without machinery they could not be made at all, or they would be sold at a price which would prevent them being commonly used. Some of the finer articles, such as a Bramah lock, or a Chubb's lock, could not be made at all, unless machinery had been called in to produce that wonderful accuracy, through which no one of a hundred thousand locks and keys shall be exactly like another lock and key. With machinery, the manufacture of ironmongery employs large numbers of artisans who would be otherwise unemployed. There are hundreds of ingenious men at Birmingham who go into business with a capital acquired by their savings as workmen, for the purpose of manufacturing some one single article used in finishing a house, such as the knob of a lock. All the heavy work of their trade is done by machinery. The cheapness of the article creates work- men ; and the savings of the workmen accumulate capital 186 HOUSEHOLD FURXITURE. CHAP. XIV. to be expended in larger works, and to employ more workmen. The furniture of a house, some may say the chairs, and tables, and bedsteads is made nearly altogether by hand. True. But tools are machines ; and further, we owe it to what men generally call machinery, that such furniture, even in the house of a very poor man, is more tasteful in its con- struction, and of finer material, than that possessed by a nobleman a hundred years ago. How is this ? Machinery (that is ships) has brought us much finer woods than we grow ourselves; and other machinery (the sawing-mill) has taught us how to render that fine wood very cheap, by economising the use of it. At a veneering-mill, that is, a mill which cuts a mahogany log into thin plates, much more delicately and truly, and in infinitely less time, than they could be cut by the hand, two hundred and forty square feet of mahogany are cut by one circular saw in one hour. A veneer, or thin plate, is cut off a piece of maho- gany, six feet six inches long, by twelve inches wide, in twenty-five seconds. What is the consequence of this ? A mahogany table is made almost as cheap as a deal one ; and thus the humblest family in England may have some article of mahogany, if it be only a tea-caddy. And let it not be said that deal furniture would afford as much hap- piness ; for a desire for comfort, and even for some degree of elegance, gives a refinement to the character, and, in a certain degree, raises our self-respect. Diogenes, who is said to have lived in a tub, was a great philosopher ; but it is not necessary to live in a tub to be wise and virtuous. Nor is that the likeliest plan for becoming so. The pro- bability is, that a man will be more wise and virtuous in proportion as he strives to surround himself with the com- forts and decent ornaments of his station. It is a circumstance worthy to be borne in mind by all who seek the improvement of the people, that whatever raises not only the standard of comfort, but of taste, has direct effects of utility which might not at first be per- ceived. We will take the case of paper-hangings. Their CHAP. XIV. PAPER-HANGINGS. 187 very name shows that they were a substitute for the arras, or hangings, of former times, which were suspended from the ceilings to cover the imperfections of the walls. This was the case in the houses of the rich. The poor man in his hut had no such device, but must needs "patch a hole to keep the wind away." Till 1830, what, in the language of the excise, was called stained paper, was enormously dear, for a heavy tax greatly impeded its production. When it was dear, many walls were stencilled or daubed over with a rude pattern. The paper-hangings themselves were not only dear, but offensive to the eye, from their want of harmony in colour and of beauty in design. The old papers remained on walls for half a century; and it was not till paper- hangings became a penny a yard, or even a halfpenny, that the landlord or tenant of a small house thought of re-paper- ing. The eye at length got offended by the dirty and ugly old paper. The walls were re-covered with neat patterns. But what had offended the eye had been prejudicial to the health. The old papers, that were saturated with damp from without and bad air from within, were recipients and holders of fever. When the bed-room became neat it also became healthful. The duty on paper was If J. per yard, when the paper-hanger used to paste together yard after yard, made by hand at the paper-mill, and stamped by block. The paper-machine which gave long rolls of paper enabled hangings to be printed by cylinder, as calico is printed. The absence of tax, and the improvement of the manufacture by machinery, have enabled every man to re- paper his filthy and noxious room for almost as little as its whitewashing or colouring will cost him. Look, again, at the carpet. Contrast it in all its varieties, from the gorgeous Persian to the neat Kidderminster, with the rushes of our forefathers, amidst which the dogs hunted for the bones that had been thrown upon the floor. The clean rushes were a rare luxury, never thought of but upon some festive occasion. The carpet manufacture was little known in England at the beginning of the last century ; as we may judge from our still calling one of the most com- 188 CARPETS. CHAP. XIV. monly- woven English carpets by the name of "Brussels." There are twelve thousand persons now employed in the manufacture of carpets in Great Britain. The Scotch carpet is the cheapest of the produce of the carpet-loom ; and it may be sufficient to show the connection of machinery with the commonest as well as the finest of these productions by an engraving of the loom. One of the most beautiful in- ventions of man, the Jacquard apparatus (so called from the name of its inventor), is extensively used in every branch of the carpet manufacture. Scotch carpet-loom. Let us see what mechanical ingenuity can effect in pro- ducing the most useful and ornamental articles of domestic life from the common earth which may be had for digging. CHAP. XIV. GLASS. 189 Without chemical and mechanical skill we should neither have Glass nor Pottery ; and without these articles, how much lowered beneath his present station, in point of com- fort and convenience, would be the humblest peasant in the land! The cost of glass is almost wholly the wages of labour, as the materials are very abundant, and may be said to cost almost nothing ; and glass is much more easily worked than any other substance. Hard and brittle as it is, it has only to be heated, and any form that the workman pleases may be given to it. It melts ; but when so hot as to be more susceptible of form than wax or clay, or anything else that we are acquainted with, it still retains a degree of toughness and capability of extension superior to that of many solids, and of every liquid; when it has become red-hot all its brittleness is gone, and a man may do with it as he pleases. He may press it into a mould ; he may take a lump of it upon the end of an iron tube, and, by blowing into the tube with his mouth (keeping the glass hot all the time), he may swell it out into a hollow ball. He may mould that ball into a bottle ; he may draw it out lengthways into a pipe ; he may cut it open into a cup ; he may open it with shears, whirl it round with the edge in the fire, and thus make it into a circular plate. He may also roll it out into sheets, and spin it into threads as fine as a cobweb. In short, so that he keeps it hot, and away from substances by which it may be de- stroyed, he can do with it just as he pleases. All this, too, may be done, and is done with large quantities every day, in less time than any one would take to give an account of it. In the time that the readiest speaker and clearest describer were telling how one quart bottle is made, an ordinary set of workmen would make some dozens of bottles. But though the materials of glass are among the cheapest of all materials, and the substance the most obedient to the hand of the workman, there is a great deal of knowledge necessary before glass can be made. It can be made pro- 190 GLASS. CHAP. XIV. fitably only at large manufactories, and those manufactories must be kept constantly at work night and day. Glass does not exist in a natural form in many places. The sight of native crystal, probably, led men to think originally of producing a similar substance by art. The fabrication of glass is of high antiquity. The historians of China, Japan, and Tartary speak of glass manufactories existing there more than two thousand years ago. An Egyptian mummy two or three thousand years old, which was exhibited in London, was ornamented with little frag- ments of coloured glass. The writings of Seneca, a Roman author who lived about the time of our Saviour, and of St. Jerome, who lived five hundred years afterwards, speak of glass being used in windows. It is recorded that the Prior of the convent of Weymouth, in Dorsetshire, in the year 674, sent for French workmen to glaze the windows of his chapel. In the twelfth century the art of making glass was known in this country. Yet it is very doubtful whether glass was employed in windows, excepting those of churches and the houses of the very rich, for several centuries after- wards ; and it is quite certain that the period is compara- tively recent, as we have shown,* when glass windows were used for excluding cold and admitting light in the houses of the great body of the people, or that glass vessels were to be found amongst their ordinary conveniences. The manufacture of glass in England now employs twelve thousand people, because the article, being cheap, is of universal use. The government has wisely taken off the duty on glass ; and as the article becomes still cheaper, so will the people employed in its manufacture become more numerous. Machinery, as we commonly understand the term, is not much employed in the manufacture of glass ; but chemistry, which saves as much labour as machinery, and performs work which no machinery could accomplish, is very largely employed. The materials of which glass is made are sand, or earth, and vegetable matter, such as kelp or burnt sea- * Chapter viii. pp. 85 and 87. CHAP. XIV. GLASS. 191 weed, which, yield alkali. For the finest glass, sand is brought from great distances, even from Australia. These materials are put in a state of fusion by the heat of an immense furnace. It requires a red heat of sixty hours to prepare the material of a common bottle. Nearly all glass, except glass for mirrors, is what is called blown. The ma- chinery is very simple, consisting only of an iron pipe and the lungs of the workman ; and the process is perfected in all its stages by great subdivision of labour, producing extreme neatness and quickness in all persons employed in it. For instance, a wine-glass is made thus : One man (the blower) takes up the proper quantity of glass on his pipe, and blows it to the size wanted for the bowl; then he whirls it round on a reel, and draws out the stalk. Another man (the footer) blows a smaller and thicker ball, sticks it to the end of the stalk of the blower's glass, and breaks his pipe from it. The blower opens that ball, and whirls the whole round till the foot is formed. Then a boy dips a small rod in the glass-pot, and sticks it to the very centre of the foot. The blower, still turning the glass round, takes a bit of iron, wets it in his mouth, and touches the ball at the place where he wishes the mouth of the glass to be. The glass separates, and the boy takes it to the finisher, who turns the mouth of it ; and, by a peculiar swing that he gives it round his head, makes it perfectly circular, at the same time that it is so hardened as to be easily snapped from the rod. Lastly, the boy takes it on a forked iron to the annealing furnace, where it is cooled gradually. All these operations require the greatest nicety in the workmen ; and would take a long time in the performance, and not be very neatly done after all, if they were all done by one man. But the quickness with which they are done by the division of labour is perfectly wonderful. The cheapness of glass for common use, which cheapness is produced by chemical knowledge and the division of labour, has set the ingenuity of man to work to give greater beauty to glass as an article of luxury. The employment of sharp-grinding wheels, put in motion by a treadle, and used 192 GLASS. CHAP. XIV. in conjunction with a very nice hand, produces cut glass. Cut glass is now comparatively so cheap, that scarcely a family of the middle ranks is without some beautiful article of this manufacture. But the repeal of the duty on glass, and of the tax upon windows, has had the effect of improving the architecture of our houses to a degree which no one would have thought possible who had not studied how the operation of a tax impedes production. We have now plate-glass of the largest dimensions, giving light and beauty to our shops ; and sheet-glass, nearly as effective as plate, adorning our private dwellings. Sheet-glass, in the making of which an amount of ingenuity is exercised which would have been thought impossible in the early stages of glass-making, is doing for the ordinary purposes of building what plate- glass did formerly for the rich. A portion of melted glass, Sheet-glass making. CHAP. XIV. POTTERY. 193 weighing twelve or fourteen pounds, is, by the exercise of this skill, converted into a ball, and then into a cylinder, and then into a flat plate ; and thus two crystal palaces have been built, which have consumed as much glass, weight by weight, as was required for all the houses in one- fourth of the area of Great Britain in the beginning of the century. There are two kinds of pottery common potters' ware, and porcelain. The first is a pure kind of brick ; and the second a mixture of very fine brick and glass. Almost all nations have some knowledge of pottery ; and those of the very hot countries are sometimes satisfied with dishes formed by their fingers without any tool, and dried by the heat of the sun. In England pottery of every sort, and in all countries good pottery, must be baked or burnt in a kiln of some kind or other. Vessels for holding meat and drink are almost as indis- pensable as the meat and drink themselves ; and the two qualities in them that are most valuable are, that they shall be cheap, and easily cleaned. Pottery, as it is now produced in England, possesses both of these qualities in the very highest degree. A white basin, having all the useful properties of the most costly vessels, may be pur- chased for twopence at the door of any cottage in England. There are very few substances used in human food that have any effect upon these vessels ; and it is only rinsing them in hot water, and wiping them with a cloth, and thej r are clean. The making of an earthen bowl would be to a man who made a first attempt no easy matter. Let us see how it is done so that it can be carried two or three hundred miles and sold for twopence, leaving a profit to the maker, and the wholesale and retail dealer. The common pottery is made of pure clay and pure flint. The flint is found only in the chalk counties, and the fine clays in Devonshire and Dorsetshire ; so that, with the ex- ception of some clay for coarse ware, the materials out of which the pottery is made have to be earned from the o 194 POTTERY. CHAP. XIV. South of England to Staffordshire, where the potteries are situated. The great advantage that Staffordshire possesses is abun- dance of coal to burn the ware and supply the engines that grind the materials. The clay is worked in water by various machinery till it contains no single piece large enough to be visible to the eye. It is like cream in consistence. The flints are burned. They are first ground in a mill, and then worked in water in the same manner as the clay, the large pieces being returned a second time to the mill. When both are fine enough, one part of flint is mixed with five or six of clay ; the whole is worked to a paste, after which it is kneaded either by the hands or a machine ; and when the kneading is completed, it is ready for the potter. He has a little wheel which lies horizontally. He lays a portion of clay on the centre of the wheel, puts one hand, or finger if the vessel is to be a small one, in the middle, and his other hand on the outside, and, as the wheel turns rapidly round, draws up a hollow vessel in an instant. With his hands, or with very simple tools, he brings it to the shape he wishes, cuts it from the wheel with a wire, and a boy carries it off. The potter makes vessel after vessel, as fast as they can be carried away. The potter's wheel is an instrument of the highest anti- quity. In the book of Ecclesiasticus we read " So doth the potter, sitting at his work, and turning the wheel about with his feet, who is always carefully set at his work, and maketh all his work by number: he fashioneth the clay with his arm, and boweth down his strength before his feet ; he applieth himself to lead it over, and is diligent to make clean the furnace." (c. xxxix., v. 29, 30.) At the present day the oriental potter stands in a pit, in which the lower machinery of his wheel is placed. He works as the potter of the ancient Hebrews. As the potter produces the vessels they are partially dried ; after which they are turned on a lathe and smoothed CHAP. XIV. POTTERY. 195 with, a wet sponge when necessary. Only round vessels can be made on the wheel ; those of other shapes are made in moulds of plaster. Handles and other solid parts are pressed in moulds, and stuck on while they and the vessels are still wet. The vessels thus formed are first dried in a stove, and, o 2 196 TOTTERY. CHAP. XIV. when dry, burnt in a kiln. They are in this state called biscuit. If they are finished white, they are glazed by another process. If they are figured, the patterns are en- graved on copper, and printed on coarse paper rubbed with soft soap. The ink is made of some colour that will stand the fire, ground with earthy matter. These patterns are moistened and applied to the porous biscuit, which absorbs the colour, and the paper is washed off, leaving the pattern on the biscuit. The employment of machinery to do all the heavy part of the work, the division of labour, by which each workman acquires wonderful dexterity in his department, and the conducting of the whole upon a large scale, give bread to a vast number of people, make the pottery cheap, and enable it to be sold at a profit in almost every market in the world. It is not ninety years since the first pottery of a good quality was extensively made in England ; and before that time what was used was imported, the common ware from Delf, in Holland (from which it acquired its name), and the porcelain from China. The history of the manufacture of porcelain affords us Moulds for porcelain, and casts. CHAP. XIV. POTTERY. 197 two examples of persevering ingenuity of intense devotion to one object which, have few parallels in what some may consider the higher walks of art. Palissy and Wedgwood are names that ought to be venerated by every artisan. The one bestowed upon France her manufacture of porce- lain, so long the almost exclusive admiration of the wealthy and the tasteful. The other gave to England her more extensive production of earthenware, combining with great cheapness the imitation of the most beautiful forms of ancient art. The potteries of Staffordshire may be almost said to have been created by Josiah Wedgwood. In his Wedgwood. workshops we may trace the commencement of a system of improved design which made his ware so superior to any other that had been produced in Europe for common uses. In other branches of manufacture this system found few imitators ; and we were too long contented, in our textile fabrics especially, with patterns that were unequalled for ugliness miserable imitations of foreign goods, or combi- nations of form and colour outraging every principle of art. We have seen higher things attempted in the present day ; but for the greater part of a century the wares of the Staf- fordshire potter were the only attempts to show that taste 198 BUILDING TRADES. CHAP. XIV. was as valuable a quality in association with the various articles which are required for domestic use, as good mate- rials and clean workmanship. It was long before we discovered that taste had an appreciable commercial value. We think that, with regard to buildings and the furniture of buildings, it will be admitted that machinery, in the largest sense of the word, has increased the means of every man to procure a shelter from the elements, and to give him a multitude of conveniences within that shelter. Most will agree that a greater number of persons are profitably employed in affording this shelter and these conveniences, with tools and machines, than if they possessed no such mechanical aids to their industry. In 1851 there were a hundred and eighty-two thousand carpenters and joiners ; thirty- one thousand brickmakers ; sixty-eight thousand bricklayers; sixty-two thousand painters, plumbers, and glaziers ; eighteen thousand plasterers ; a hundred thousand masons (some of whom were paviours) ; forty-two thousand glass and earthenware makers; besides an almost innu- merable variety of subordinate trades engaged in the production of houses, their fittings, and their utensils. CHAP. XV. DWELLINGS OF THE PEOPLE. 199 CHAPTEE XV. Dwellings of the people Oberlin The Highlander's candlesticks Suppljr of water London waterworks Street-lights Sewers. IT is satisfactory to observe that the increase of houses has kept pace with the increase of population. In 1801, in Great Britain, there was a population of ten million five hundred thousand persons, and one million eight hundred thousand inhabited houses. In 1851 there were twenty million eight hundred thousand persons, and three million eight hundred thousand inhabited houses. The numbers, in each case, had, as nearly as may be, doublejd. But it is not equally satisfactory to know that the im- provement in the quality of the houses in which the great body of those who labour for wages abide is not commen- surate with the increase in their quantity. It is not fitting, that, whilst the general progress of science is raising, as unquestionably it is raising, the average condition of the people and that whilst education is going forward, slowly indeed, but still advancing the bulk of those so progressing should be below their proper standard of physical comfort, from the too common want of decent houses to surround them with the sanctities of home. In the great business of the improvement of their dwell- ings the working-men require leaders not demagogues, whose business is to subvert, and not to build up but leaders like the noble pastor, Oberlin, who converted a barren district into a fruitful, by the example of his unre- mitting energy. This district was cut off from the rest of the world by the want of roads. Close at hand was Strasburg, full of all the conveniences of social life. There was no money to make roads but there was abundant 200 OBERLIX. CHAP. XV. power of labour. There were rocks to be blasted, embank- ments to be raised, bridges to be built. The undaunted clergyman took a pickaxe, and went to work himself. He worked alone, till the people were ashamed of seeing him so work. They came at last to perceive that the thing was to be done, and that it was worth the doing. In three years the road was made. If there were an Oberlin to lead the inhabitants of every filthy street, and the families of every wretched house, to their own proper work of improvement, a terrible evil would be soon removed, which is as great an impediment to the productive powers of a country, and therefore to the happiness of its people, as the want of ready communication, or any other appliance of civilization. The enormity of the evil would be appalling, if the capability of its removal in some degree were not equally certain. Whatever a government may attempt whatever munici- palities or benevolent associations there can be nothing so effectual in the upholding to a proper mark the domestic comfort of the working-men of this country, as their firm resolve to uphold themselves. Still, unhappily, it is an undoubted fact that the most industrious men in large cities are too often unable to pro- cure a fit dwelling, however able to pay for it and desirous to procure it. The houses have been built with no reference to such increasing wants. The idle and the diligent, the profligate and the prudent, the criminal and the honest, the diseased and the healthful, are therefore thrust into close neighbourhood. There is no escape. Is this terrible evil incapable of remedy ? To discover that remedy, and apply it, is truly a national concern ; for assuredly there is no capital of a country so worth preserving in the highest state of efficiency as the capital it possesses in an indus- trious population. There is a noble moral in a passage of Scott's romance, ' The Legend of Montrose.' A Highland chief had betted with a more luxurious English baronet whom he had visited, that he had better candlesticks at home than the six silver ones which the richer man had put upon his dinner-table. The Englishman went to the chief's CHAP. XV. THE HIGHLANDER'S CANDLESTICKS. 201 castle in the hills, where the owner was miserable about the issue of his bragging bet. But his brother had a device which saved the honour of the clan. The attendant an- nounced that the dinner was ready, and the candles lighted. Behind each chair for the guests stood a gigantic High- lander with his drawn sword in his right hand, and a blazing torch in his left, made of the bog-pine ; and the brother ex- claimed to the startled company 'Would you dare to compare to THEM in value the richest ore that ever was dug out of the mine ? ' We may naturally pass from these considerations to a most important branch of the great subject of the expendi- ture of capital for public objects. The people who live in small villages, or in scattered habitations in the country, have certainly not so many direct benefits from machinery as the inhabitants of towns. They have the articles at a cheap rate which machines produce, but there are not so many machines at work for them as for dense populations. From want of knowledge they may be unable to perceive the connexion between a cheap coat, or a cheap tool, and the machines which make them plentiful, and therefore cheap. But even they, when the saving of labour by a machine is a saving which imme- diately affects them, are not slow to acknowledge the benefits they derive from that best of economy. The Scriptures allude to the painful condition of the " hewers of wood " and the " drawers of water ;" and certainly in a state of society where there are no machines at all, or very rude machines to cut down a tree and cleave it into logs, and to raise a bucket from a well, are very laborious occu- pations, the existence of which, to any extent, amongst a people, would mark them as remaining in a wretched con- dition. Immediately that the people have the simplest mechanical contrivance, such as the loaded lever, to raise water from a well, which is found represented in Egyptian sculpture, and also in our own Anglo-Saxon drawings, they are advancing to the condition of raising water by machi- 202 MACHINES FOR RAISING WATER. nery. The oriental shadoof is a machine. In our own country, at the present day, there are not many houses, in situations where water is at hand, that have not the wind- lass, or, what is better, the pump, to raise this great neces- sary of life from the well. Some cottagers, however, have Ancient Shadoof. no such machines, and bitterly do they lament the want of them. We once met an old woman in a country district tottering under the weight of a bucket, which she was labouring to carry up a hill. We asked her how she and her family were off in the world. She replied, that she could do pretty well with them, for they could all work, if it were not for one thing it was one person's labour to fetch water from the spring ; but, said she, if we had a pump handy, we should not have much to complain of. This old woman very wisely had no love of labour for its own sake ; she saw no advantage in the labour of one of her family being given for the attainment of a good which she knew might be attained by a very common invention. She wanted a machine to save that labour. Such a machine would have set at liberty a certain quantity of labour which was previously employed unprofitably; in other CHAP. XV. WATER-SUPPLY. 203 words, it would have left her or her children more time for more profitable work, and then the family earnings would have been increased. But there is another point of view in which this machine would have benefited the good woman and her family. Water is not only necessary to drink and to prepare food with, but it is necessary for cleanliness, and cleanliness is necessary for health. If there is a scarcity of water, or if it requires a great deal of labour to obtain it, (which comes to the same thing as a scarcity,) the uses of water for cleanliness will be wholly or in part neglected. If the neglect becomes a habit, which it is sure to do, disease, and that of the worst sort, cannot be prevented. When men gather together in large bodies, and inhabit towns or cities, a plentiful supply of water is the first thing to which they direct their attention. If towns are built in situations where pure water cannot be readily obtained, the inhabitants, and especially the poorer sort, suffer even more misery than results from the want of bread or clothes. In some cities of Spain, for instance, where the people understand very little about machinery, water, at particu- lar periods of the year, is as dear as wine; and the la- bouring classes are consequently in a most miserable con- dition. In London, on the contrary, water is so plentiful, that, as it appears from a return of the various water compa- nies, the daily average of water-supply is sixty-two million gallons, being an average of about tw6 hundred and two gallons to each house and other buildings, which amount to three hundred and ten thousand. This seems an enor- mous supply; but there are reasons for thinking that the quantity ought to be increased, and the arrangements made so perfect, that there should be a perpetual stream of water through the pipes of each house, like that through the arteries from the heart. The condition upon which the present water companies are allowed to continue their functions is, that they shall, before the expiration of another year, provide a larger and a purer supply. Yet, incomplete as these arrangements are, they are wondrous when com- 204 WATER-SUPPLY. CHAP. XV. pared with the water-supply of other times ; and it is satis- factory to know that there are very few of our great towns which are not supplied as well as, and many much better than, London. There are very few large places in Great Britain where, by machinery, water is not only delivered to the kitchens and washhouses on the ground-floors, where it is most wanted, but is sent up to the very tops of the houses, to save even the comparatively little labour of fetching it from the bottom. The cost of this greatly varies in particular localities ; and in most places the supply is afforded more cheaply than in the metropolis. There are natural difficulties in London, as in other vast cities, which have been chiefly created through the unexampled increase of the people. The sanitary arrangements of our great towns the supply of water, the drainage have followed the growth of the population and not preceded it. As the necessity has arisen for such a ministration to the absolute wants of a community, it has inevitably become a system of expedients. We are wiser now when we build upon new ground. We first construct our lines of street, with sewers, and water-pipes, and gas-pipes, and then we build our houses. What a different affair is it to manage these matters effectually when the houses have been previously built with very slight reference to such conditions of social existence ! As long ago as the year 1236, when a great want of water was felt in London, the little springs being blocked up and covered over by buildings, the ruling men of the city caused water to be brought from Tyburn, which was then a distant village, by means of pipes ; and they laid a tax upon particular branches of trade to pay the expense of this great blessing to all. In succeeding times more pipes and conduits, that is, more machinery, were estab- lished for the same good purpose ; and two centuries after- wards, King Henry the Sixth gave his aid to the same sort of works, in granting particular advantages in obtaining lead for making pipes. The reason for this aid to such works was, as the royal decree set forth, that they were CHAP. XV. WATER-SUPPLY. 205 " for the common utility and decency of all the city, and for the universal advantage," and a very true reason this was. As this great town more and more increased, more waterworks were found necessary ; till at last, in the reign of James the First, which was nearly two hundred years after that of Henry the Sixth, a most ingenious and enter- prising man, and a great benefactor to his country, Hugh Myddleton, undertook to bring a river of pure water above thirty- eight miles out of its natural course, for the supply of London. He persevered in this immense undertaking, in spite of every difficulty, till he at last accomplished that great good which he had proposed, of bringing wholesome water to every man's door. At the present time, the New River, which was the work of Hugh Myddleton, supplies more than seventeen millions of gallons of water every day ; and though the original projector was ruined by the under- taking, in consequence of the difficulty which he had in procuring proper support, such is now the general conviction of the advantage which he procured for his fellow-citizens, and so desirous are the people to possess that advantage, that a share in the New River Company, which was at first sold at one hundred pounds, is now worth three thousand pounds. Before the people of London had water brought to their own doors, and even into their very houses, and into every room of their houses where it is desirable to bring it, they were obliged to send for this great article of life first, to the few springs which were found in the city and its neighbourhood, and, secondly, to the conduits and foun- tains, which were imperfect mechanical contrivances for bringing it. The service-pipes to each house are more perfect mecha- nical contrivances ; but they could not have been rendered so perfect without engines, which force the water above the level of the source from which it is taken. When the inhabitants fetched their water from the springs and con- duits there was a great deal of human labour employed ; and as in every large community there are always people 200 WATER-SUPPLY. CHAP. XV. ready to perform labour for money, many persons obtained a living by carrying water. When the New River had been dug, and the pipes had been laid down, and the engines had been set up, it is perfectly clear that there would have been no further need for these water-carriers. When the people of London could obtain two hundred gallons of water for two- pence, they would not employ a man to fetch a single bucket from the river or fountain at the same price. They would not, for the mere love of employing human labour directly, continue to buy an article very dear, which, by mechanical aid, they could buy very cheap. If they had resolved, from any mistaken notions about machinery, to continue to em- ploy the water-carriers, they must have been contented with one gallon of water a day instead of two hundred gal- lons. Or if they had consumed a larger quantity, and CHAP. XV. WATER-SUPPLY. 207 continued to pay the price of bringing it to them by hand, they must have denied themselves other necessaries and comforts. They must have gone without a certain portion of food, or clothing, or fuel, which they are now enabled to obtain by the saving in the article of water. To have had for each house two hundred gallons of water, and, in having this two hundred gallons of water, to have had the cleanli- ness and health which result from its use, would have been utterly impossible. The supply of one gallon, instead of two hundred gallons to each house, would at present amount to 310,000 gallons daily ; which at a penny a gallon would cost 1291Z. per day ; or 9037Z. per week ; or 469,724^., or very nearly half a million, per year. Upon the assump- tion that one man, without any mechanical arrangement besides his can, could carry twenty gallons a day, thus earning ten shillings a week, this would employ no fewer than 18,074 persons a very army of water-carriers. To supply ten gallons a day to each house would cost nearly five millions a year, and would employ 180,740 per- sons. To supply two hundred gallons a day would re- quire 3,614,800 persons a number exceeding the total population of London. The whole number of persons engaged in the waterworks' service of all Great Britain is under 1000. There is now, certainly, no labour to be performed by water-carriers. But suppose that five hundred years ago, when there were a small number of persons who gained their living by such drudgery, they had determined to pre- vent the bringing of water by pipes into London. Suppose also that they had succeeded ; and that up to the present day we had no pipes or other mechanical aids for supplying the water. It is quite evident that if this misfortune had happened if the welfare of the many had been retarded (for it never could have been finally stopped) by the igno- rance of the few London, as we have already shown, would not have had a twentieth part of its present population ; and the population of every other town, depending as population does upon the increase of profitable labour, could 208 WATER-SUPPLY. CHAP. XV. never have gone forward. How then would the case have stood as to the amount of labour engaged in the supply of water? A few hundred, at the utmost a few thousand, carriers of water would have been employed throughout the kingdom ; while the smelters and founders of iron of which water-pipes are made, the labourers who lay down these pipes, the founders of lead who make the service-pipes, and the plumbers who apply them ; the caniers, whether by water or land, who are engaged in bringing them to the towns, the manufacturers of the engines which raise the water, the builders of the houses in which the engines stand these, and many other labourers and mechanics who directly and indirectly contribute to the same public ad- vantage, could never have been called into employment. To have continued to use the power of the water-carriers would have rendered the commodity two hundred times dearer than it is supplied by mechanical power. The pre- sent cheapness of production, by mechanical power, supplies employment to an infinitely greater number of persons than could have been required by a perseverance in the rude Old water-carrier of London. CHAP. XV. WATER-SUPPLY. 209 and wasteful system which belonged to former ages of ignorance and wretchedness. When a severe frost chokes up the small water-pipes that conduct the useful stream into each house, what anxiety and trouble is there in every thoroughfare ! The main pipes are not frozen ; and the supply is to be got in pails and pitchers from a plug in the pavement, where a tem- porary cock is inserted. How gladly , is this device resorted to ! But imagine it to be the labour of every day, and what an amount of profitable time would be deducted from domestic employ ! Plug in a frost. "When society is more perfectly organized than it is at present, and when the great body of the people understand the value of co-operation for procuring advantages that individuals cannot attain, public baths will be established in every town, and in every district of a town. The great Roman people had public baths for all ranks ; and remains of their baths still exist in this country. The great British p 210 STREET-LIGHTS. CHAP. XV. people have only thought within these few years that public baths were a necessity. The establishment of public wash- houses, in connexion with baths, having every advantage of machinery and economical arrangements, are real blessings to the few who now use them. It is little more than thirty years since London was lighted with gas. Pall Mall was thus lighted in 1807, by a chartered company, to whose claims for support the ma- jority of householders were utterly opposed. They had their old oil-lamps, which were thought absolute perfection. The main pipes which convey gas to the London houses are now fifteen hundred miles in length. There are, we be- lieve, nearly a thousand proprietory gas-works in Great Britain. The noblest prospect in the world is London from Hampstead Heath on a bright winter's evening. The stars are shining in heaven, but there are thousands of earthly stars glittering in the city there spread before us : and as we look into any small space of that wondrous illumination, we can trace long lines of light losing themselves in the general splendor of the distance, and we can see dim shapes of mighty buildings afar off, showing their dark masses amidst the glowing atmosphere that hangs over the capital for miles, with the edges of flickering clouds gilded as if they were touched by the first sunlight. This is a spectacle that men look not upon, because it is common ; and so we walk amidst the nightly splendours of the Strand, and forget what it was in the middle of the last century the days of " darkness visible," under the combined efforts of the twinkling lamp, the watchman's lantern, and the vaga- bond's link. The last, but in many respects one of the most useful of public works in Great Britain, to which a large amount of capital has been devoted, is the construction of sewers in our cities and towns. Popular intelligence and official power have been very slowly awakened to the performance of this duty. And yet the consequences of neglect have been felt for centuries. In 1290 the monks of White Friars and of Black Friars complained to the king that the exhala- 211 London street-lights, 1760. tions from the Fleet River overcame the pleasant odour of the frankincense which burned on their altars, and occasioned the deaths of the brethren. This was the pol- luted stream that in time came to be known as Fleet Ditch, which Pope described as " The king of dykes, than whom no sluice of mud With deeper suble blots the silver flood." Fleet Ditch became such a nuisance that it was partly filled up by act of parliament soon after these lines were written. The Londoners had then their reservoirs of filth, called laystalls, in various parts near the river ; and the pestilent accumulations spread disease all over the city. The system of sewers was begun in 1756, and from that time to the present several hundreds of miles of sewers have been con- p 2 212 SEWERS. CHAP. XV. stracted. But, alas, tte Thames itself is now the king of dykes," and the me&-opolis, healthy as it is, will never attain the sanitary state of which it is capable till the whole system of the outfalV of the sewers is changed. The neces- sary work would involve the expenditure of millions. But the millions must Jz3 spent. In the mean time it is satisfac- tory to know thajj in towns of smaller population, where the evil is far less vast, and the natural difficulties of removal greatly less, the work of purification is going on rapidly. Public opinion has gone so strongly in the direction of a thorough reformation, that the duty can no longer be neglected. Every thousand pounds of public capital so expended is an addition to one of the best accumulations of national wealth. CHAP. XVI. EARLY FOREIGN INTERCOURSE. 213 CHAPTEE XVI. Early intercourse with foreign nations Progress of the cotton manufacture Hand-spinning Arkwright Crompton Power-loom Cartwright Especial benefits of machinery in this manufacture. THERE was a time when the people of England were very inferior to those of the Low Countries, of France, and of Germany, in various productions of manufacturing industry. We first gave an impulse to our woollen trade, which for several centuries was the great staple of the country, by procuring foreign workmen to teach our people their craft. Before that period the nations on the Continent had a pro- verb against us. They said, "the stranger buys of the Englishman the skin of the fox for a groat, and sells him the tail again for a shilling." The proverb meant that we had not skill to convert the raw material into an article of use, and that we paid a large price for the labour and ingenuity which made our native material available to our- selves. But -still our intercourse, such as it was then, with " the stranger " was better than no intercourse. We gave the rough and stinking fox's skin for a groat, and we got the nicely dressed tippet for a shilling. The next best thing to dressing the skin ourselves was to pay other people for dressing it. Without foreign communication we should not have got that article of clothing at all. All nations that have made any considerable advance in civilization have been commercial nations. The arts of life are very imperfectly understood in countries which have little communication with the rest of the world, and conse- quently the inhabitants are poor and wretched; their 214 COTTON MANUFACTURE. CHAP. XVI. condition is not bettered by the exchange with other countries, either of goods or of knowledge. They have the fox's skin, but they do not know how to convert it into value, by being furriers themselves, or by communication with "stranger" furriers. The people of the East, amongst whom a certain degree of civilization has existed from high antiquity, were not only the growers of many productions which were unsuited to the climate and soil of Europe, but they were the manu- facturers also. Cotton, for instance, was cultivated from time immemorial in Hindustan, in China, in Persia, and in Egypt. Cotton was a material easily grown and collected ; Cotton ; showiug a pod bursting. CHAP. XVI. COTTON MANUFACTURE. 215 and the patient industry of the people by whom it was cultivated, their simple habits, and their few wants, enabled them to send into Europe their manufactured stuffs of a fine and durable quality, under every disadvantage of land- carriage, even from the time of the ancient Greeks. Before the discovery, however, of the passage to India by the Cape of Good Hope, cotton goods in Europe were articles of great price and luxury. M. Say well observes that, although cotton stuffs were cheaper than silk (which was formerly sold for its weight in gold), they were still articles which could only be purchased by the most opulent ; and that, if a Grecian lady could awake from her sleep of two 'thousand years, her astonishment would be unbounded to see a simple country girl clothed with a gown of printed cotton, a muslin kerchief, and a coloured shawl. When India was open to the ships of Europe, the Portu- guese, the Dutch, and the English sold cotton goods in every market, in considerable quantities. These stuffs bore their Indian names of calicoes and muslins ; and, whether bleached or dyed, were equally valued as amongst the most useful and ornamental articles of European dress. In the seventeenth century France began to manufacture into stuffs the raw cotton imported from India, as Italy had done a century before. A cruel act of despotism drove the best French workmen, who were Protestants, into England, and we learned the manufacture. The same act of despot- ism, the revocation of the Edict of Nantes, caused the settlement of silk-manufacturers in Spitalfields. "We did not make any considerable progress in the art, nor did we use the material of cotton exclusively in making up the goods. The warp, or longitudinal threads of the cloth, were of flax, the weft only was of cotton ; for we could not twist it hard enough by hand to serve both purposes. This weft was spun entirely by hand with a distaff and spindle the same process in which the women of England had been engaged for centuries; and which we see represented in ancient drawings. Our manufacture, in spite of all these disadvantages, continued to increase; so that about 1760, 216 COTTOX MANUFACTURE. CHAP. XVI. Distaff. although there were fifty thousand spindles at work in Lancashire alone, the weaver found the greatest difficulty in procuring a sufficient supply of thread. Neither weaving nor spinning was then carried on in large factories. They were domestic occupations. The women of a family worked at the distaff or the hand-wheel, and there were two ope- rations necessary in this department; roving, or coarse spinning, reduced the carded cotton to the thickness of a quill, and the spinner afterwards drew out and twisted the roving into weft fine enough for the weaver. The spinsters of England were carrying on the same operation as the spinsters of India. In the middle of the last century, according to Mr. Guest, a writer on the cotton-manufacture, very few weavers could procure weft enough to keep them- selves constantly employed. " It was no uncommon thing," he says, " for a weaver to walk three or four miles in a morning, and call on five or six spinners, before he could collect weft to serve him for the remainder of the day ; and when he wished to weave a piece in a shorter time than usual, a new ribbon or gown was necessary to quicken the exertions of the spinner." That the manufacture should have flourished in England CHAP. XVI. COTTON MANUFACTURE, 217 at all under these difficulties is honourable to the industry of our country ; for the machinery used in weaving was also of the rudest sort, so that, if the web was more than three feet wide, the labour of two men was necessaiy to throw the shuttle. English cotton goods, of course, were very dear, and there was little variety in them. The cloth made of flax and cotton was called fustian; for which article Manchester was famous, as well as for laces. We still received the calicoes and printed cottons from India. A Hindoo woman spinning Cotton. In a country like ours, where men have learned to think, and where ingenuity therefore is at work, a deficiency in material or in labour to meet the demand of a market is sure to call forth invention. It is a century ago since it was perceived that spinning by machinery might give the supply which human labour was inadequate to produce, because, doubtless, the remuneration for that labour was very small. The work of the distaff, as it was carried on at that period, in districts partly agricultural and partly commercial, was, generally, an employment for the spare hours of the young women, and the easy industry of the 218 COTTON MANUFACTURE. CHAP. XVI. old. It was a labour that was to assist in maintaining the family, not a complete means for their maintenance. The supply of yarn was therefore insufficient, and ingenious men applied themselves to remedy that insufficiency. Spinning-mills were built at Northampton in 1733, in which, it is said, although we have no precise account of it, that an apparatus for spinning was erected. A Mr. Lawrence Earnshaw, of Mottram, in Cheshire, is recorded to have invented a machine, in 1753, to spin and reel cotton at one operation ; which he showed to his neighbours and then destroyed it, through the generous apprehension that he might deprive the poor of bread. We must admire the motive of this good man, although we are now enabled to show that his judgment was mistaken. Richard Ark- wright, a barber of Preston, invented, in 1769, the principal part of the machinery for spinning cotton, and by so doing he gave bread to about two millions of people instead of fifty thousand ; and, assisted by subsequent inventions, raised the importation of cotton-wool from less than two million pounds per annum to a thousand million pounds ; has enabled us to . supply other nations with cotton ma- nufactures to the enormous amount of thirty-three million pounds sterling, in one year, 1853 ; has raised the annual produce of the manufacture from two hundred thousand pounds sterling to at least sixty million pounds sterling ; and has given direct employment to half a million of men, women, and young persons. And how did Arkwright effect this great revolution? He asked himself whether it was not possible, instead of a wheel which spins a single thread of cotton at a time, and by means of which the spinner could obtain in twenty-four hours about two ounces of thread, whether it might not be possible to spin the same material upon a great number of wheels, from which many hundreds of threads might issue at the same moment. The difficulty was in giving to these numerous wheels, spinning so many threads, the peculiar action of two hands when they pinch, at a little distance from each other, a lock of cotton, rendering it CHAP. XVI. COTTOX MANUFACTURE. 219 Sir Richard Arkwright. finer as it is drawn out. It was necessary, also, at the same time, to imitate the action of the spindle, which twisted together the filaments at the moment they had attained the necessary degree of fineness. It would be extremely diffi- cult, if not impossible, to give an adequate idea, by words, of the complex machinery by which Arkwright accom- plished his object. Since Arkwright's time prodigious improvements have been made in the machinery for cotton- spinning ; but the principle remains the same, namely, to enable rollers to do the work of human fingers, with much greater precision, and incomparably cheaper. We will attempt briefly to describe this chief portion of the great invention. We must suppose that, by the previous operation of carding, the cotton-wool has been so combed and prepared as to be formed into a long untwisted line of about the thickness of a man's finger. This line so formed (after it 220 COTTON MANUFACTURE. CHAP. XVI. has been introduced into the spinning-machine) is called a roving, the old name in hand-spinning. 3t=aD=aB=c Arkwright's original spinning-machine. In order to convert this roving into a thread, it is neces- sary that the fibres, which are for the most part curled up, and which lie in all directions, should be stretched out and laid lengthwise, side by side ; that they should be pressed together so as to give them a more compact form ; and that they should be twisted, so as to unite them all firmly together. In the original method of spinning by the distaff, those operations were performed by the finger and thumb, and they were afterwards effected with greater rapidity, but less perfectly, by means of the long wheel and spindle. For the same purpose, Arkwright employed two pairs of small rollers, the one pair being placed at a little distance in front of the other. The lower roller in each pair is furrowed or fluted lengthwise, and the upper one is CHAP. XVI. COTTON MANUFACTURE. 221 covered with leather ; so that, as they revolve in contact with each other, they take fast hold of the cotton which passes between them. Both pairs of rollers are turned by machinery, which is so contrived that the second pair shall turn round with much more swiftness than the first. Now suppose that a roving is put between the first pair of rollers. The immediate effect is merely to press it together into a more compact form. But the roving has but just passed through the first pair of rollers, when it is received between the second pair; and as the rollers of the second pair revolve with greater velocity than those of the first, they draw the roving forwards with greater rapidity than it is given out by the first pair. Consequently, the roving will be lengthened in passing from one pair to the other ; and the fibres of which it is composed will be drawn out and laid lengthwise side by side. The increase of lengtii will be exactly in proportion to the increased velocity of the second pair of rollers. Two or more rovings are generally united in this opera- tion. Thus, suppose that two rovings are introduced together between the first pair of rollers, and that the second pair of rollers moves with twice the velocity of the first. The new roving thus formed by the union of the two will then be of exactly twice the length of either of the original ones. It will therefore contain exactly the same quantity of cotton per yard. But its parts will be very differently arranged, and its fibres will be drawn out longitudinally, and will be thus much better fitted for forming a thread. This operation of doubling and drawing is repeated as often as is found necessary, and the requisite degree of twist is given by a machine similar to the spindle and fly of the common flax- wheel. The spinning-mule, invented by Samuel Crompton, carried the mechanism of the cotton-factory many steps in advance. Long after Crompton, came the self-acting mule. It is a carriage some twenty or thirty feet long, travelling to and fro, and drawing out the most delicate threads through hundreds of spindles, whirling at a rate which 222 COTTON MANUFACTURE. CHAP. XVI. scarcely permits the eye to trace their motion. Mr. Whit- worth says, " So great are the improvements effected in spinning machinery, that one man can attend to a mule containing 1088 spindles, each spinning 3 hanks, or 3264 hanks in the aggregate per day. In Hindustan, where they still spin by hand, it would be extravagant to expect a spinner to accomplish one hank per day ; so that in the United States [and in Great Britain also] we find the same amount of manual labour, by improved machinery, doing more than 3000 times the work." Samuel Crompton, inventor of the spinning-mule. Of the rapidity with which some portions of the machi- nery operate, we may form an idea from the fact that the very finest thread which is used in making lace is passed through the strong flame of a lamp, which burns off the fibres without burning the thread itself. The velocity with which the thread moves is so great, that we cannot per- ceive any motion at all. The line of thread, passing off a CHAP. XVI. COTTON MANUFACTURE. 223 wheel through the flame, looks as if were perfectly at rest ; and it appears a miracle that it is not burnt. The invention of Arkwright the substitution of rollers for fingers changed the commerce of the world. The machinery by which a man, or woman, or even child, could produce two hundred threads where one was produced before, caused a cheapness of production much greater than that of India, where human labour is scarcely worth any- thing. But the fabric of cotton was also infinitely im- proved by the machinery. The hand of the spinner was unequal to its operations. It sometimes produced a fine thread, and sometimes a coarse one ; and therefore the quality of the cloth could not be relied upon. The yarn which is spun by machinery is sorted with the greatest exactness, and numbered according to its quality. This circumstance alone, which could only result from machi- nery, has a direct tendency to diminish the cost of pro- duction. Machinery not only adds to human power, and economizes human time, but it works up the most common materials into articles of value, and equalizes the use of valuable materials. Thus, in linen of which the thread is spun by the hand, a thick thread and a thin thread will be found side by side; and, therefore, not only is mate- rial wasted, but the fabric is less durable, because it wears unequally. These circumstances the diminished cost of cotton goods, and the added value to the quality have rendered it impossible for the cheap labour of India to come into the market against the machinery of Europe. The trade in Indian cotton goods is gone for ever. Not even the ca- prices of fashion can have an excuse for purchasing the dearer commodity. We make it cheaper, and we make it better. Tho trade in cotton, as it exists in the present day, is the great triumph of human ingenuity. We bring the raw material from the country of the people who grow it, on the other side of our globe ; we manufacture it by our machines into articles which we used to buy from them ready-made ; and taking back those articles to their own 224 COTTON MANUFACTURE. CHAP. XVI. markets, encumbered with the cost of transport for fourteen thousand miles, we sell the cotton to these very people cheaper than they can produce it themselves, and they buy it therefore with eagerness. Nearly twenty years after Arkwright had begun to spin by machinery, that is in 1786, the price of a particular sort of cotton-yarn much used in the manufacture of calico was thirty-eight shillings a pound. That same yarn in 1832 was two shillings and eleven pence a pound. In 1814 the selling price of a piece of calico distinguished by the trade as 72 was twenty-eight shillings; in 1844 it was six shillings and nine pence. It is probably less at this day. If cotton goods were worn only by the few rich, as they were worn in ancient times, and even in the latter half of the last century, that difference of price would not be a great object ; but the price is a very im- portant object when every man, woman, and child in the United Kingdom has to pay it. Calico is four times as cheap as it was forty years ago. There are no very certain data for the produce of our looms, for, happily, no tax exists upon the great necessaries of life which they pro- duce. But it has been calculated that the home consump- tion of cotton cloth is equal to twenty-six yards for every individual of the population ; and taking the total number at twenty-seven millions, the quantity required would be seven hundred million yards. At five- pence a yard, the seven hundred million yards of cloth amount to above fourteen million pounds sterling. At half-a-crowu a yard, which we will take as the average price about forty years ago, they would amount to eighty-four millions of pounds sterling. At twelve or fourteen times the present price, or six shillings a yard, which proportion we get by knowing the price of yarn seventy years ago and at the present day, the cost of seven hundred million yards of cotton cloth would be one hundred and seventy-five millions of pounds sterling. It is perfectly clear that no such sum of money could be paid for cotton goods, and that in fact, instead of between fourteen and fifteen millions being spent in this CHAP. XVI. COTTON MANUFACTURE. 225 article of clothing by persons of all classes, in consequence of the cheapness of the commodity, we should go back to very nearly the same consumption that existed before Ark wright's invention, that is, to the consumption of the year 1750, when the whole amount of the cotton manufacture of the kingdom did not exceed the annual value of two hundred thousand pounds. At that rate of value, the quantity of cloth manufactured could not have been equal to one five-hundredth part of that which is now manu- factured for home consumption. Where one person a centuiy ago consumed one yard, the consumption per head has risen to about twenty-six yards. This vast difference in the comforts of every family, by the ability which they now possess of easily acquiring warm and healthful clothing, is a clear gain to all society, and to every one as a portion of society. It is more especially a gain to the females and the children of families, whose condition is always de- graded when clothing is scanty. The power of procuring cheap clothing for themselves, and for their children, has a tendency to raise the condition of females more than any other addition to their stock of comfort. It cultivates habits of cleanliness and decency ; and those are little ac- quainted with the human character who can doubt whether cleanliness and decency are not only great aids to virtue, but virtues themselves. John Wesley said that cleanliness was next to godliness. There is little self-respect amidst dirt and rags, and without self-respect there can be no foundation for those qualities which most contribute to the good of society. The power of procuring useful clothing at a cheap price has raised the condition of women amongst us, and the influence of the condition of women upon the welfare of a community can never be too highly estimated. That the manufacture of cotton by machinery has pro- duced one of the great results for which machinery is to be desired, namely, cheapness of production, cannot, we think, be doubted. If increased employment of human labour has gone along with that cheapness of production, even the Q 226 COTTON MANUFACTURE. . CHAP. XVI. most prejudiced can have no doubt of the advantages of this machinery to all classes of the community. At the time that Arkwright commenced his machinery, a man named Hargreave, who had set up a less perfect in- vention, was driven out of Lancashire, at the peril of his life, by a combination of the old spinners by the wheel. In 1789, when the spinning machinery was introduced into Normandy, the hand-spinners there also destroyed the mills, and put down the manufacture for a time. Lancashire and Normandy are now, in England and France, the great seats of the cotton manufacture. The people of Lancashire and Normandy had not formerly the means, as we have now, of knowing that cheap production produces increased em- ployment. There were many examples of this principle formerly to be found in arts and manufactures ; but Ihe people were badly educated upon such subjects, principally because studious and inquiring men had thought such matters beneath their attention. We live in times more favourable for these researches. The people of Lancashire and Normandy, at the period we mention, being ignorant of what would conduce to their real welfare, put down the machines. In both countries they were a very small por- tion of the community that attempted such an illegal act. The weavers were interested in getting cotton yarn cheap, so the combination was opposed to their interests ; and the spinners were chiefly old women and girls, very few in number, and of little influence. Yet they and their friends, both in England and France, made a violent clamour ; and but for the protection of the laws, the manufactories in each country would never have been set up. What was the effect upon the condition of this very population ? M. Say, in his 'Complete Course of Political Economy,' states, upon the authority of an English manufacturer of fifty years' experience, that, in ten years after the introduc- tion of the machines, the people employed in the trade, spinners and weavers, were more than forty times as many as when the spinning was done by hand. The spinning machinery of Lancashire alone now produces as CHAP. XVI. COTTON MANUFACTURE. 227 much yarn as would require more than the entire population of the United Kingdom to produce with the distaff and spindle. This immense power might be supposed to have superseded human labour altogether in the production of cotton yarn. It did no such thing. It gave a new direction to the labour that was formerly employed at the distaff and spindle ; but it increased the quantity of labour altogether employed in the manufacture of cotton, at least a hundred fold. It increased it too where an increase of labour was most desirable. It gave constant, easy, and not unpleasant occupation to women and children. In all the departments of cotton spinning, and in many of those of weaving by the power-loom, women and children are employed. There are degrees, of course, in the agreeable nature of the employ- ment, particularly as to its being more or less cleanly. But there are extensive apartments in large cotton-factories, where great numbers of females are daily engaged in processes which would not soil the nicest fingers, dressed with the greatest neatness, and clothed in materials (as all women are 'now clothed) that were set apart for the highest in the land a century ago. And yet there are some who regret that the aged crones no longer sit in the cottage chimne} T , earning a few pence daily by their rude industry at the wheel ! The creation of employment amongst ourselves by the cheapness of cotton goods produced by machinery, is not to be considered as a mere change from the labour of India to the labour of England. It is a creation of employment, operating just in the same manner as the machinery did for printing books. The Indian, it is true, no longer sends us his calicos and his coloured stuffs ; we make them ourselves. But he sends us fifty times the amount of raw cotton that he sent when the machinery was first set up. The work- man on the banks of the Ganges is no longer weaving calicos for us, in his loom of reeds under the shadow of a palm-tree ; but he is gathering for us fifty times as much cotton as he gathered before, and making fifty times as much indigo for us to colour it with. Q 2 223 COTTOX MANUFACTURE. CHAP. XVI. Hindoo weaver at work in a field. The change that has been produced upon the labour of India by the machinery employed for spinning and weaving cotton, has a parallel in the altered condition of the hand- loom weavers in Great Britain. In 1785 Dr. Cartwright produced his first power loom. It was a rude machine compared with the refinements that have successively carried on his principle. Every resistance was made to the CHAP. XVI. COTTON MANUFACTURE. 229 Dr. Cartwright, inventor of the power-loom. introduction to this new power. The mill owners were slow to perceive its advantages; the first mills in which these looms were introduced were burnt. The hand-loom weavers worked at a machine which little varied from that with which their Flemish instructors had worked three centuries before. But no prejudice and no violence could prevent the progress of the new machine. The object for which machines are established, and the object which they do effect, is cheapness of production. Machines either save material, or diminish labour, or both. " Which is the cheapest," said the committee to Joseph Foster, " a piece of goods made by a power-loom, or a piece of goods made by a hand-loom ?" He answered, "a power-loom is the cheapest."* This answer was decisive. The hand-loom weavers have continued to struggle, even up to this time, with the greater productive power of the power-loom; but the struggle is nearly over. It would have been terminated long ago, if the miserable wages which the hand-loom weaver obtained, had not been eked out by parochial contributions. It was the duty of society to break the fall of the workmen who were thrust out of their place by the invention ; but had society attempted to interpose between the new machines * See p. 107. 230 COTTON MANUFACTURE. CHAP. XVI. and the old, so as to have kept the old workers to their less profitable employment, there would have been far more derangements of labour to mitigate. Upon the introduction of the spinning machinery there was great temporary dis- tress of the hand-spinners, with rioting and destruction of spinning-mills. If these modes of resistance to invention had gone on to prevent altogether the manufacture of cotton Flemish weaver. From a print of 1568. thread by the spinning machinery, the consumption of cot- ton cloth would have been little increased, and the number of persons engaged in the manufacture would have been twenty, thirty or even forty times less than the present number. But there would have been another result. Would the great body of the people of Europe have chosen to wear for many years dear cloth instead of cheap cloth, that CHAP. XVI. COTTON MANUFACTURE. 231 a few thousand spinners might have been kept at their ancient wheels in Lancashire ? Capital can easily shift its place, and invention follows where capital goes before. The people of France, and Germany, and America, would have employed the cheap machine instead of the dear one ; and the people of England would have had cheap cloth instead of dear cloth from thence. We cannot build a wall of brass round our islands ; and the thin walls of prohibitive- duties are very easily broken through. A profit of from twenty to thirty per cent, will pour in any given quantity of smuggled goods that a nation living under prohibitive laws can demand. Bonaparte, in the height of his power, passed the celebrated Berlin decree for the exclusion of all English produce from the continent of Europe. But our merchants laughed at him. The whole coast of France, and Holland, and Italy, became one immense receiving place for smuggled goods. If he had lined the whole coast with all the six hundred thousand soldiers that he marched to Russia, instead of a few custom-house officers, he could not have stopped the introduction of English produce. It was against the nature of things that the people who had been accustomed to cheap goods should buy dear ones ; or that they should go without any article, whether of necessity or luxury, whose use had become general. Mark, therefore, if the cotton-spinners of Lancashire had triumphed eighty years ago over Arkwrightfs machinery, there would not have been a single man, woman, or child of those spinners employed at all, within twenty years after that most fatal triumph. The manufacture of cotton would have gone to other countries; cotton spinning in England would have been at an end. The same thing would have happened if the power-loom, fifty years ago, had been put down by com- bination ; other countries would have used the invention which we should have been foolish enough to reject. Thirty years ago America had adopted the power-loom. In the cotton manufacture, which from its immense amount possesses the means of rewarding the smallest im- provement, invention has been at work, and most success- 232 COTTON MANUFACTURE. CHAP. XVI. fully, to make machines, that make machines, that make the cotton thread. There is a part of the machinery used in cotton-spinning called a reed. It consists of a number of pieces of wire, set side by side in a frame, resembling, as far as such things admit of comparison, a comb with two backs. These reeds are of various lengths and degrees of fineness ; but they all consist of cross pieces of wire, fastened at regular intervals between longitudinal pieces of split cane, into which they are tied with waxed thread. A machine now does the work of reed-making. The materials enter the machine in the shape of two or three yards of cane, and many yards of wire and thread ; and the machine cuts the wire, places each small piece with unfailing regu- larity between the canes, twists the thread round the cane with a knot that cannot slip, every time a piece of wire is put in, and does several yards of this extraordinary work in less time than we have taken to write the description. There is another machine for making a part of the machine for cotton-spinning, even more wonderful. The cotton wool is combed by circular cards of every degree of fine- ness ; and the card-making machine, receiving only a supply of leather and wire, does its own work without the aid of hands. It punches the leather cuts the wire passes it through the leather clinches it behind and gives it the proper form of the tooth in front producing a complete card of several feet in circumference in a wonderfully short time. All men feel the benefit of such inventions, because they lessen the cost of production. The necessity for them always precedes their use. There were not reed-makers and card-makers enough in England to supply the demands of the cotton machinery ; so invention went to work to see how machines could make machines ; and the consequent diminished cost of machinery has diminished the price of clothing. CHAP. XVII. WOOLLEN MANUFACTURE. 233 CHAPTEE XVII. The woollen manufacture Divisions of employment Early history Prohibitory laws The Jacquard loom Middle-age legislation Sumptuary laws The silk manufacture Ribbon- weaving The linen manufacture Cloth-printing Bleaching. THOSE who have not taken the trouble to witness, or to inquire into, the processes by which they are surrounded with the conveniences and comforts of civilized life, can have no idea of the vast variety of ways in which invention is at work to lessen the cost of production. The people of India, who spin their cotton wholly by hand, and weave their cloth in a rude loom, would doubtless be astonished when they first saw the effects of machinery, in the calico which is returned to their own shores, made from the material brought from their own shores, cheaper than they themselves could make it. But their indolent habits would not permit them to inquire how machineiy produced this wonder. There are many amongst us who only know that the wool grows upon the sheep's back, and that it is con- verted into a coat by labour and machinery. They do not estimate the prodigious power of thought the patient labour the unceasing watchfulness the frequent disap- pointment the uncertain profit which many have had to encounter in bringing this machinery to perfection, and in organizing the modes of its working, in connection with labour. Further, their knowledge of history may have been confined to learning by rote the dates when kings began to reign, with the names of the battles they fought or the rebels they executed. Of the progress of commerce and the arts they may have been taught little. The records of wool constitute a real part of the history of England ; and form, in our opinion, a subject of far more permanent 234 WOOLLEX MANUFACTURE. CHAP. XVII. importance than the scandalous annals of the wives of Henry VIII., or the mistresses of Charles II. Let us first take a broad view of the more prominent facts that belong to our woollen manufacture; and then proceed to notice those of other textile fabrics. The reader will remember that when the fur-traders re- fused to advance to John Tanner a supply of blankets for his winter consumption, he applied himself to make gar- ments out of moose-skins. The skin was ready manufac- tured to his hands when he had killed and stripped the moose ; but still the blanket brought from England across the Atlantic was to him a cheaper and a better article of clothing than the moose-skin which he had at hand ; and he felt it a privation when the trader refused it to him upon the accustomed credit. It never occurred to him to think of manufacturing a blanket; although he was in some respects a manufacturer. He was a manufacturer of sugar, amongst the various trades which he followed. He used to travel about the country till he had found a grove of maple-trees ; and here he would sit down for a month or two till he had extracted sugar from the maples. Why did he not attempt to make blankets ? He had not that Accu- mulated Knowledge, and he did not work with that Divi- sion of Labour, which are essential to the manufacture of blankets both, of which principles are carried to their highest perfection when capital enables the manufacture of woollen cloth, or any other article, to be carried forward upon a large scale. We will endeavour to trace what accumulations of skill, and what divisions of employment, were necessary to enable Tanner to clothe himself with a piece of Woollen cloth. We shall not stop to inquire whether the skill has produced the division of employment, or the division of employment has produced the skill. It is sufficient for us to show, that the two principles are in joint operation, unitedly carrying forward the business of production in the most profitable manner. It is enough for us to know, that where there is no skill there is no division of employment, CHAP. XVII. DIVISION OF EMPLOYMENTS. 235 and where there is no division of employment there is no skill. Skill and division of employment are inseparably wedded. If they could be separated, they would in their separation cease to work profitably. They are kept together by the constant energy of capital, devising the most pro- fitable direction for labour. Before a blanket can be made, we must have the material for making a blanket. Tanner had not the material, because he was not a cultivator. Before wool can be grown there must be, as we have shown, appropriation of land. When this appropriation takes place, the owner of the land either cultivates it himself, which is the earliest stage in the divi- sion of agricultural employment, or he obtains a portion of the produce in the shape of corn or cattle, or in a money payment. Hence a tenantry. But the tenant, to manu- facture wool at the greatest advantage, must possess capital, and carry forward the principle of the division of employ- ment by hiring labourers. We use the word manufacture of wool advisedly ; for all farming processes are manufacturing processes, and invariably reduce themselves to change of form, as all commercial processes reduce themselves to change of place. If the capital of the farmer is sufficient to enable him to farm upon a large scale, he divides his labourers ; and one becomes a shepherd, one a ploughman, one sows the ground, and one washes and shears the sheep, more skilfully than another. If he has a considerable farm, he divides his land, also, upon the same principle, and has pasture, and arable, and rotation of crops. By these divi- sions he is enabled to manufacture wool cheaper than the farmer upon a small scale, who employs one man to do everything, and has not a proper proportion of pasture and arable, or a due rotation of crops. At every division of employment skill must be called forth in a higher perfection than when two or more employments were joined together ; and the chief director of the skill, the capitalist himself, or fanner, must require more skill to make all the parts which compose his manufactuiy work together harmoniously. But we have new divisions of employment to trace before 236 WOOLLEN MANUFACTURE. CHAP. XVII. the wool can be got to the manufacturer. These employ- ments are created by what may be called the local division of labour. It is convenient to rear the sheep upon the mountains of Wales, because there the short and thyrny pastures are fitted for the growth of wool. It is convenient to manufacture the wool into cloth at Leeds, because coals are there at hand to give power to the steam-engines, with which the manufacture is carried on. The farmer in Wales, and the manufacturer of cloth at Leeds, must be brought into connection. In the infancy of commerce one or both of them would make a journey to establish this connection ; but the cost of that journey would add to the cost of the wool, and therefore lessen the consumption of woollen cloth. The division of employment goes on to the creation of a wool-factor, or dealer in wool, who either purchases directly from the grower, or sells to the manufacturer for a commission from the grower. The grower, therefore, sends the wool direct to the factor, whose business it is to find out what manufacturer is in want of wool. If the factor did not exist, the manufacturer would have to find out, by a great deal of personal exertion, what farmer had wool to sell ; or the farmer would have to find out, with the same exertion, what manufacturer wanted to buy wool. The factor receives a commission, which the seller and buyer ultimately unite in paying. They co-operate to establish a wool-factor, just as we all co-operate to establish a postman ; and just as the postman, who delivers a number of letters to a great many individuals, does that service at little more cost to all, than each individual would pay for the delivery of a single letter, so does the wool-factor ex- change the wool between the grower and the manufacturer, at little more cost to a large number of the growers who employ him, than each would be obliged to pay in expenses and loss of time to travel from Wales to Leeds to sell his wool. We have, however, a great many more divisions of em- ployment to follow out before the wool is conveyed from Wales to Leeds or Bradford. If the packs are taken on shipboard, and carried down the Mersey to Liverpool, we CHAP. XVII. WOOLLEN MANUFACTURE. 237 have all the variety of occupations, involving different degrees of skill, which make up the life of a mariner; if they go forward upon the railroad to Manchester, we have all the higher degrees of skill involved in their trans- port which belong to the business of an engineer; or if they finally reach their destination by canal, we have another division of labour that adjusts itself to the manage- ment of boats in canals. But the ship, the railroad, the canal, which are created by the necessity of transporting commodities from place to place, have been formed after the most laborious exercise of the highest science, working with the greatest mechanical skill; and they exist only through the energy of prodigious accumulations of capital, the growth of centuries of patient and painful labour and economy. We have at length the wool in a manufactury at Leeds or Bradford. The first class of persons who prepare the wool, are the sorters and pickers. It is their business to separate the fine from the coarse locks, so that each may be suited to different fabrics. There is judgment required, which could not exist without division of labour ; and the business, too, must be done rapidly, or the cost of sorting and picking would outweigh the advantage. The second principal operation is scouring. Here the men are con- stantly employed in washing the wool, to free it from all impurities. It is evident that the same man could not profitably pass from the business of sorting to that of scouring, and back again, from dry work to wet, and from wet to dry. When the wool is out of the hands of the scourers it comes into those of the dyers, who colour it with the various chemical agents applied to the manu- facture. The carders next receive it, who tear it with machines till it attains the requisite fineness. From the carders it passes to the slubbers, who form it into tough loose threads ; and thence to spinners, who make the threads finer and stronger. There are sub-divisions of employment which are not essential for us to notice, to give an idea of the great division of employment, and the 238 WOOLLEN MANUFACTURE. CHAP. XVII. consequent accumulation of peculiar skill, required to pre- pare wool to be made into yarn, to be made into woollen cloth. The next stages in the manufacture are the spinning, the warping, the sizing, and the weaving. These are all dis- tinct operations, and are all carried forward with the most elaborate machinery, adapted to the division of labour which it enforces, and by which it is enforced. But there is a great deal still to be done before the cloth is fit to be worn. The cloth, now woven, has to be scoured as the wool was. There is a subsequent process called burling, at which females are constantly employed. The boiling and milling come next, in which the cloth is again exposed to the action of water, and beaten so as to give it toughness and consistency. Dressers, called giggers, next take it in hand, who also work with machinery upon the wet cloth. It has then to be dried in houses where the temperature is sometimes as high as 130 degrees, and where the men work almost naked. It is evident that the boilers and dressers could not profitably work in the dry-houses ; and that there must be division of employment to prevent those sudden transitions which would destroy the human frame much more quickly than a regular exposure to cold or heat, to damp or dryness. The cloth must be next cropped or cut upon the face, to remove the shreds of wool which deform the surface in every direction. When cut, it has to be brushed dry by machinery, to get out the crop- pings which remain in its texture. This done, it is dyed in the shape of cloth, as it was formerly dyed in the shape of wool. Then come a variety of processes, to increase the delicacy of the fabric : singeing, by passing the cloth within a burning distance of red-hot cylinders ; frizing, to raise a nap upon the cloth ; glossing, by carrying over it heavy heated plates of iron ; pressing, in which operation of the press red-hot plates are also employed ; and drawing, in which men, with fine needles, draw up minute holes in the cloth when it has passed through the last operation. Then comes the packing ; and after all these processes it CHAP. XVII. WCOLLEN MANUFACTURE. 239 must "be bought by a wholesale dealer, and again by a retailer, before it reaches the consumer. Between the growth- of the fleece of wool, and the completion of a coat by a skilful tailor, who, it is affirmed, puts five-and-twenty thousand stitches into it, what an infinite division of em- ployments ! what inventions of science ! what exercises of ingenuity ! what unwearied application ! what painful, and too often unhealthy labour! And yet if men are to be clothed well and cheaply, all these manifold processes are not in vain ; and the individual injury in some branches of the employ is not to be compared to the suffering that would ensue if cloth were not made at all, or if it were made at such a cost that the most wealthy only could afford to wear it. But for the accumulation of knowledge, and the division of employments, engaged in the manufacture of cloth, and set in operation by large capital, we should each be obliged to be contented with a blanket such as John Tanner desired, and very few indeed would even obtain that blanket : for if skill and division of labour were not to go on in one branch, they would not go on in another, and then we should have nothing to give in exchange for the blanket. The individual injury to health, also, produced by the division of labour, is not so great, upon the average, as if there were no division. All the returns of human life in this country show an extremely little difference in the effect upon life, even of what we consider the most unhealthy trades ; and this proceeds from that extraordinary power of the human body to adapt itself to a habit, however apparently injurious $ which is one of the most beautiful evidences of the compensating prin- ciple which prevails throughout the moral world. The wool manufacture of Great Britain employs very nearly three hundred thousand persons ; in the various processes connected with the production of cloth, worsted, flannel, blankets, and carpets. What a contrast to all this variety of labour is the history of the earlier stages of the manufacture of woollen cloth. It is unnecessary to go back to the time of Henry III., when the production of wool was 240 WOOLLEN MANUFACTURE. CHAP. XVII in such an imperfect state through flocks of sheep being scattered over immense tracts of waste land, that a manor in Surrey was held under the crown by the tenure of gathering wool for the Queen. According to the record, Peter de Baldewyn was to gather the wool from the thorns that had torn it from the sheep's back ; and if he did not choose to gather it he was to forfeit twenty shillings. * In the time of Edward III., according to Fuller, in his * Church History,' the English clothiers were wholly un- skilful; "knowing no more what to do with their wool than the sheep which wear it, as to any artificial and curious drapery, their best cloth being no better than frieze, such their coarseness for want of skill in the making." When the Flemish clothiers came into England, the manufacture improved ; in spite of the regulating power of the state, which was perpetually interfering with mate- rial, quality, and wages. In time wool became the chief commodity of England. The woolsack of the House of Lords was typical of this staple industry ; and of the mode also in which the majesty of legislation sat heavy upon the produce. To encourage the manufacture nothing was to be woven but wool. From the cradle to the grave all were to be wrapt in wool. The genius of prohibition prevented the exchange of wool with other manufactured commodities; and, therefore, to keep up rents, Narcissa was " odious in woollen," and a Holland * shirt for British linen did not exist was a rare commodity, cheap at " eight shillings an ell," as in the days of Dame Quickly. This was the state of things at the end of the 17th cen- tury, and somewhat later. The manufacturers clamoured against the exportation of wool ; and the agriculturists at the same time resisted the importation of Irish and Scotch cattle. The parliament listened to both sets of clamourers. It said to the people : You of trade shall not be ruined by the land selling wool to foreigners there shall be no com- petition ; you shall buy the wool at the lowest price. And then parliament turned round to the complaining grazier, * Blount's < Ancient Tenure?,' ed. 1784, p. 183. CHAP. XVII. WOOLLEN MANUFACTURE. 241 and said, the clotli-inaker and his men shall not ruin you by buying meat cheap no Irish cattle or Scotch sheep shall come here to lower your prices. From 1664 to 1824 the exportation of wool was strictly prohibited. The im- portation was sometimes prevented by high duties some- times encouraged by low. The manufacture was constantly struggling with these attempts of the state to hold a balance between what were so universally considered as conflicting interests. In 1844 the whole system was abandoned. In 1853, we imported one hundred and seventeen million Ibs. of sheep and lamb's wool of which three-fifths came from Australia and two million of alpaca and llama wool. The wool-growers at home still found a ready market ; the great body of the population had good coats and flannels and blankets; and, in addition, we exported ten million pounds sterling of woollen manufactures. The employment of wool in the manufacture of broad- cloth and flannel was, a few years ago, almost the entire business of the woollen factories. The novel uses to which wool is now applied, and the almost innumerable varieties of articles of clothing which are produced from long wool and short wool from combinations of alpaca wool and coarse wool, of wool with cotton, of wool with silk to- gether with the introduction of brilliant dyes and tasteful designs, formerly unknown have established vast seats of manufacture which are almost peculiar to our country, and have converted, in a few years, humble villages into great cities. The finest Paisley shawls rival the elaborate handi- craft of Hindustan ; and, what is of more importance, the humblest female may purchase a tasteful article of dress at a price which a few years ago would have been thought fa- bulous. The wonderful variety of patterns which we see in these and other productions of modern skill are eifected by the Jacquard apparatus, in which the pattern depends upon the disposition of holes pierced in separate bits of pasteboard. In common weaving, the weft threads pass alternately under and over the entire warp threads, which are lifted up to allow the weft in the shuttle to traverse 242 WOOLLEN MANUFACTURE. CHAP. XVII. from one side to the other. The Jacquard apparatus deter- mines, by the number and arrangement of the holes in the cards, which of the separate warp threads shall be so lifted ; for at every throw of the shuttle the blank part of each card moves a series of levers which raise certain warp threads ; while other levers, passing into the holes in the card, do not aifect the other warp threads. In this way, patterns of the greatest complexity are woven in cotton, and worsted, and silk ; so that even a minute work of art, such as a por- CHAP. XV1T. WOOLLEN MANUFACTURE. 243 trait or a landscape, may be produced from the loom. Every pattern requires a separate set of cards. We do not expect this brief notice to be readily understood. Those who would comprehend the extent of ingenuity involved in the principle of this invention, and the beautiful results of which it is capable, should witness its operation in a Halifax power-loom. In a bobbin-net machine the cards Jacquard cards. are connected with a revolving pentagonal bar, each side of which is pierced with holes, corresponding with the pins or R 2 244 WOOLLEN MANUFACTURE. CHAP. XVII. levers above. When a card comes over the topmost side of the pentagon the levers drop ; but those pins only which enter through the holes in the card affect the pattern which is being worked. Any one who views this complicated arrangement in a Nottingham lace-machine, requires no small amount of attention to comprehend its mysterious movements ; and when the connection is perceived between that chain of dropping cards, and the flower that is being worked in the lace, a vague sense of the manifold power of invention comes over the mind we had almost said an awful sense. If there be one thing more remarkable than another in the visible condition of the people of Great Britain, it is the universality of useful, elegant, and cheap clothing. There is very small distinction in the ordinary coat and trowsers of the peer and the best dress of the artisan; and not a great deal more in the gown and shawl of the high-born lady and those of the handmaid of her toilet. Perhaps the absence of mere finery, and the taste which is an accom- paniment of superior education, constitute the chief differ- ence in the dress of various ranks. This feature of the present times is a part of our social history. For several centuries the domestic trade of the country was hemmed round and fettered by laws against extrava- gance in dress, which had always been a favourite subject for the experimentalizing of barbarous legislation. An act of 1463, recites that the Commons pray their lord the king to remember that in the times of his noble progenitors, ordinances and statutes were made for the apparel and array of the commons, as well of men as of women, so that none of them should use or wear any inordinate or exces- sive apparel, but only according to their degrees. However, we find that all these ordinances had been utterly fruitless. The parliament makes new ordinances. The nobles, ac- cording to these, may wear whatever they please ; knights and their wives were to wear no cloth of gold, or fur of sables ; no person under the state of a lord to wear any CHAP. XVII. SILK MANUFACTURE. 245 purple silk ; no esquires or gentlemen and their wives any silk at all ; no persons not having possessions of the yearly value of forty pounds, any fur ; and, what is cruel indeed, no widow but such as hath possessions of the value of forty pounds, shall wear any fur, any gold or silver girdle, or any kerchief that had cost more than three shillings and four-pence ; persons not having forty shillings a-year were denied the enjoyment of fustian and scarlet cloth; the yeoman was to have no stuffing in his doublet ; nor servants in husbandry, broadcloth of a higher price than two shil- lings a yard. The length of gowns, jackets, and cloaks, was prescribed by the same statute; and the unhappy tailor who exceeded the length by the breadth of his nail, was to be mulcted in the same penalties as those who flaunted in skirts of more than needful longitude. The men and women of the mystery and workmanship of silk prefer their piteous complaint to parliament, that silk-work ready wrought is brought into the realm. If it had occurred to them to petition that the gentlemen and their wives might be permitted to wear satin, as well as the lords, their piteous complaint of want of occupation might have been more easily redressed than by foreign prohibition. Sump- tuary laws have long been abolished ; but to them suc- ceeded the laws of custom, which prescribed one sort of dress to one condition of people, and another to another. We cannot doubt which state gives most employment to manufacturers, the law of exclusiveness or the law of uni- versality. If the labourer and artificer were still restricted, by enactment or by custom, to the wearing of cloth of a certain price per yard, we may be quite sure that the manufacture of the finer cloths would be in no flourishing condition; and if the servant-maid could not put on her Sunday gown of silk, we may be equally clear that the silk- trade would continue to be the small thing that it was half a century ago, when it had the full benefit of restriction, instead of being, as it is now, one of the great staple trades of the country. When the frame-work knitters of silk stockings peti- 246 SILK MANUFACTURE. CHAP. XVII. tioned Oliver Cromwell for a charter, they said, " the Englishman buys silk of the stranger for twenty marks, and sells him the same again for one hundred pounds." The higher pride of the present day is that we buy seven million pounds of raw silk from the stranger, employ a hundred and fourteen thousand of our own people in the manufacture of it by the aid of machinery, and sell it to the stranger, and our own people, at a price as low as that of the calico of half a century ago. In 1853 the exports of silk manufactures, including those of silk mixed with other materials, silk-yarn and silk-twist, amounted to the enor- mous sum of two millions sterling, having doubled since 1849. In 1826, when the ruin of our silk-trade was boldly prophesied as the sure result of the reduction of the prohi- bitive duties on foreign silk, the exports of our silk manu- factures did not reach two hundred thousand pounds. William Huskisson, the great statesman who produced this mighty change, was then denounced in parliament as "an insensible and hard-hearted metaphysician." When a boy who keeps silk-worms upon mulberry leaves, puts a spinning- worm into a little paper bag, and finally ob- tains an oval ball of silk, he does, upon a small scale, what is done in the silk-growing countries upon a large scale. When he winds off his cocoon of silk upon a little reel, he is engaged in the first 1 process of silk making. There must be myriads of silk-worms reared to produce the seven mil- lion pounds of raw silk that Great Britain manufactures. The school-boy, from three or four silk- worms, can obtain a little skein of silk, which he carefully puts between the leaves of a book, and looks at it again and again, in delight at its glossy beauty. Perhaps he does not take the trouble to think how many such skeins would be required to pro- duce a pair of silk stockings. As the school-boy puts his skein into a book, so the silk-producers of India, Italy, Persia, and Turkey, send us their hanks of silk, which we call by various names, made up as shown in the opposite page. In Egypt, a silk-producing country, a woman has a simple machine for preparing the hanks of silk for the purposes of CHAP. XVII. SILK MANUFACTURE. 247 Hanks of silk, a, Bengal ; &, Italian ; c, Persian ; d, Broussa. Egyptian winding-reel. 248 SILK MANUFACTURE. CHAP. XVII. commerce. She winds the silk upon a reel. She has no moving power but that of her hand and arm. In England a woman also attends to a winding-machine, by which the silk is transferred to bobbins, for the purpose of being spun to various degrees of fineness. She has no labour to per- form, beyond the providing a supply of material to be wound, removing a bobbin when it is filled, placing an empty one in its place, and occasionally piecing a broken thread. She is doing what the machine cannot do adjust- ing her operations to many varying circumstances. The machine is moved by the steam-engine; but the steam- engine, the reels, and the bobbins would work unavail- ingly, without the guidance of the mind that waits upon and watches them. Silk winding machine. The peculiarity in the manufacture of silk-twist, or thread, as distinguished from that of cotton, or flax, or wool, is that it is produced naturally in one uninterrupted length. The object of the machinery of a silk-mill is, not to combine CHAP. XVII. LINEN MANUFACTURE. 249 short fibres in a continuous thread by spinning, but to wind and twist, so as to unite many slight threads already formed into one thread of sufficient strength for the purpose of weaving, or of sewing. The subsequent processes are the same as with the fibrous substances. The machinery by which these processes are carried on has been improved, by successive degrees, since Thomas Lombe erected the first silk-mill at Derby, in the beginning of the 18th cen- tury. He obtained a patent which expired in 1 732 ; and parliament, refusing to renew his patent, granted him a compensation, upon the condition that he should deposit an exact model of his machinery in the Tower of London. That model was shown to the visitors of the Tower in the present century ; and, by comparison with the vast array of spindles in a modern silk-mill, would seem as inefficient as the flail compared with the thrashing-machine. Ribbon-weaving is a branch of the silk manufacture, in which our country is rapidly attaining an excellence as regards beauty of design, which may fairly compete with the best productions of the French looms. Thomas Firmin, a philanthropic writer, who published ' Proposals for the Employment of the Poor,' in 1681, says, "It is a thing greatly to be wished that we could make linen cloth here as cheap as they send it us from abroad." He thought the poor might then be employed; but he despairingly adds, " if that cannot be done, nor any other way found out to employ our poor people, we had much better lose something by the labour of our poor, than lose all their labour ; " and so he proposes to give those who were idle flax and hemp to spin in spacious workhouses. The notion was a benevolent one ; and it was the favourite scheme, for half a century, to destroy idleness and beggary in England, by setting up manufactories at the public cost. Defoe saw the fallacy of the principle, and resisted it with his strong common sense : " Suppose now a workhouse for the employment of poor children sets them to spinning of worsted. For every skein of worsted these poor children 250 CLOTH PRINTING. CHAP. XVII. spin, there must be a skein the less spun by some poor person or family that spun it before." Defoe saw that there could be no profitable increase of labour without increase of consumption ; and he argues that if the Czar of Muscovy would order his people to wear stockings, and we could supply them, the poor might then be set to work. The in- crease of consumption, all over the world, is produced by the inventions which diminish the cost of production. We now make linen cloth here cheaper than it is sent to us from abroad; and the result is that in 1853 we exported our linen manufactures to the extent of six million pounds sterling ; and employed a hundred thousand persons in the manufacture. In the flax-mill of Messrs. Marshall, at Leeds, where all the operations of spinning are carried on in one enormous room, five times as large as Westminster-hall, seventy thousand Ibs. of flax are worked up weekly into yarn. The question of flax-cultivation in these kingdoms has been agitaled of late years ; and the course of political events has rendered the consideration of an increased home supply, a matter of pressing importance. It is not an easy matter to provide for the demand. The great flax-mill at Leeds would require the flax- cultivation of six thousand acres, to keep its spindles at work for one year. Having thus noticed the leading processes of the manu- facture of cotton, of wool, of silk, of linen, we may conclude this chapter with a brief mention of the art that gives to many of the fabrics produced their chief beauty the art of printing cloth in colours. This art applies to the finest as well as the commonest productions of the loom; and the science of the British dyer, the beauty of his patterns, and the perfection of his machinery, have now given us an eminence in this department of industry which can only be preserved by constant efforts towards perfection of design and durable brilliancy of colour. There is a striking, although natural parallel, between printing a piece of cloth and printing a sheet of a book, or a newspaper. Block-printing is the impress of the pattern by hand; as block-books were made four centuries ago. We CHAP. XVII. CLOTH PRINTING. 251 have no block-books now ; for machinery has banished that tedious process. But block-printing is used for costly shawls and velvets, which require to have many colours produced by repeated impress from a large number of blocks, each carrying a different colour. Except for expen- sive fabrics, this mode is superseded by block-printing with a sort of press, in which several blocks are set in a frame. Here again is somewhat of a similarity to the operation of the book-press. Lastly, we have cylinder-printing, resembling the rapid working of the book-printing machine, each pro- ducing the same cheapness. As the pattern has to be obtained from several cylinders, each having its own colour, there is great nicety in the operation ; and the most beautiful me- chanism is necessary for feeding the cylinder with colour ; moving the cloth to meet the revolving cylinder ; and giving to the cylinder its power of impression. But those who witness the operation see little of the ultimate effect to be obtained in the subsequent processes of dyeing. Fast colours are produced by the use in the pattern of substances called mordants ; which may be colourless themselves but receive the colour of the dye-bath, which colour is only fixed in the parts touched by the mordant, and is washed out from the parts not touched. When what is called a substan- tive colour is at once impressed upon the white cloth, much of the beauty is also derived from subsequent processes. The chemist, the machinist, the designer, and the engraver science and art set the calico-printing works in activity ; and the carrying on these complicated processes can only be profitably done upon a large scale. In the earlier days of our cotton manufacture there were small print-works in the neighbourhood of London, where the imperfect machinery was turned by water-power. The steam-engine of one Lan- cashire factory now produces more printed cottons and muslins than all the rivers of southern England in the last century. The calico-printers now number about twenty- seven thousand persons. But no direct enumeration can be made of the employments that are required merely to pro- duce the dyes with which the calico-printer works. The 252 CLOTH PBINTTHG. CHAP. XVII. mineral and vegetable kingdoms, and even the animal king- dom, combine their natural productions in the colours of a lady's dress. The sulphur-miner of Sicily, the salt-worker of Cheshire, the hewer of wood in the Brazils, the Negro in the indigo plantations of the East and West Indies, the cultivator of madder in France, and the gatherer of the cochineal insect in Mexico, are all labourers for the print-works of England and Scotland. The discoveries of science, in com- bination with the experience of practice, has set all this in- dustry in motion, and has given a value to innumerable productions of nature which would otherwise be useless and unemployed. But these demands of manufactures do more Indigo-harvest in West Indies. they create modes of cultivation which are important sources of national prosperity. Jean Althen, a Persian of great family, bred up in every luxury, became a slave in Anatolia, when Kouli-Khan overthrew the Persian empire. CHAP. XVII. CLOTH PRINTING. 253 For fourteen years he worked in the cotton and madder- fields. He then escaped to France, carrying with him some madder-seeds. Long did he labour in vain to attract the attention of the government of Louis XV. to his plans. At length, having spent all the fortune which he had acquired by marriage with a French heiress, he obtained the patronage of the Marquis de Caumont, in his attempts to introduce the cultivation of madder into the department of Vaucluse. His life was closing in comparative indigence when a new branch of industry was developed in his adopted country. The district in which he created a new industry has increased a hundred-fold in value. The debt of gratitude was paid by a tablet to his memory, erected sixty years after he was insensible to human rewards. We starve our benefactors when they are living ; and satisfy our consciences by votive monuments. Althen's daughter died as poor as her father. The tablet was erected at Avignon when the family was extinct. There is a process connected with the production of clothing which we must briefly refer to, as one of the signal examples of the axiom of our title ' Knowledge is Power.' Let us suppose that chemistry had not discovered and organised the modes in which bleaching is performed ; and that the thousands of millions of yards of calico and linen which we weave in this country had still to be bleached, as bleaching was accomplished in the last century. We knew nothing about the matter, and our linen was then sent over to Holland to go through this operation. The Dutch steeped the bundles of cloth in ley made by water poured upon wood ashes then soaked them in buttermilk and finally spread them upon the grass for several months. These were all natural agencies which discharged the colouring matter without any chemical science. It was at length found out that sulphuric acid would do the same work in one day which the buttermilk did in six weeks ; but the sun and the air had still to be the chief bleaching powers. A French chemist then found out that a new gas, chlorine, 254 BLEACHING. CHAP. XVII. would supersede the necessity for spreading out the linen for several months ; and so the acres of bleaching ground which we were using in England and Scotland for we had left off sending the brown and yellow cloth to Holland were free for cultivation. But the chlorine was poisonous to the workmen, and imparted a filthy odour to the cloth. Che- mistry again went to work, and finally obtained the chlo- ride of lime, which is the universal bleaching powder of modern manufactures. What used to be the work of eight months is now accomplished in an hour or two ; and so a bag of dingy raw cotton may be in New York on the first day of the month, and be converted into the whitest calico before the month is at an end. CHAP, XVIII. HOSIEKY MANUFACTURE, 255 CHAPTEE XVIII. Hosiery manufacture The stocking-frame The circular hosiery-machine Hats Gloves Boots and shoes Straw -plait Artificial flowers Fans Lace Bobbin-net machine Pins Needles Buttons Toys Lucifer-matches Envelopes. BEFORE the invention of the first stocking-machine, in the year 1589, by William Lee, a clergyman, none but the very rich wore stockings, and many of the most wealthy went without stockings at all, that part of dress being sewn to- gether by the tailor, or their legs being covered with ban- dages of cloth. The covering for the leg was called a " nether-stock," or lower stocking. Philip Stubbes, a tre- mendous declaimer against every species of luxury, thus describes the expensive stockings of his time, 1585 : " Then have they nether-stocks to these hosen, not of cloth (though never . so fine), for that is thought too base, but of jarnsey, worsted, crewell, silk, thread, and suchlike, or else at the least of the finest yarn that can be got, and so curiously knit with open seam down the leg, with quirks and clocks about the ancles, and sometime, haply, interlaced with, gold or silver threads, as is wonderful to behold. And to such impudent insolency and shameful outrage it is now grown, that every one, almost, though otherwise very poor, having scarce forty shillings of wages by the year, will not stick to have two or three pair of these silk nether-stocks, or else of the finest yarn that may be got, though the price of them be a ryall, or twenty shillings, or more, as commonly it is ; for how can they be less, when as the very knitting of them is worth a noble or a ryall, and some much more 9 The time hath been when one might have clothed his body well for less than a pair of these nether-stocks will cost." 256 HOSIERY MANUFACTURE. CHAP. XVIII. It is difficult to understand how those who had only forty shillings a year wages could expend twenty shillings upon a pair of knit stockings. It is quite clear they were for the rich only ; and that very few persons were employed in knitting and embroidering stockings. William Lee struggled to make stockings cheap. He made a pair of stockings by the frame, in the presence of King James I. ; but such was the prejudice of those times, that he could get no encouragement for his invention. His invention was discountenanced, upon the plea that it would deprive the industrious poor of their subsistence. He went to France, where he met with no better success, and died at last of a broken heart. The great ihen*could discounte- nance an invention, because its application was limited to themselves. They only wore stockings : the poor who made them had none to wear. Stockings were not cheap enough for the poor to wear, and therefore they went without. Of the millions of people now in this country, how few are without stockings ! What a miserable exception to the comfort of the rest of the English people does it appear when we see a beggar in the streets without stockings ! We consider such a person to be in the lowest stage of want and suffering. Two centuries ago, not one person in a thousand wore stockings ; one century ago, not one person in five hundred wore them ; now, not one person in a thousand is without them. Who made this great change in the condition of the people of England, and, indeed, of the people of almost all civilized countries? William Lee who died at Paris of a broken heart. And why did he die of grief and penury ? Because the people of his own days were too ignorant to accept the blessings he had prepared for them. We ask with confidence, had the terror of the stocking- frame any real foundation ? W T ere any people thrown out of employment by the stocking frame ? " The knitters in the sun, And the free maids who weave their thread with bones," CHAP. XVIII. HOSIERY MANUFACTURE. 257 as Shakspere describes the country lasses of his day, had to change their employment ; but there was far more employ- ment for the makers of stockings, for then every one began to wear stodldngs. The hosiery manufacture furnishes employment to many persons besides those who work at the stocking-machine. The frame-worker, in many cases, makes the knit-work in a piece adapted for a stocking, and does not make a finished stocking ; the seamer makes the stocking out of the piece so produced. When we speak of the stocking-frame, we speak of a machine which knits every article of hosiery. In this manufacture there were employed, in 1851, sixty- five thousand five hundred persons, of whom thirty thou- sand were females. Suppose that the ignorance and prejudice which prevailed at the time of James I. upon the subject of machinery had continued to the present day ; and that not only the first stocking-frame of William Lee had never been used, but that all machines employed in the manufacture of hosiery had never been thought of; and they could not have been thought of if the first machines had been put down. The greater number of us, in that case, would have been without stockings. But there would have been a greater evil than even this. We might all have found substitutes for stockings, or have gone without them. But the progress of ingenuity would have been stopped. The inventive principle would have been destroyed. We have not reached the end of our career of improve- ment. Civilization is not destined to run a backward race. William Lee's stocking-frame worked well for two centuries and a half. One of the most beautiful contrivances of our time has now greatly superseded it. The circular hosiery machine more properly called a machine for manufacturing " looped fabrics" works at such a rate that one girl at- tending upon the revolutions of this wonderful instrument can produce in one day the material for two hundred and forty pairs of stockings. She turns a little handle, with the 258 HOSIERY MANUFACTURE. CHAP. XVIII. ease with which she would turn a barrel-organ ; and, as the machine revolves, hundreds of needles catch -the threai and loop it into the chain which forms the stocking-cloth, or it makes the fashioned stocking. The new hosiery- machines have doubled the employment of the stocking- makers, by enabling us to meet the competition of foreign countries. The English were working upon the old slow stocking-frame, while the French and Belgians were using the rapid circular machine. The markets of the world would have been soon closed to us if we had clung to the old machine, through the force of any popular prejudice against a new machine. There is no portion of the export trade of this country which has increased with such extra- ordinary rapidity within the last six years as that of hosiery. The following abstract of the declared value of stockings exported since 1848 will sufficiently indicate the effects of improved machinery in cheapening pro- duction : Stockings exported. 1848. 1850. 1852. 1853. Cotton 77,095 104,434 243,994 461,494 Silk 24,324 20,256 25,140 23,579 Worsted 40,413 74,482 117,349 261,140 Silk mixed with other material 39 3,327 4,705 10,464 141,871 202,499 391,188 756,677 The hosiery of Saxony was superseding, a few years ago, from its extreme cheapness, the shipment to the United States of goods made at Nottingham. The cheapness in Saxony was produced, not by the employment of large capi- tal and the application of the most expensive machinery, but by the miserably low wages of labour. It is stated by Mr. Porter that, in 1837, a man of Saxony, with his wife and three children, working incessantly at the stocking- loom, could only earn 5s. 4d. weekly. In the principal ma- nufacturing districts of that country, the food of the artisans CHAP. XVIII. HATS AND GLOVES. 259 is of the coarsest kind, and of the most limited supply. The comparative ease and comfort of the workers in our hosiery districts is one of the most satisfactory proofs that invention is as great a benefit to the labourer as to the capitalist. As the nether-stocks of our ancestors were for the great and wealthy, so were their Hats. Old Stubbes writes, " Sometimes they use them sharp on the crown, pearking up like the spear or shaft of a steeple, standing a quarter of a yard above the crown of their heads, some more, some less, as please the phantasies of their inconstant minds. Other some be flat and broad on the crown, like the battle- ments of a house. Another sort have round crowns, some- times with one kind of band, sometimes with another, now black, now white, now russet, now red, now green, now yellow, now this, now that, never content with one colour or fashion two days to an end. And thus in vanity they spend the Lord his treasure, consuming their golden years and silver days in wickedness and sin. And as the fashions be rare and strange, so is the stuff whereof their hats be made divers also ; for some are of silk, some of velvet, some of taffeta, some of sarsenet, some of wool, and, which is more curious, some of a certain kind of fine hair ; these they call beaver hats, of 20, 30, or 40 shillings price, fetched from beyond the seas, from whence a great sort of other vanities do come besides." Here, then, we see that the beaver hat was in those days an article of great price. The commonalty had their " plain statute caps " of wool. In our time the beaver hat was the common wear of the middle classes until the last few years, when the cheaper silk hat became almost universal. We import from France some plush for making hats ; but much of this silk material is also prepared in our own factories. Hats have therefore become intimately associated with the material produced by the loom. The manufacture of Gloves is connected, in a very large department, with the hosiery manufactory. The use of thread gloves and cotton gloves has had the effect, in some s2 2tfO GLOVES BOOTS AND SHOES. CHAP. XVIII. degree, of lessening the consumption of leather gloves. The importation of leather gloves and mitts was prohibited until 1825. We now import three million pairs annually ; and the home manufacture, instead of being ruined as was predicted, was never more prosperous. The French gloves, once so superior to our own, have improved the English, by the natural force of competition ; and the manufacturers not only purchase better leather than formerly, but the cottage-workwomen that labour in the glove districts have become neater and more careful sewers. The consumption of gloves has ceased to be exclusively for the rich. The perfumed and embroidered glove of the 16th century is no longer required. The use of gloves has become uni- Gloves for the great. versal amongst both sexes of the middle classes. The female domestic would think it unbecoming to go to church without her gloves ; and the well-dressed artisan holds it nothing effeminate to use a covering for his hands, which his forefathers thought a distinguishing appurtenance of the high-born and luxurious. Our home-manufacture of Boots and Shoes has received an immense impulse from' foreign competition. The number of men's and women's boots and shoes which we import is not much above two hundred thousand. But we also im- CHAP. XVIII. STRAW PLAT. 261 port six hundred thousand boot-fronts from France, which our own people work up. Although the boot and shoe manufacture can scarcely be considered a factory process, it has now adapted itself to certain localities, such as Northampton. The articles made in the provinces were originally distinguished for their cheapness merely. They now unite the characters of goodness and cheapness. This chiefly arises from the trade being carried on, at North- ampton especially, upon a large scale upon a principle the very reverse of the old familiar spectacle of the cobbler in his stall. Cobbler's stall, about 1760. The Straw-plat is a domestic manufacture, chiefly carried on in the midland and eastern counties. It employs thirty- two thousand persons, of whom twenty-eight thousand are females. The straw hat and bonnet makers amount to twenty-two thousand, of whom more than twenty thousand are females. The art of straw-platting has been greatly improved amongst us of late years ; but the Italian straw, being of a finer nature, is in greater demand for the higher priced bonnets. The beautiful production of Artificial Flowers has, in very recent years, been much increased in England. France, with its superior taste, long supplied us with these orna- 262 FAX-MAKING. CHAP. XVIII. inents, which had the brilliancy of natural flowers without their perishableness. But three thousand females, and five hundred males, are now engaged with us in this branch. The Fan-makers of England are only thirty in number. In France this is a large branch of manufacture. In the Jury Report on the Exhibition of Industry in 1851 there is a notice of the fan-trade of Paris, which is curious as showing the joint influences upon cheapness, of machinery, and of the multiplication of works of art by engraving. The fan-makers of Paris in 1847 employed five hundred and seventy-five workpeople the number of the sexes being pretty equally divided. " The men were for the most part copper-plate engravers and printers, litho- graphic draughtsmen and printers, painters, and colourers ; the women were mounters, illuminators, painters, colourers, and overlookers. In twenty years it appears that the produce in fans had increased in value nearly three- fold, whilst the number of workpeople had diminished one-half. This change is attributed to the employment of machinery, especially of the fly press, in stamping out and embossing the ribs, and the extensive employment of chromo-lithography, an art not practised at the former period. Ity these means the French have been enabled greatly to increase their exports by the production of cheap fans, to compete with those made by the Chinese." Dekker, in his * Gull's Hornbook,' printed in 1609, advises the gallant of his day to exhibit a " wrought hand- kerchief." A "handkerchief, spotted with strawberries," was Othello's first gift to Desdemona. It was an em- broidered handkerchief, such as is produced in the pre- sent day at Cairo by the Egyptian ladies in their private apartments. The embroidered shirts of the time of Eliza- beth are thus noticed by Stubbes : " These shirts (sometimes it happeneth) are wrought throughout with needle-work of silk, and such like, and curiously stitched with open seam, and many other knacks besides, more than I can describe ; in so much as I have heard of shirts that have cost some ten shillings, some CHAP. XVIII. BOBBIN-NET MACHINE. 263 Men'seg, or Egyptian embroidery-frame. twenty, some forty, some five pound, some twenty nobles, and (which is horrible to hear) some ten pound apiece." The embroidery-frame was in time superseded by the lace-pillow, which is stated to have been first used in Saxony in the sixteenth century. The production of Lace extended to Belgium and France ; and we are still familiar with the names of Brussels, Mechlin, Lisle, Valen- ciennes, and Alengon lace. Until the present century no lace was heard of but pillow-lace, a domestic manufac- ture, of which Honiton was the most famous seat. A stocking-weaver of Nottingham adapted his stocking-frame to the making of lace about 1770; and the bobbin-frame was invented in 1809. It was never extensively used till the expiration of the patent ; and the produce of this ma- chine was kept at so high a price by the patentees that it interfered little with the labour of the lace-makers in the cottages of the midland counties. But a time was coming when as much bobbin-net as the 264 BOBBIN-NET MACHINE. CHAP. XVIII. patentees of the first frame charged five pounds for would be sold for half-a-crown ; and when, as a necessary conse- quence of this cheapness, lace-making as a domestic em- ployment would wholly cease, or be confined to the pro- duction of an expensive article, supposed to be superior- to machine-made lace. That the old hand-labour could com- pete with the machine was an impossibility. Lace of an ordinary figured pattern used to be made on the pillow at the rate of about three meshes per minute. A bobbin-net machine will produce similar lace at the rate of twenty- four thousand meshes per minute, one person only being Bobbin-net meshes. CHAP. XVIII. BOBBIN-NET MACHINE. 265 266 PIN-MAKING. , CHAP. XVIII. required to wait upon the machine. Those who have watched the cottage lace-maker, working with her bobbins and pins, were unable, without long observation, to understand the principle upon which she intertwined the threads. But to explain the more rapid working of the bobbin-net machine would require such a minute acquaintance with all its parts as belongs to the business of the practical machinist, and which words are inadequate to exhibit. The accom- panying engraving offers the best notion we can furnish. Instead of England being now suppliec^ with lace from France and Belgium, we are now an exporting lace-country. In 1848 we exported cotton lace and net to the amount of 363,255?. ; in 1853 to the amount of 596,578?. According to the census of 1851, the number of persons employed in the lace manufacture was 63,660; of whom 54,080 were females. The same returns give the number^ of 4658 embroiderers. There is an article employed in dress which is at once so necessary and so beautiful that the highest lady in the land uses it, and yet so cheap that the poorest peasant's wife is enabled to procure it. The quality of the article is as perfect as art can make it ; and yet, from the enormous quantities consumed by the great mass of the people, it is made so cheap that the poor can purchase the best kind, as well as the rich. It is an article of universal use. United with machinery, many hundreds, and even thousands, are employed in making it. But if the machinery were to stop, and the article were made by human hands alone, it would become so dear that the richest only could afford to use it ; and it would become at the same time so rough in its appearance, that those very rich would be ashamed of using it. The article we mean is a Pin. It is not necessary for us to describe the machinery used in pin-making, to make the reader comprehend its effects. A pin is made of brass. We have seen how metal is ob- tained from ore by machinery, and therefore we will not go over that ground. But suppose the most skilful work- man has a lump of brass ready by his side, to make it into CHAP. XVIII. PIN-MAKING. 267 pins with common tools, with a hammer and with a file. He beats it upon an anvil, till it becomes nearly thin enough for his purpose. A very fine hammer, and a very fine touch, must he have to produce a pin of any sort, even a large corking-pin ! But the pin made by machinery is a perfect cylinder. To make a metal, or even a wooden cylinder, of a considerable size, with files and polishing, is an operation so difficult that it is never attempted ; but with a lathe and a sliding rest it is done every hour by a great many workmen. How much more difficult would it be to make a perfect cylinder the size of a pin ? A pin hammered out by hand would present a number of rough edges that would tear the clothes, as well as hold them together. It would not be much more useful or ornamental than the skewer of bone with which the woman of the Sandwich Islands fastens her mats. But the wire of which pins are made acquires a perfectly cylindrical form by the simplest machinery. It is forcibly drawn through the cir- cular holes of a steel plate ; and the hole being smaller and smaller each time it is drawn through, it is at length re- duced to the size required. The head of a pin is a more difficult thing to make even than the body. It is formed of a small piece of wire twisted round so as to fit upon the other wire. It is said that by a machine fifty thousand heads can be made in an hour. We should think that a man would be very skilful to make fifty in an hour by hand, in the roughest manner ; if so, the machine does the work of a thousand men. The machine, however, does not do all the work. ' The head is attached to the body of a pin by the fingers of a child, while another machine rivets it on. The operations of cutting and pointing the pins are also done by machinery ; and they are polished by a chemical process. It is by these processes, by these combinations of human labour with mechanical power, that it occurs that fifty pins can be bought for one halfpenny, and that there- fore four or five thousand pins may be consumed in a year by the most economical housewife, at a much less price 268 NEEDLE-MAKING. CHAP. XVIII. than fifty pins of a rude make cost two or three centuries ago. A woman's allowance was formerly called her pin-money, a proof that the pins were a sufficiently dear article to make a large item in her expenses. If pins now were to cost a halfpenny apiece instead of being fifty for a halfpenny, the greater number of females would adopt other modes of fastening their dress, which would probably be less neat and convenient than pins. No such circumstance could happen while the machinery of pin-making was in use. Needles are not so cheap as pins, because the material of which they are made is more expensive, and the processes cannot be. executed so fully by machinery. But without machinery how could that most beautiful article, a fine needle, "be sold at the rate of six for a penny ?* As in the case of pins, machinery is at work at the first formation of the material. Without the tilt-hammer, which beats out the bar of steel, first at the rate of ten strokes a minute, and lastly at that of five hundred, how could that bar be prepared for needle-making at anything like a rea- sonable price? In all the processes of needle-making, labour is saved by contrivance and machinery. What human touch, without a machine, would be accurate enough to make the eye of the finest needle, through which the most delicate silk is with difficulty passed ? There are two needles to be formed out of one piece of wire ; in the previous prepara- tion of which the eyes are marked. The workman, holding in his hand several wires, drops one at a time on the bed- iron of the machine, adjusts it to the die, brings down the upper die upon it by the action of the foot, and allows it to fall into a little dish when done. This he does with such rapidity that one stamper can stamp four thousand wires, equivalent to eight thousand needles, in an hour. Needles are made in such large quantities, that it is even important to save the time of the child who lays them all one way when they are completed. Mr. Babbage, who is equally distinguished for his profound science and his mechanical ingenuity, has described this process as an example of one of the simplest contrivances which can come CHAP. XVIII. NEEDLE-MAKING. 269 Stamping the eye of a needle. under the denomination of a tool. " It is necessary to separate the needles into two parcels, in order that their points may be all in one direction. This is usually done by women and children. The needles are placed sideways in a heap, on a table, in front of each operator. From five to ten are rolled towards this person by the forefinger of the left hand ; this separates them a very small space from each other, and each in its turn is pushed lengthways to the right or to the left, according as its eye is on the right or the left hand. This is the usual process, and in it every needle passes individually under the finger of the operator. A small alteration expedites the process considerably ; the 270 BUTTON MANUFACTURE. CHAP. XVIII. child puts on the forefinger of its right hand a small cloth cap or finger-stall, and, rolling from the heap from six to twelve needles, it keeps them down by the forefinger of the left hand ; whilst it presses the forefinger of the right hand gently against the ends of the needles, those which have their points towards the right hand stick into the finger-stall ; and the child, removing the finger of the left hand, allows the needles sticking into the cloth to be slightly raised, and then pushes them towards the left side. Those needles which had their eyes on the right hand do not stick into the finger-cover, and are pushed to the heap on the right side previous to the repetition of the process. By means of this simple contrivance, each movement of the finger, from one side to the other, carries five or six needles to their proper heap ; whereas, in the former method, fre- quently only one was moved, and rarely more than two or three were transported at one movement to their % place." A large number of people are employed, at Birmingham chiefly, in the manufacture of buttons. The census return gives about seven thousand. In the manufacture of a single button there is great division of labour amongst piercers, cutters, stampers, gilders, and burnishers. The engraving exhibits the operations of stamping, pressing, and punch- ing, as carried on in a great factory. The shank of a button is made by very complicated machinery as a distinct class of manufacture, and the button-makers buy the shanks. It has been stated that three firms in Birmingham annually make six hundred million of button-shanks. The application of machinery, or of peculiar scientific modes of working, to such apparently trifling, articles as pins, needles, buttons, and trinkets, may appear of little importance. But let it be remembered, that the manufac- ture of such articles furnishes employment to many thou- sands of our fellow-countrymen ; and, enabling us to supply other nations with these products, affords us the means of receiving articles of more intrinsic value in exchange. In 1853 our exports of hardware and cutlery amounted to more than three millions and a half sterling. No article of CHAP. XVIII KUTTOX MANUFACTURE. 271 272 THE TOY-TRADE. CHAP. XVIII. ready attainment, and therefore of general consumption, whether it be a labourer's spade or a child's marble, is un- important in a commercial point of view. The wooden figures of horses and sheep that may be bought for two- pence in the toy-shops furnish employment to cut them, during the long winter nights, to a large portion of the peasantry of the Tyrol. The Swiss peasant cuts a piece of white wood into a boy or a cottage, as he is tending his herd on the side of a mountain. These become considerable articles of export. In the town of Sonneberg, near the forest of Thuringia, four thousand inhabitants are principally employed in the toy-trade, and also find employment for the neighbouring villagers. Mr. Osier, of Birmingham, some years ago, addressing a Committee of the House of Commons upon the subject of his beads and trinkets, said, " On my first journey to London, a respectable-looking man in the City asked me if I could supply him with dolls' eyes ; and I was foolish enough to feel half oifended. I thought it derogatory to my new dignity as a manufacturer to make dolls' eyes. He took me into a room quite as wide and perhaps twice the length of this (one of the large rooms for Committees in^the House of Commons), and we had just room to walk between stacks, from the floor to the ceiling, of parts of dolls. He said, ' These are only the legs and arms the trunks are below.' But I saw enough to convince me that he wanted a great many eyes ; and as the article appeared quite in my own line of business, I said I would take un order by way of experiment ; and he showed me several specimens. I copied the order. He ordered various quan- tities and of various sizes and qualities. On returning to the Tavistock Hotel, I found that the order amounted to upwards of five hundred pounds." Mr. Osier tells this story to show the importance of trifles. The making of dolls' eyes afforded subsistence to many ingenious workmen in glass toys ; and in the same way the most minute and apparently insignificant article of general use, when rendered cheap by chemical science or machinery, produces a return of many thousand pounds, CHAP. XVIII. LUCIFER MATCHES. 273 and sets in motion labour and labourers. Without the science and the machinery, which render the article cheap, the labourers would have had no employ, for the article would not have been consumed. What a pretty article is a com- mon tobacco-pipe, of which millions are used ! It is made cheap and beautiful in a mould a machine for copying pipes. If the pipe were made without the mould, and other contrivances, it would cost at least a shilling instead of a halfpenny : the tobacco-smoker would go without his pipe, and the pipe-maker without his employment. Amongst articles of great demand that have become of importance, though apparently insignificant, in our own day, there is nothing more worthy of notice than the Lucifer-Match. About twenty years ago chemistry abo- lished the tinder-box ; and the burnt rag that made the tinder went to make paper. Slowly did the invention spread. The use of the lucifer-match is now so established that machines are invented to prepare the splints. In London one saw-mill annually cuts up four hundred large timber- trees for matches. The English matches are generally square, and thus thirty thousand splints are cut in a minute. The American matches are round; and the process of shaping being more elaborate, four thousand five hundred splints are cut in a minute. We will follow a bundle of eighteen Imndred of the square splints, each four inches long, through its conversion into three thousand six hun- dred lucifer-matches. Without being separated, each end of the bundle is first dipped into sulphur. When dry, the splints, adhering to each other by means of the sulphur, must be parted by. what is called dusting. A boy, sitting on the floor with a bundle before him, strikes the matches with a sort of mallet on the dipped ends till they become thoroughly loosened. They have now to be plunged into a preparation of phosphorus or chlorate of potash, according to the quality of the match. The phosphorus produces the pale, noiseless fire ; the chlorate of potash, the sharp cracking illumina- tion. After this application of the more inflammable sub- 274 LUCIFER MATCHES. CHAP. XVIII. stance, the matches are separated, and dried in racks. Thoroughly dried, they are gathered up again into bundles of the same quantity, and are taken to the boys who cut them ; for the reader will have observed that the bundles have been dipped at each end. There are few things more remarkable in manufactures than the extraordinary rapidity of this cutting process and that which is connected with it. The boy stands before a bench, the bundle on his right hand, a pile of half-opened empty boxes on his left. The matches are to be cut, and the empty boxes filled, by this boy. A bundle is opened; he seizes a portion, knowing by long habit the required number with sufficient exact- ness ; puts them rapidly into a sort of frame, knocks the ends evenly together, confines them with a strap which he tightens with his foot, and cuts them in two parts with a knife on a hinge, which he brings down with a strong leverage. The halves lie projecting over each end of the frame ; he grasps the left portion and thrusts it into a half- open box, which slides into an outer case ; and he repeats the process with the matches on his right hand. This series of movements is performed with a rapidity almost unex- ampled ; for in this way, two hundred thousand matches are cut, and two thousand boxes filled, in a day, by one boy. It is a law of this manufacture that the demand is greater in the summer than in the winter. The increased summer demand for the lucifer-matches shows that the great consumption is among the masses the labouring population those who make up the vast majority of the contributors to duties of customs and excise. In the houses of the wealthy there is always fire ; in the houses of the poor, fire in summer is a needless hourly expense. Then comes the lucifer-match to supply the want to light the candle to look in the dark cupboard to light the afternoon fire to boil the kettle. It is now unnecessary to run to the neighbour for a light, or, as a desperate resource, to work at the tinder-box. The lucifer-matches sometimes fail, but they cost little, and so they are freely used, even by the poorest. Their value was sufficiently shown when an CHAP. XVIII. ENVELOPE MACHINE. 275 officer in camp at Balaclava wrote home that no want was greater than that of the ready means of procuring fire and light, and that he should hold a box of lucifer-matches cheap at half-a-crown. We may notice one other article of almost universal use, which is of very recent introduction the Envelope. It is a labour-saving contrivance for the writer of letters. The use of the envelope has been mainly created by the penny postage. We find, in the census, that seven hundred per- sons, chiefly females, are employed in making envelopes. But there is a beautiful machine also for making them, at the rate of twenty-five thousand a day. The envelope- making machine was one of the most attractive objects in the Great Exhibition. T 2 276 LABOUR-SAVING CONTRIVANCES. , CHAP. XIX. CHAPTER XIX. Labour-saving contrivances The nick in types Tags of laces Casting shot Candle-dipping Tiring a wheel Globe-making Domestic aids to labour Aids to mental labour Effects of severe bodily labour on health and duration of life. WE drew attention in the last chapter to a particular pro- cess in needle-making the sorter's sheath to show that great saving of labour may be effected by what is not popularly called machinery. In modem times, wherever work is carried on upon a large scale, the division of labour is applied ; by which one man attending to one thing learns to perform that one thing more perfectly than if he had attended to many things. He thus saves a considerable portion of the whole amount of labour. Every skilful workman has individually some mode of working peculiar to himself, by which he lessens his labour. An expert blacksmith, for instance, will not strike one more blow upon the anvil than is necessary to produce the effect he desires. A compositor, or printer who arranges the types, is a swift workman when he makes no unnecessary move- ment of his arms or fingers in lifting a single type into what is called his composing-stick, where the types are arranged in lines. There is a very simple contrivance to lessen the labour of the compositor, by preventing him putting the type into his composing-stick the wrong side outwards. It is a nick, or two or three nicks, 011 the side of the type which corresponds with the lower side of the face of the letter. By this nick or nicks he is enabled to see by one glance of his eye on which side the letter is first to be grasped, and then to be arranged. If the nick were not there he would have to look at the face of every THE NICK IN TYPES. 277 letter before he could properly place it. This is a labour" saving contrivance ; and if the labour were not thus saved, two compositors would certainly be required to do the work of one ; and the natural and inevitable effect would be that, as the funds for the payment of the compositor's labours would not be increased, the wages of each compo- sitor would be diminished by one-half. The new labour that would be required would enter into competition with the old labour, and depreciate its value, because each indi- vidual labourer had lost one-half of his efficiency. Compositor at work. Contrivances to economize labour, such as that of the needle-sorter's sheath, and the nicks in the type of the> compositor, are constantly occurring in manufactures. The tags of laces, which are made of thin tin, are sometimes bent into their requisite form by the same movement of the 278 f AGS OF LACES. CHAP. XIX. arm that cuts them. A piece of steel, adapted to the side of the shears, gives them at once their proper shape. The writer can remember that when he was a boy, and was fitted with a pair of laced boots, he used to wait with patience in the shoemaker's shop, whilst he clumsily bent a piece of tin into the form of a tag, and then as clumsily hammered it round the lace. In a silk manufactory boot- laces are now prepared with tags made by machinery. One machine cuts and hollows the tags much more efficiently than the shears mentioned above ; and at another machine, worked by a boy, the tags are fitted to the laces with a rapidity which is acquired by continued practice. Machine for fixing tags to laces. * If the small shot which is used by sportsmen were each cast in a mould, the price would be enormous; but by pouring the melted lead, of which the shot is made, through a sort of cullender, placed at the top of a tower, high CHAP. XIX. CASTING SHOT. 279 280 CANDLE-DIPPING. CHAP. XIX. enough for the lead to cool in its passage through the air, before it reaches the ground, the shot is formed in a spherical or round shape by the mere act of passing through the atmosphere. Some of the shots thus formed are not per- fectly spherical they are pear-shaped. If the selection of the perfect from the imperfect shots were made by the eye, or the touch, the process would be very tedious and insuffi- cient, and the price of the article much increased. The simplest contrivance in the world divides the bad from the good. The shots are poured down an inclined plane, and, without any trouble of selection, the spherical ones run straight to the bottom, while the pear-shaped ones tumble off on one side or the other of the plane. In speaking of such contrivances we are constantly pass- ing over the narrow line which separates them from what we popularly term machinery. Let us take an example of the readiness with which a small aid to manual labour gradually becomes perfected into a machine, requiring little impulse from human action. The dippers of candles have gradually, in small establishments, made several im- provements in their art for the purpose of diminishing labour. They used to hold the rods between their fingers, dipping three at a time ; they next connected six or eight rods together by a piece of wood at each end, having holes to receive the rods; and they now suspend the rods so arranged upon a sort of balance, rising and falling with a pulley and a weight, so as to relieve the arms of the work- man almost entirely, while the work is done more quickly and with more precision. But in large candle-factories the principle is carried much further. The wicks, having been cut by machinery of the requisite length, instead of being cut one at a time, are arranged upon a rod. For the sort of candle called " twelves," or twelve to a pound, twenty- four wicks are suspended on one of these rods. Thirty rods are connected together in a frame, which thus holds seven hundred and twenty wicks. Attached to the machine are thirty-six of these frames. The whole number of wicks is therefore twenty-five thousand nine hundred and twenty. TIRING A WHEEL. 281 The machine, as it revolves, dips one frame into a vessel of melted tallow; and so on till the thirty-six frames have each been once dipped, and the process is continued till the candles are fully formed. One man and a boy complete this number of candles in a working-day of ten hours. Dipping-machine. Walking by a wheelwright's shop in some quiet village, did our readers ever see the operation of "tiring" a wheel? Tiring a wheel 282 GLOBE-MAKING. CHAP. XIX. The wood-work of the wheel is entirely formed ; but the joints of the felloes are imperfectly fitted together. They used to be drawn close by separate straps of iron applied with great labour. The wheel rests upon some raised bricks. Out from the forge rush three or four men bearing a red-hot iron hoop. It is laid upon the outer rim of the wood-work, burning its way as it is hammered down with the united force of the wheelwrights. When it is nearly fitted, floods .of water are thrown upon it, till it no longer burns. The knowledge of the simple fact that the iron shrinks as it cools, and thus knits the whole wheel into a firm body, taught the wheelwright how to accomplish the difficult task of giving the last strength to his wheel with the least possible labour. The manufacture of a globe offers an example of the pro- duction of a most beautiful piece of work by the often repeated application of a series of processes, each requiring very little labour. A globe is not a ball of wood ; but a hollow sphere of papers and plaster. The mould, if we may so express it, of a globe is turned out of a piece of wood. This sphere need not be mathematically accurate. It is for rough work, and flaws and cracks are of little con- sequence. This wooden ball has an axis, a piece of iron wire at each pole. And here we may remark, that, at every stage of the process, the revolution of a sphere upon its axis, under the hands of the workman, is the one great principle which renders every operation one of comparative ease and simplicity. The labour would be enormously multiplied if the same class of operations had to be per- formed upon a cube. The solid mould, then, of the embryo globe is placed on its axis in a wooden frame. In a very short time a boy will form a pasteboard globe upon its sur- face. He first covers it entirely with strips of strong paper, thoroughly wet, which are in a tub of water at his side. The slight inequalities produced by the over-lapping of the strips are immaterial. The saturated paper is not suffered to dry; but is immediately covered over with a layer of pasted paper, also cut in long narrow slips. A third layer CHAP. XIX. GLOBE-MAKING. 283 of similarly pasted paper brown paper and white being used alternately is applied; and then, a fourth, a fifth, and a sixth. Here the pasting process ends for globes of moderate size. For the large ones it is carried further. This wet pasteboard ball has now to be dried placed upon its axis in a rack. If we were determined to follow the progress of this individual ball through all its stages, we should have to wait a fortnight before it advanced another step. But in a large factory there are many scores of globes all rolling onward to perfection ; and thus we may witness the next operation performed upon a pasteboard sphere that began to exist some weeks earlier, and is now hard to the core. The wooden ball, with its solid paper covering, is placed on its axis. A sharp cutting instrument, fixed on a bench, is brought into contact with the surface of the sphere, which is made to revolve. In less time than we write the pasteboard ball is cut in half. There is no adhesion ' to the wooden mould, for the first coating of paper was simply wetted. Two bowls of thick card now lie before us, with a small hole in each, made by the axis of the wooden ball. But a junction is very soon eifected. Within every globe there is a piece of wood we may liken it to a round ruler of the exact length of the inner surface of the sphere from pole to pole. A thick wire runs through this wood, and originally projected some two or three inches at each end. This stick is placed upright in a vice. The semi- globe is nailed to one end of the stick, upon which it rests, when the wire is passed through its centre. It is now reversed, and the edges of the card rapidly covered with glue. The edges of the other semi-globe are instantly brought into contact, the other end of the wire passing through its centre in the same way, and a similar nailing to the stick taking place. We have now a paper globe, with its own axis, which will be its companion for the whole term of its existence. The paper globe is next placed on its axis in a frame, of which one side is a semicircular piece of metal; the 284 GLOBE-MAKING. .CHAP. XIX. horizon of a globe cut in half would show its form. A tub of white composition, a compound of whiting, glue, and oil, is on the bench. The workman dips his hand into this " gruel thick and slab," and rapidly applies it to the paper sphere with tolerable evenness; but as it revolves, the semicircle of rnetal clears off the superfluous portions. The ball of r paper is now a ball of plaster externally. Time again enters largely into the manufacture. The first coat- ing must thoroughly dry before the next is applied, and so again till the process has been repeated four or five times. Thus, when we visit a globe-workshop, we are at first sur- prised at the number of white balls, from three inches in diameter to three feet, which occupy a large space. They are all steadily advancing towards completion ; and as they advance to the dignity of perfect spheres, increased pains are taken in the application of the plaster. At last they are polished. Their surface is as fine and hard as ivory. But beautiful as they are, they may, like many other beautiful things, want a due equipoise. They must be perfectly balanced. They must move upon their poles with the utmost exactness. A few shot, let in here and there, cor- rect all irregularities. And now the paper* and plaster sphere is to be endued with intelligence. The sphere is marked with lines of direction for the purpose of covering it with engraved slips. We have now a globe with a plain map. An artist colours it by hand. We have given these examples of several modes of pro- duction, in which knowledge and skill have diminished labour, for the purpose of showing that not only machinery and scientific applications are constantly tending to the same end, but that the mere practice of the mechanical arts necessarily leads to labour-saving inventions. Every one of us who thinks at all is constantly endeavouring to diminish his individual labour by the use of some little contrivance which experience has suggested. Men who carry water in buckets, in places where water is scarce, put a circular piece of wood to float on the water, which pre- vents its spilling, and consequently lessens the labour. A CHAP. XIX. DOMESTIC AIDS TO LABOUR. 285 boy who makes paper bags in a grocer's shop so arranges them that he pastes the edges of twenty at a time, to dimi- nish the labour. The porters of Amsterdam, who draw heavy goods upon a sort of sledge, every now and then throw a greased rope under the sledge, to diminish its friction, and therefore to lessen the labour of dragging it. Other porters, in the same city, have a little barrel contain- ing water, attached to each side of the sledge, out of which the water slowly drips like the water upon a stone-cutter's saw, to diminish the friction. In the domestic arrangements of a well-regulated house- hold, whether of a poor man or of a rich man, one of the chief cares is to save labour. Every contrivance to save labour that ingenuity can suggest is eagerly adopted when a country becomes highly civilized. In former times, in our own country, when such contrivances were little known, and materials as well as time were constantly wasted in every direction, a great Baron was surrounded with a hundred menial servants ; but he had certainly less real and useful labour performed for him than a tradesman of the present day obtains from three servants. Are there fewer servants now employed than in those times of barba- rous state ? Certainly not. The middle classes amongst us can get a great deal done for them in the way of domestic service, at a small expense, because servants are assisted by manifold contrivances which do much of the work for them. The contrivances render the article of ser- vice cheaper, and therefore there are more servants. The work being done by fewer servants, in consequence of the contrivances, the servants themselves are better paid than if there was no cost saved by the contrivance. The common jack by which meat is roasted is described by Mr. Babbage as " a contrivance to enable the cook in a few minutes to exert a force (in winding up the jack) which the machine retails out during the succeeding hour in turning the loaded spit, thus enabling her to bestow her undivided attention on her other duties." "We have seen, years ago, in farm-houses, a man employed to turn a spit 286 DOMESTIC AIDS TO LABOUR. CHAP. XIX. with a handle ; dogs have been used to run in a wheel for the same purpose, and hence a particular breed so used are called "turnspits." When some ingenious servant- girl discovered that, if she put a skewer through the meat and hung it before the fire by a skein of worsted, it would turn with very little attention, she made an approach to the principle of the bottle-jack. All these contrivances diminish labour, and ensure regularity of movement; and therefore they are valuable contrivances. A bell which is pulled in one room and rings in another, and which therefore establishes a ready communication between the most distant parts of a house, is a contrivance to save labour. In a large family the total want of bells would add a fourth at least to the labour of servants. Where three servants are kept now, four servants would be required to be kept then. Would the destruction of all the bells therefore add one-fourth to the demand for servants ? Certainly not. The funds employed in paying for service would not be increased a single farthing ; and, therefore, by the destruction of bells, all the families of the kingdom would have some work left undone, to make up for the additional labour required through the want of this useful contrivance : or all the servants in the kingdom would be more hardly worked, would have to work sixteen hours a day instead of twelve. In some parts of India the natives have a very rude contrivance to mark the progress of time. A thin metal cup, with a small hole in its bottom, is put to float in a vessel of water; and as the water rises through the hole the cup sinks in a given time in 24 minutes. A servant is set to watch the sinking of the cup, and when this happens he strikes upon a bell. Half a century ago, almost every cottage in England had its hour-glass an imperfect instrument for registering the progress of time, because it only indicated its course between hour and hour ; and an instrument which required a very watchful attention, and some labour, to be of any use at all. The universal use of watches or clocks, in India, would wholly displace the CHAP. XIX. AIDS TO MENTAL LABOUR. 287 labour of the servants who note the progress of time by the filling of the cup ; and the same cause has displaced, amongst us, the equally unprofitable labour employed in turning the hour-glass, and watching its movement. Almost every house in England has now a clock or watch of some sort ; and every house in India would have the same, if the natives were more enlightened, and were not engaged in so many modes of unprofitable labour to keep them poor. His profitable labour has given the English mechanic the means of getting a watch. Machinery, used in ever) 7 possible way, has made this watch cheap. The labour formerly employed in turning the hour-glass, or in run- ning to look at the church clock, is transferred to the making of watches. The user of the watch obtains an accurate register of time, which teaches him to know the value of that most precious possession, and to econo- mize it; and the producers of the watch have abundant employment in the universal demand for this valuable machine. A watch or clock is an instrument for assisting an operation of the mind. "Without some instrument for registering time, the mind could very imperfectly attain the end which the watch attains, not requiring any mental labour. The observation of the progress of time, by the situation of the sun in the day, or of particular stars at night, is a labour requiring great attention, and various sorts of accurate knowledge. It is therefore never at- tempted, except when men have no machines for regis- tering time. In the same manner the labours of the mind have 1 been saved, in a thousand ways, by other contrivances of science. The foot-rule of the carpenter not only gives him the standard of a foot measure, which he could not exactly ascertain by any experience, or any mental process, but it is also a scale of the proportions of an inch, or several inches, to a foot, and of the parts of an inch to an inch. What a quantity of calculations, and of dividing by com- passes, does this little instrument save the carpenter, 288 AIDS TO MENTAL LABOUR. CHAP. XIX. besides ensuring a much greater degree of accuracy in all his operations ! The common rules of arithmetic, which almost every boy in England now learns, are parts of a great invention for saving mental labour. The higher branches of mathematics, of which science arithmetic is a portion, are also inventions for saving labour, and for doing what could never be done without these inventions. There are instruments, and very curious ones, for lessening the labour of all arithmetical calculations ; and tables, that is, the results of certain calculations, which are of practical use, are constructed for the same purpose. When we buy a joint of meat, we often see the butcher turn to a little book, before he tells us how much a certain number of pounds and ounces amounts to, at a certain price per pound. This book is his * Ready Reckoner,' and a very useful book it is to him ; for it enables him to despatch his customers in half the time that he would otherwise require, and thus to save himself a great deal of labour, and a great deal of inaccuracy. The inventions for saving mental labour, in calculations of arithmetic, have been carried so far, that Mr. Babbage had almost perfected a calculating machine, which not only did its work of calculation without the possibility of error, but absolutely was to arrange printing types of figures, in a frame, so that no error could be produced in copying the calculations before they are printed. We mention this curious machine, to show how far science may go in diminishing mental labour, and ensuring accuracy. The want of government funds prevented its completion. To all who read this book it is no difficulty to count a hundred; and most know the relation which a hundred bears to a thousand, and a thousand bears to a million. Most are able, also, to read off those numbers, or parts of those numbers, when they see them marked down in figures. There are many uncivilized people in the world who cannot count twenty. They have no idea whatever of numbers, beyond perhaps as far as the number of their fingers, or their fingers and their toes. How have we CHAP. XIX. AIDS TO MENTAL LABOUR. 289 obtained this great superiority over these poor savages ? Because science has been at work, for many centuries, to diminish the amount of our mental labour, by teaching us the easiest modes of calculation. And how did we learn these modes? We learnt them from our school- masters. If any follow up the false reasoning which has led some to think that whatever diminishes labour diminishes the number of labourers, they might conclude, that, as there is less mental work to be done, because science has diminished the labour of that work, there would, therefore, be fewer mental workmen. Thank God, the greater facilities that have been given to the cultivation of the mind, the greater is the number of those who exert themselves in that culti- vation. The effects of saving unprofitable labour are the same in. all cases. The use of machinery in aid of bodily labour has set that bodily labour to a thousand new employments ; and has raised the character of the employ- ments, by transferring the lowest of the drudgery to wheels and pistons. The use of science in the assistance of mental labour has conducted that labour to infinitely more numerous fields of exertion ; and has elevated all intellectual pursuits, by making their commoner processes the play of childhood, instead of the toil of manhood. We cannot doubt that any invention which gives assist- ance to the thinking powers of mankind, and, therefore, by dispensing with much mental drudgery, leads the mind forward to nobler exertions, is a benefit to all. It is not more than four hundred years ago, that the^use of Arabic numerals, or figures, began to be generally known in this country. The first date in those numerals said to exist in England, is upon a brass plate in Ware church, 1454. The same date in Roman numerals, which were in use before the Arabic ones, would be expressed by eight letters, MCCCCLIV. The introduction of figures, therefore, was an immense saving of time in the commonest operations of arithmetic. How puzzled we should be, and what a quan- tity of labour we should lose, if we were compelled to U 290 AIDS TO MENTAL LABOUR. CHAP. XIX. reckon earnings and marketings by the long mode of nota- tion, instead of the short one ! This book is easily read, because it is written in words composed of twenty-four letters. In China, where there are no letters in use, every word in the language is expressed by a different character. Few people in China write or read; and those who do, acquire very little knowledge, except the mere knowledge of writing and reading. All the time of their learned men is occupied in acquiring the means of knowledge, and not knowledge itself; and the bulk of the people get very little knowledge at all. It would be just the same thing if there were no machines or engines for diminishing manual labour. Those who had any property would occupy all their time, and the time of their immediate dependents, in raising food and making clothes for themselves, and the rest of the people would go without any food or clothes at all ; or rather, which comes to the same thing, there would be no " rest of the people ;" the lord and his vassals would have all the produce ; there would be half a million of people in the United Kingdom instead of twenty-seven millions. When a boy has got hold of what we call the rudiments of learning, he has possessed himself of the most useful tools and machines which exist in the world. He has ob- tained the means of doing that with extreme ease, which, without these tools, is done only with extreme labour. He has earned the time which, if rightly employed, will elevate his mind, and therefore improve his condition. Just so is it with all tools and machines for diminishing bodily exertion. They give us the means of doing that with comparative ease, which, without them, can only be done with extreme drudgery. They set at liberty a great quantity of mere animal power, which, having then leisure to unite with mental power, produces ingenious and skilful workmen in every trade. But they do more than this. They diminish human suffering they improve the health they increase the term of life they render all occupa- tions less painful and laborious ; and, by doing all this, they elevate man in the scale of existence. CHAP. XIX. AIDS TO MEXTAL LABOUR. 291 A late Pasha of Egypt, in one of those fits of caprice which it is the nature of tyrants to exhibit, ordered, a few years ago, that the male population of a district should be set to clear out one of the ancient canals which was then fil]ed up with mud. The people had no tools, and the Pasha gave them no tools ; but the work was required to be done. So to work the poor wretches went, to the num- ber of fifty thousand. They had to plunge up to their necks in the filthiest slime, and to bale it out with their hands, and their hands alone. They were fed, it is true, during the operation ; but their food was of a quality pro- portioned to the little profitable labour which they performed. They were fed on horse-beans and water. In the course of one year, more than thirty thousand of these unhappy people perished. If the tyrant, instead of giving labour to fifty thousand people, had possessed the means of setting up steam-engines to pump out the water, and scoop out the mud, or if he had provided the pump, which is called Archimedes' screw; and was invented by that philosopher for the very purpose of draining land in Egypt, or if the people had even had scoops and shovels, instead of being degraded like beasts, to the employment of their unassisted hands, the work might have been done at a fiftieth of the cost, even of the miserable pittance of horse-beans and water; and the money that was saved by the tools and machines, might have gone to furnish profitable labour to the thousands who perished amidst the misery and degradation of their unprofitable labour. Some may say that this is a case which does not apply to us ; because we are free men, and cannot be compelled to perish, up to our necks in mud, upon a pittance of horse- beans, doled out by a tyrant. Exactly so. But what has made us free ? Knowledge. Knowledge, which, in rais- ing the moral and intellectual character of every English- man, has raised up barriers to oppression which no power can ever break down. Knowledge, which has set inge- nious men thinking in every way how to increase the pro- u 2 292 EFFECTS OF SEVERE BODILY LABOUR. CHAP. XIX. fitable labour of the nation, and therefore to increase the comforts of every man in the nation. The people of England have gone on increasing very rapidly during the last fifty years ; and the average length of life has also gone on increasing in the same remarkable manner. Men who have attended to subjects of political economy have always been desirous to procure accurate returns of the average duration of life at particular places, and they could pretty well estimate the condition of the people from these returns. Savages, it is well known, are not long livers ; that is, although there may be a few old people, the majority of savages die very young. Why is this? Many of the savage nations that we know have much finer climates than our own : but then, on the other hand, they sustain privations which the poorest man amongst us never feels. Their supply of food is uncertain, they want clothing, they are badly sheltered from the weather, or not sheltered at all, they undergo very severe labour when they are labouring. From all these causes savages die young. Is it not reasonable, therefore, to infer that if in any particular country the average duration of life goes on increasing ; that is, if fewer people, in a given number and a given time, die now than formerly, the condition of that people is improved ; that they have more of the neces- saries and comforts of life, and labour less severely to pro- cure them? Now let us see how the people of England stand in this respect. The average mortality in a year about a century ago was reckoned to be one in thirty, and now it is one in forty-six. This result is, doubtless, pro- duced in some degree by improvement in the science of medicine, and particularly by the use of vaccination. But making every allowance for these benefits, the fact furnishes the most undeniable truth, that the people of England are much better fed, clothed, and lodged than they were a cen- tury ago, and that the labour which they perform is far less severe. The effect of continued violent bodily exertion upon the CHAP. XIX. EFFECTS OF SEVERE BODILY LABOUR. 293 duration of life might be illustrated by many instances ; we shall mention one. The late Mr. Edgeworth, in his Memoirs, repeatedly speaks of a boatman whom he knew at Lyons, as an old man. " His hair," says Mr. Edgeworth, "was grey, his face wrinkled, his back bent, and all his limbs and features had the appearance of those of a man of sixty ; yet his real age was but twenty-seven years. He told me that he was the oldest boatman on the Rhone, that his younger brothers had been worn out before they were twenty-five years old ; such were the effects of the hardships to which they were subject from the nature of their employment." That employment was, by intense bodily exertion, and with the daily chance of being upset, to pull a boat across one of the most rapid rivers in the world, " The swift and arrowy Rhone," as one of our poets calls it. How much happier would these boatmen have been during their lives, and how much longer would they have lived, could their labour have been relieved by some mechanical contrivance ! and without doubt, the same contrivance would have doubled the num- ber of boatmen, by causing the passage to be more used. As it was, they were few in number, they lived only a few years, and the only gratification of those few years was an inordinate stimulus of brandy. This is the case in all trades where immense efforts of bodily power are required. The exertion itself wears out the people, and the dram, which gives a momentary impulse to the exertion, wears them out still more. The coal-heavers of London, healthy as they look, are but a short-lived people. The heavy loads which they carry, and the quantity of liquor which they drink, both together make sad havoc with them. Violent bodily labour, in which the muscular power of the body is unequally applied, generally produces some peculiar disease. Nearly, all the pressmen who were accus- tomed to print newspapers of a large size, by hand, were 294 EFFECTS OF SEVERE BODILY LABOUR. CHAP. XIX. ruptured. The printing-machine now does the same descrip- tion of work. What is the effect upon the condition of pressmen gene- rally by the introduction of the printing-machine to do the heaviest labour of printing? That the trade of a pressman is daily becoming one more of skill than of drudgery. At the same time that the printing-machine was invented, one of the principles of that machine, that of inking the types with a roller instead of two large cushions, called balls, was introduced into hand-printing. The press- men were delighted with this improvement. " Ay," said they, " this saves our labour ; we are relieved from the hard work of distributing the ink upon the balls." What the roller did for the individual pressman, the machine, which can only be beneficially applied to rapid and to very heavy printing, does for the great body of pressmen. It removes a certain portion of the drudgery, which degraded the occupation, and rendered it painful and injurious to health. We have seen two pressmen working a daily paper against time : it was always necessary, before the introduction of the machines, to put an immense quantity of bodily energy into the labour of working a newspaper, that it might be published at the proper hour. Time, in this case, was driving the pressman as fast as the rapid stream drove the boatmen of the Rhone ; and the speed with which they worked was killing them as quickly. CHAP. XX. INFLUENCE OF KNOWLEDGE. 295 CHAPTER XX. Influences of knowledge in the direction of labour and capital Astronomy Chronometer Mariner's compass Scientific travellers New materials of manufactures India-rubber Gutta-percha Palm-oil Geology Inventions that diminish risk Science raising up new employments Electricity Galvanism Sun-light Mental labourers Enlightened public sentiment. LORD BACON, the great master of practical wisdom, has said that " the effort to extend the dominion of man over nature is the most healthy and most noble of all ambitions." " The empire of man," he adds, " over material things has for its only foundation the sciences and the arts." ' A great deal of the knowledge which constitutes this dominion has been the property of society, handed down from the earliest ages. No one can tell, for instance, how the art of leavening bread was introduced amongst mankind ; and yet this pro- cess, now so familiar to all, contributes as much, if not more, than any other art to the wholesome and agreeable preparation of our food. Leavening bread is a branch of chemistry, and, like that process, many other processes of chemistry have been the common property of civilized man from time immemorial. Within a few centuries, however, science has applied its discoveries to the perfection of the arts ; and in proportion as capital has been at hand to encourage science, has the progress of the application been certain and rapid. The old Alchemists, or hunters after the philosopher's stone, sought to create capital by their disco- veries. They could not make gold, but they discovered certain principles which have done as much for the creation of utility in a few hundred years as the rude manual labour * We have taken this sentence as a motto which may point to the general scope of this volume. 296 INFLUENCE OF KNOWLEDGE. CHAP. XX. of all mankind during the same period. Let it not be sup- posed that we wish to depreciate manual labour. We only wish to show that labour is incomparably more prolific when directed by science. Mahomet Bey, the ruler of Tunis, was dethroned by his subjects. He had the reputa- tion of possessing the philosopher's stone, or the art, of turning common metals into gold. The Dey of Algiers restored him to his throne upon condition that the secret should be communicated to him. Mahomet, with great pomp and solemnity, sent the Dey of Algiers a plough. This was so far well. He intimated that to compel produc- tion by labour is to make a nation rich. But had he been able to transmit some of the science which now controls and guides the operations of the plough the chemical knowledge which teaches the proper application of manures to soils the rotation of crops introduced by the turnip- husbandry, which renders it unnecessary that the ground should ever be idle, he would have gone farther towards communicating the real philosopher's stone. The indirect influence, too, of a general advance in know- ledge upon the particular advance of any branch of labour, is undeniable; for the inquiring spirit of an age spreads itself on all sides, and improvement is carried into the most obscure recesses, the darkest chinks and corners of a nation. It has been wisely and beautifully said, " We cannot reasonably expect that a piece of woollen cloth will be wrought to perfection in a nation which is ignorant of astronomy, or where ethics are neglected." * The positive influence of science in the direction of labour is chiefly exhibited in the operations of mechanics and chemistry ap- plied to the arts, in the shape of machines for saving mate- rials and labour, and of processes for attaining the same economy. We have described the effects of some of these manifold inventions in the improvement of the condition both of producers and consumers. But there are many particulars in which knowledge has laboured, and is still labouring,, for the advance of the physical and moral condi- * Hume's Essays. CHAP. XX. ASTRONOMY. 297 tion of us all, which may have escaped attention ; because these labours operate remotely and indirectly, though not without the highest ultimate certainty and efficiency, in aiding the great business of production. These are the influences of science upon labour, not so direct as the me- chanical skill which has contrived the steam-engine, or so indirect as the operation of ethics upon the manufacture of a piece of woollen cloth ; but which confer a certain and in some instances enormous benefit upon production, by the operation of causes which, upon a superficial view, appear to be only matters of laborious but unprofitable speculation. If we succeed in pointing out the extent and importance of those aids which production derives from the labours of men who have not been ordinarily classed amongst " working men," but who have been truly the hardest and most profit- able workers which society has ever possessed, we shall show what an intimate union subsists amongst those classes of society who appear the most separated, and that these men really labour with all others most effectually in the advance- ment of the great interests of mankind. When Hume thought that a nation would be behind in the manufacture of cloth that had not studied astronomy, he perhaps did not mean to go the length of saying, that the study of astronomy has a real influence in making cloth cheaper, in lessening the cost of production, and in there- fore increasing the number of consumers. But look at the direct influence of astronomy upon navigation. A seaman, by the guidance of principles laid down by the great minds that have directed their mathematical powers to the study of astronomy such minds as those of Newton and La Place measures the moon's apparent distance from a particular star. He turns to a page in the 'Nautical Almanac,' and, by a calculation directed principally by this table, can determine whereabout he is upon the broad ocean, although he may not have seen land for three months. Sir Jphn Herschel, who unites to the greatest scientific reputation the rare desire to make the vast possessions of the world of science accessible to all, has given, in his 298 THE CHRONOMETER. CHAP. XX. 'Discourse on the Study of Natural Philosophy,' an in- stance of the accuracy of such lunar observations, in an account of a voyage of eight thousand miles, by Captain Basil Hall, who, without a single landmark during eighty- nine days, ran his ship into the harbour of Rio as accu- rately, and with as little deviation, as a coachman drives his stage into an inn-yard. But navigation not only depends upon lunar distances, but upon an instrument which shall keep perfect time under every change of temperature produced by variety of climate. That instru- ment is a chronometer. Every one who possesses a watch, however good, must have experienced the effects of heat or cold upon its accuracy, in making it go faster or slower perhaps a minute in a week. Now if there were not an instrument that would measure time so exactly that between London and New York not a minute, or large fraction of a minute, would be lost or gained, the voyage would be one of difficulty and uncertainty. A Yorkshire joiner, John Harrison, at the beginning of the last century, found out the principle of the chronometer, which consists in the union in the balance-spring of two metals, one which con- Harrison. THE CHRONOMETER. 299 tracts under increased .temperature, and one which expands ; and on the contrary under diminished temperature. Harrison worked for fifty years at his discovery ; and he obtained a parliamentary reward of 20,000?. The English chronometers are set by what is called Greenwich time. At the Greenwich Observatory a ball 4 Greenwich Observatory. falls from a staff exactly at one o'clock ; and by the appli- cation of electricity, a similar ball falls at the same instant at Charing Cross. The beautiful instruments that are con- stantly at work, and the laborious calculations which are daily proceeding, at the Observatory, are essentially neces- sary for the maintenance of a commerce that embraces the w%ole habitable globe. 300 MARINER'S COMPASS. CHAP. xx. But what has this, it may be said, to do with the price of clothing ? Exactly this : part of the price arises from the cost of transport. If there were no " lunar distances " in the * Nautical Almanac,' or chronometers, the voyage from New York to Liverpool might require three months instead of a fortnight. But go a step farther back in the influence of science upon navigation. There was a time when ships could hardly venture to leave the shore. In the days of our Anglo-Saxon ancestors, a merchant who went three times over sea with his own craft, was entitled to rank as a thegn, or nobleman. Long after this early period of England's navigation, voyages across the Atlantic could never have been attempted. That was before the invention of the mariner's compass ; but even after that invention, when astronomy was not scientifically applied to naviga- tion, long voyages were considered in the highest degree dangerous. The crews both of Vasco de Gama, who dis- covered the passage to India, and of Columbus, principally consisted of criminals, who were pardoned on condition of undertaking a service of such peril. The discovery of magnetism, however, changed the whole principle of navi- gation, and raised seamanship to a science. If the mariner's compass had not been invented, America could never have been discovered ; and if America, and the passage to India by the Cape of Good Hope, had never been discovered, cotton would never have been brought to England ; and if cotton had never been brought to England, we should have been as badly oif for clothing as the people of the middle ages, and the million of working men and women, manu- facturers of cotton, and dealers in cotton goods, would have been without employment. Astronomy, therefore, and navigation, both sciences the results of long ages of patient inquiry, have opened a commu- nication between the uttermost ends of the earth ; and there- fore have had a slow, but certain effect upon the production of wealth, and the consequent diffusion of all the neces- saries, comforts, and conveniences of civilized life. The connexion between manufactures and science, practical CHAP. XX. MAPS. 301 commerce and abstract speculation, is so intimate that it might be traced in a thousand striking instances. Columbus, the discoverer of America, satisfied his mind that the earth was round ; and when he had got this abstract idea firmly in his head, he next became satisfied that he should find a new continent by sailing in a westerly course. The abstract notion which filled the mind of Columbus that the earth was a sphere, ultimately changed the condition of every living being in the Old World that then existed, or has since existed. In the year 1488, the first geographical maps and charts that had been seen in England were brought hither by the brother of Christopher Columbus. If these maps had not been constructed by the unceasing labours of men in their closets, Columbus would never have thought of discovering " the unknown land " which occupied his whole soul. If the scanty knowledge of geography which existed in the time of Columbus had not received immense addi- tions from the subsequent labours of other students of geography, England would not have twenty-seven thousand merchant ships ready to trade wherever men have anything to exchange, that is, wherever men are enabled to give of their abundance for our abundance, each being immensely benefited by the intercourse. A map now appears a com- mon thing, but it is impossible to overrate the extent of the accumulated observations that go to make up a map. An almanac seems a common thing, but it is impossible to overrate the prodigious accumulations of science that go to make up an almanac. With these accumulations, it is now no very difficult matter to construct a map or an almanac. But if society could be deprived of the accumulations, and we had to re-create and remodel everything for the forma- tion of our map and our almanac, it would perhaps require many centuries before these accumulations could be built up again ; and all the arts of life would go backward, for want of the guidance of the principles of which the map and the almanac are the interpreters for popular use. There never was a time when_man had so complete pos- session of the planet which he inhabits as the present. 302 SCIENTIFIC TRAVELLERS. CHAP. XX. Much of the globe has yet to be explored ; but how much is familiar to us that was comparatively unknown even, at the beginning of the present century. How thoroughly during that period have we acclimated many of the plants of dis- tant lands, which are now the common beauties of our gar- dens and greenhouses. There are thousands of timber-trees coming to rapid maturity in our parks and pleasure-grounds which thirty years ago grew only in the solitudes of Cali- fornia and Australia. One enterprising man, James Douglas, whose father was a working mason at Scone, bestowed upon this country, about twenty-five years ago, two hundred new species of plants which are now of common culture, and he gave us a tree of the pine-tribe, called after his name, which will in all probability become one of the most valuable of our timbers, from its strength, its rapid growth, and its enormous size. What impelled James Douglas, and hundreds of other travellers of a similar character, to en- counter the perils of travel in desert regions, but the ab- stract love of science, which made them naturalists in their closets before they were explorers and discoverers ? We are familiar with the name of Linnaeus, and the Linnean Linna'us in. his Lapland dress. CHAP. XX. NEW MATERIALS OF MANUFACTURES. 303 system of botany; and some may think that this great naturalist was not doing much for knowledge when he classified and arranged what we call the vegetable kingdom. When very young, Linnaeus underwent many hardships in travelling through Lapland, in search of plants. So far, some may say, he was well employed. He was equally well employed when he made such an inventory, to use a familiar term, of all the known plants of his time, as would enable succeeding naturalists to know a distinct species from an accidental variety, and to give a precision to all future botanical investigation. Other naturalists have produced other systems, which may be more simple and convenient ; but the impulse which Linnaeus gave to botanical discovery, and thence to the increase of the vegetable wealth of Europe, can never be too highly appre- ciated. In every branch of natural history the study of the science, in its manifold forms of classification, is constantly leading to the most valuable discoveries connected with our .means of existence. Some twenty years ago all the timber of the Hartz Forest in Germany was destroyed by a species of beetle, which, gnawing completely round the bark, prevented the sap from rising. This destructive animal made its appearance in England ; and science' very soon discovered the cause of the evil, and provided for its removal. If there had been no knowledge of natural history here, not a tree would have been left in our woods : and what then would have been the cost of timber. The naturalist is now carrying his investigations, with the aid of the microscope, into the lowest departments of animal life. He finds the causes of blight and mildew, and knows the species of the minutest insect that mars the hopes of the farmer and the gardener. The chemist steps in ; and. the ravager is destroyed or rendered less noxious. It is to the scientific travellers that we owe the successive introduction of new materials of manufactures. Of the enormous extent in which such new materials affect pro- duction, we may form some adequate notion from the 304 INDIA-RUBBER. CHAP. XX. mention of three India-rubber, Gutta Percha, and Palm- oil. In 1853 we imported 1,940,000 Ibs. of caoutchouc or India-rubber. The gum of a Brazilian-tree, discovered by some scientific Frenchman in 1735, had been employed for nearly a century for no higher purpose than rubbing out pencil -marks. After 1820 the mode of applying the sub- stance for the production of water-proof garments was dis- covered. But even in 1830 we only imported 50, 000 Ibs. Since then caoutchouc has become one of our great materials of manufacture, applied, not only to clothing, but to useful articles of every description. Its great property of elasticity has rendered it available in numberless instances beyond those of making cloth water-proof and air-tight. When we discovered how to make India-rubber soluble by spirit, we obtained our water-proof clothes, our air-cushions, and water-beds. When machinery drew out the lump of gum into the finest threads, and connected them with cotton, flax, silk, or worsted, in a braiding-machine, we became provided with every species of elastic web that can render dress at once tight and easy. But chemistry has carried the use of India-rubber further than the spirit which dis- solves it, or the machinery which splits it into minute threads. Chemistry has combined it with sulphur, and thus added in a remarkable degree to its strength and its elas- ticity. It has made it independent of temperature. It has doubled its utility. " Vulcanized India-rubber" is one of the most valuable of recent inventions. It is a striking characteristic of our age, and particularly as compared with the period when India-rubber was first sent to Europe, that the application of gutta percha to the arts immediately followed the discovery of the substance. In 1842, Dr. Montgomerie was observing a wood-cutter at Singapore at his ordinary labour. Looking at the man's axe he saw that the handle was not of wood, but of some material that he had not previously known. The woodman told Dr. Montgomerie that, hard as the handle was, it became quite soft in boiling water, and could be moulded CHAP. XX. GUTTA PERCHA. 305 into any form, when it would again become hard. It was a gum from a tree growing in various islands of the Eastern archipelago, called pertsha. Specimens were immediately sent to the Society of Arts ; and the inquiring surgeon to the Presidency at Singapore received the Society's gold- medal. In 1842-3, Mr. Lobb, visiting these islands to collect botanical specimens, also discovered the same tree, and the gum which issues from it. In twelve years the wonderful utility of this new material has been established in very various applications. But the gum would have remained comparatively useless but for the inventive spirit which has subdued every difficulty of a new manufacture. The substance is now applied to the hum- blest as well as the highest purposes. It is a clothes' line defying the weather ; it is a buffer for a railway carriage. It is a stopping for a hollow tooth ; it is a sheathing for the wire that conveys the electric spark across the Channel. It is a cricket-ball ; it is a life-boat in the Arctic seas. It is a noiseless curtain-ring ; it is a sanitary water-pipe. It resists the action of many chemical substances, and is thus largely employed for vessels in bleaching and dyeing factories ; it is capable of being moulded into the most beautiful forms, and thus becomes one of the most efficient materials for mul- tiplying works of ornamental art. The collection of gutta percha has given a new stimulus to the feeble industry of the inhabitants of Java and Sumatra, and Borneo, and a new direction to the commerce of Singapore. It has brought the people of the Indian archipelago into more direct contact with European civilization. "What the use of gutta percha is doing for the Malays, the use of palm-oil is doing for the Africans. A great commerce has sprung up on the African coasts, in which statesmen and philanthropists see the coming destruc- tion of the slave-trade. In 1853 we imported seventy- one million Ibs. of palm-oil and eighteen million Ibs. of cocoa-nut oil. The greater part of this oil is for making candles. It is equal to three-fourths of all the tallow we import. "What has created this enormous manufacture of x 306 PALM OIL. CHAP. XX. one of the most improved articles of domestic utility ? Knowledge. The palm-oil candles have been brought to their present perfection by chemical and mechanical appli- ances, working with the most complete division of labour, earned through by the nicest economy resulting from great administrative skill. * Price's Candle Company ' is a fac- Elaeis Guiueensis, and Cocos butyracea, yielding Palm-oil. CHAP. XX. GEOLOGY. 307 tory, or rather a number of factories, in which, in the exact proportion that the health, the comfort, and the intelligence of the workers is maintained in the highest efficiency, the profits of the capitalist are increased. The superior quality of the products of the oil-candle factories is the result of che- mistry. A French chemist discovered that fats, such as oil, were composed of three inflammable acids two of which, called stearic and margaric, are solid ; and one called oleic, fluid. Another substance called glycerine is also present. The oil is now freed from the oleic acid and the glycerine, which interfere with its power of producing light, and the two solid acids are crystalized. What are called stearine and composite candles are thus produced, at a cost which is realty less than that of the old tallow-candles, when we consider that they burn longer and with greater brilliancy, besides being freed from a disagreeable smell and from a tendency to gutter. Candles from animal fat have also been greatly improved by chemical appliances in the preparation of the tallow. Science, we thus see, connects distant regions, and renders the world one great commercial market. Science is, therefore, a chief instrument in the production of com- mercial wealth. But we have a world beneath our feet which science has only just now begun to explore. We want fuel and metallic ore to be raised from the bowels of the earth ; and, till within a very few years, we used to dig at random when we desired to dig a mine, or confided the outlay of thousands of pounds to be used in digging, to some quack whose pretensions to knowledge were even more deceptive than a reliance upon chance. The science of geology, almost within the last quarter of a century, has been able, upon certain principles, to determine where coal especially can be found, by knowing in what strata of earth coal is formed ; and thus the expense of digging through earth to search for coal, when science would at once pronounce that no coal was there, has been altogether withdrawn from the amount of capital to be expended in the raising of coal. That this saving has not been small, we x 2 308 GEOLOGY. CHAP. XX. may know from the fact, that eighty thousand pounds were expended fruitlessly in digging for coal at Bexhill, in Sussex, not many years ago, which expense geology would have instantly prevented; and have thus accumulated capital, and given a profitable stimulus to labour, by saving their waste. But geological science has not only prevented the expensive search for coal where it does not exist, but has shown that it does exist where, a few years ago, it was held impossible to find it. The practical men, as they are called, maintained that coal could not be found beneath the magnesian limestone. A scientific geologist, Dr. William Smith, held a contrary opinion ; and the result of his abstract conviction is, that the great Hetton collieries have been called into action, which supply a vast amount of coal to the London market, found beneath this dreaded barrier of magnesian limestone. Geology however scanty its facts at present are, compared with what they will be when miners have been accustomed to look at their operations from the scientific point of view geology can tell pretty accurately in which strata of the earth the various metals are likely to be found ; and knowing, to some extent, the strata of different countries, can judge of the probability of finding the precious metals as well as the more common. Sir Roderick Murchison, in 1844, expressed his belief, in a public address, that gold existed in the great Eastern Chain of Australia. In 1849, an iron- worker in Australia, reading this . opinion, searched for gold, and found it. The discovery was neglected, till an enterprising man came from California, and completed the realization of the scientific prediction. The gold-diggings of Australia are producing, by their attraction to emigrants, changes in the amount and value of labour in the United Kingdom, which may materially affect the condition of every worker in the parent-land ; and they have given an immense impulse to our home industry. The importance of gold, merely as a material of manufacture, may be estimated from the fact that in Birmingham alone a thousand ounces of fine gold are worked up every week ; CHAP. XX. INVENTIONS THAT DIMINISH KISK. 309 and that ten thousand ounces are annually used in the porcelain works of Staffordshire. Whatever diminishes the risk to life or health, in any mechanical operation, or any exertion of bodily labour, lessens the cost of production, by diminishing the premium which is charged by the producers to cover the risk. The safety-lamp of Sir Humphry Davy, by diminishing the waste of human life employed in raising coals, diminished the price of coals. The contrivance is a very simple one, though it was no doubt the result of anxious and patient thought. It is a common oil-lamp, in which the flame is surrounded with a fine wire-gauze. The flame cannot pass through the gauze ; and thus if the destructive gas of a coal- mine enters the gauze and ignites, the flame cannot pass again out of the gauze, and ignite the surrounding gas. Sometimes the inner flame burns with a terrible blue light. It is the symptom of danger. If the lamp were an open flame the fire-damp would shake the pit with one dreadful explosion. The safety -lamp yields a feeble light; and thus, unfortunately, the miner sometimes exposes the flame, and perishes. The magnetic mask, which prevents iron-filings escaping down the throats of grinders and polishers, and thus prevents the consumption of the lungs, to which these trades are peculiarly obnoxious, would diminish the price of steel goods, if the workmen did not prefer receiving the premium in the shape of higher wages, to the health and long life which they would get, without the premium, by the use of the mask. This is not wisdom on the part of the workmen. But whether they are wise or not, the natural and inevitable influence of the discovery, sooner or later, to lessen the cost of production in that trade, by lessening the risk of the labourers, must be established. The lightning conductor of Franklin, which is used very generally on the Continent, and almost universally in shipping, diminishes the risk of property, in the same way that the safety-lamp diminishes the risk of life ; and, by this diminution, the rate of insurance is lessened, and the cost of production therefore lessened. 310 SCIENCE RAISING NEW EMPLOYMENTS. CHAP. XX. Franklin medal. We have given many examples of labour-saving processes produced by science. We may regard it as a compensating principle that science is constantly raising up new employ- ments. In 1798, Galvani, an Italian physician, accidentally discovered that the muscles of a dead frog were convulsed by the body coming in contact with two metals. Soon after, Volta, another Italian physician, produced electric currents by a combination of metals in what was called the voltaic-pile. Who could have imagined that the patient working-out of the scientific principle that was evolved in the movement of Galvani's dead frog, should have raised up new branches of human industry, of the most extensive and varied utility ? Galvanic batteries used to be considered amongst the toys of science. They now send an instan- taneous message from London to Paris ; and fill our houses with the most beautiful articles of metallic manufacture, electro-plate. About sixteen years ago it was discovered that a piece of metal might receive a fine permanent coating of another metal by the agency of galvanism. The discovery created a strong interest in men of science, and many small experiments were tried to fix a coating of copper to some other metal. Manufacturing enterprize CHAP. XX. GALVANISM. 311 saw the value of the discovery; which has been simply described in a popular work : " Diluted sulphuric acid is poured into a porous vessel ; this is placed in a larger vessel containing a solution of siilphate of copper ; a piece of zinc is placed in the former, and a piece of silver or of copper in the latter, and both piece! are connected by a wire. Then does the wondrous agent, electricity, begin its work ; a current sets in from the zinc to the acid, thence through the porous vessel to the sulphate, thence to the silver or copper, and thence to the conducting wire back again to the zinc ; and so on in an endless circuit. But electricity never makes such a circuit without disturbing the chemical relations of the bodies through which it passes; the zinc, the silver or copper, the sulphuric acid, the oxygen, and the hydrogen all are so far affected that the zinc becomes eaten away, while a beautiful deposit of metallic copper, derived from the decomposition of the sulphate, appears on the surface of the silver or copper. Copper is not the only metal which can be thus precipitated ; gold, silver, platinum, and other metals may be similarly treated." * When experiment had proved that every imaginable form of cheap metal could be coated with silver or gold, by the agency of electro-chemistry, an immediate demand was created for designers, modellers, and moulders. Vases of the most beautiful forms were to be produced in metal which should have the properties of solid silver without its costliness. The common metal vase is dipped into a tank containing a solution of silver. It is placed in connection with the wires of the galvanic battery. Atom after atom of the silver in solution clings to the vase, which soon comes out perfectly silvered. The burnisher completes its beauty. It is the same with a solution of gold. The pride of riches may boast the value of the solid'plate, which tempts thieves to " break in and steal." The nobler gratification of taste may secure the beauty without the expense or risk of loss. * * Curiosities of Industry.' By George Dodd. 312 SUNLIGHT. CHAP. XX. But the great principle thus brought into practical use is carried farther in the realms of art. It becomes a copying process. It can multiply copies of the most minute en- graving without in the slightest degree deteriorating the beauty of the engraver's work. The copy is as good as the original. ^ The same principle of depositing one metal upon another in minute atoms has produced galvanized tinned-iron iron which will not rust upon exposure to weather, and thus applicable to many purposes of building and iron which can be applied to many objects of utility with greater ad- vantage than tin-plate. There are few houses now without their daguerreotype portraits of some member of the family. This is a portrait copied from the human face by a sunbeam. The name daguerreotype is derived from the Frenchman Daguerre, who announced his discovery at the time when our country- man, Mr. Fox Talbot, was engaged in working out the same wonderful problem. We notice this branch of recent invention merely to point out how science and art call forth mechanical labour. When every house has its little por- trait, there will naturally be a great demand for frames. The manufacture of daguerreotype-frames, both here, and in the United States, has furnished a new field of employ- ment. Every scientific discovery, such as photography, is a step in advance of preceding discovery. If Newton had not discovered the fundamental properties of light, in the seventeenth century, we should, in all likelihood, have had no photography in the nineteenth. Abstract science is the parent of practical art. It has been said by an American writer, who has pub- lished several treatises well-calculated to give the workman an elevated idea of his rights and duties, that the "man who will go into a cotton-mill, w/ho will observe the parts of the machinery, and the various processes of the fabric, till he reaches the hydraulic press, with which it is made into a bale, and the canal or railroad by which it is sent to CHAP. XX. MENTAL LABOURERS. 313 Newton. market, may find every branch of trade, and every depart- ment N of science, literally crossed, intertwined, interwoven with every other, like the woof and the warp of the article manufactured."* This crossing and intertwining of the abstract and practical sciences, the mechanic skill and the manual labour, which' are so striking in the manufacture of a piece of calico, prevail throughout every department of industry in a highly-civilized community. Every one who labours at all profitably labours for the production of utility, and sets in motion the labour of others. Look at * ' Everett's Working Man's Party/ Printed in the American Library of Useful Knowledge, 1831. 314 MENTAL LABOURERS. CHAP. XX. the labour of the medical profession. In the fourteenth century, John de Gaddesden treated a son of Edward II. for the small-pox by wrapping him up in scarlet cloth, and hanging scarlet curtains round his bed ; and, as a remedy for epilepsy, the same physician carried his patients to church to hear mass. The medical art was so little under- stood in those days, that the professors of medicine had made no impression upon the understanding of the people ; and they consequently trusted not to medicine, but to vain charms, which superstitions the ignorance of the prac- titioners themselves kept alive. The surgical practitioners of Europe, at the beginning of the sixteenth century, put their unhappy patients to the most dreadful torture by their mode of treating wounds and broken limbs. When they amputated a leg or an arm they applied the actual cautery, or red-hot iron, to stop the effusion of blood. Ambrose Pare, one of the most eminent of the French surgeons of that period, who accompanied the army to the siege of Turin, in 1536, thus describes the mode in which he found his surgical brethren dealing with gun-shot wounds : Ambrose Pard. " I was then very raw and inexperienced, having never seen the treatment of gun-shot wounds. It is true that I had read in the Treatise of Jean de Vigo on wounds in CHAP. XX. MENTAL LABOURERS. 315 general, that those inflicted by fire-arms partake of a poison- ous nature 011 ace unt of the powder, and that they should be treated with hot oil of elder, mixed with a little theria- cum. Seeing, therefore, that such an application must needs put the patient to extreme pain, to assure myself before I should make use of this boiling oil, I desired to see how it was employed by the other surgeons. I found their method was to apply it at the first dressing, as hot as possible, within the wound, with tents and setons ; and this I made bold to do likewise. At length my oil failed me, and I was fain to substitute a digestive, made of the yolk of eggs, rose-oil, and turpentine. At night I could not rest in my bed in peace, fearing that I should find the wounded, in whose cases I had been compelled to abstain from using this cautery, dead of poison : this apprehension made me rise very early in the morning to visit them ; but beyond all my hopes, I found those to whom I had applied the digestive, suffering little pain, and their wounds free from inflammation ; and they had been refreshed by sleep in the night. On the contrary, I found those to whom the afore- said oil had been applied, feverish, in great pain, and with swelling and inflammation round their wounds. I resolved, therefore, that I would never burn unfortunate sufferers from gunshot in that cruel manner again." Francis I., king of France, having a persuasion that, because the Jews were the most skilful physicians of that day, the virtue was in the Jew, and not in the science which he professed, sent to Charles V. of Spain for a Jewish physician ; but finding that the man who arrived had been converted to Christi- anity, he refused to employ him, thinking the virtue of healing had therefore departed from him. A statute of Henry VIII. says, " For as much as the science and cunning of physic and surgery is daily within this realm exercised by a great multitude of ignorant persons, of whom the greater part have no insight in the same, nor in any other kind of learning : some, also, con no letters on the book, so far forth, that common artificers, as smiths, and weavers, and women, boldly and accustomably, take upon them 316 MENTAL LABOURERS. CHAP. XX. great cures, in which they partly use sorcery and witch- craft, partly apply such medicines to the disease as be very noxious, and nothing meet, to the high displeasure of God, great infamy to the faculty, and the grievous damage and destruction of diverse of the king's people." When such ignorance prevailed, diseases of the slightest kind must have been very often fatal ; and the power of all men to labour profitably must have been greatly diminished by the ravages of sickness. These ravages are now checked by medical science and medical labour. But even within our own times how greatly has general ignorance retarded the exertions of medical science to dimi- nish suffering and to reduce the amount of mortality ! The prejudices against vaccination have rendered it extremely difficult to eradicate small-pox, however certain the result of the great discovery of Jenner. According to the present law, all children, born in England and Wales after August 1, 1853, must be vaccinated at the public expense. Such a law would have been very difficult of execution twenty years ago. The people had then seen the scarred faces from small-pox disappearing amongst them. They had learnt that, at the beginning of this century, vaccination, or the puncture of the skin with matter originally obtained from the cow, was rooting out the small-pox, which used to destroy, not more than a hundred years ago, thirty-six thousand persons annually, in this kingdom. But yet they had prejudices. No medical man would practise inocula- tion a great blessing in its day because the disease was thus kept amongst us. But still many ignorant persons did not avail themselves of the law passed fourteen years ago, under which their children might be vaccinated at the public cost. The undoubted testimony of the whole medical profession proves that vaccination in almost all cases prevents small-pox, and in all cases mitigates its evil. But that testimony further proves that if vaccination were universal, small-pox would wholly disappear ; and that is the reason why vaccination is now compulsory. But we may regard the influences of knowledge upon the CHAP. XX. MENTAL LABOURERS. 317, direction and aid of profitable labour, even from a higher point of view. The sciences and arts cannot be carried forward except in a country where the laws of God are respected, where justice is upheld, where intellect generally is cultivated, and taste is diffused. The religious and moral teacher, therefore, who lifts the mind to a contemplation of the duties of man, as they are founded upon a belief in the Providence of an all-wise and all-powerful Creator, is a profitable labourer. The instructor of the young, who dedicates his time to advancing the formation of right principles, and the acquirement of sound knowledge, by his pupils, is a profitable labourer. The writer who applies his understanding to the discovery and dissemination of moral and political truth, is a profitable labourer. The interpreter and administrator of the laws, who upholds the reign of order and security, defending the innocent, punishing the guilty, and vindicating the rights of all from outrage and oppression, is a profitable labourer. These labourers, it may be said, are still direct producers of utility, but that those who address themselves to the imagination the poets, the novelists, the painters, and the musicians in every polished society, are unprofitable labourers. One word is sufficient for an answer. These men advance the general intellect of a country, and they therefore indirectly advance the production of articles of necessity. We have already shown how the study of the higher mathematics, upon which astronomy is founded, has an influence upon the production of a piece of woollen cloth ; and we beg our readers to bear this connection in mind when they hear it said, as they sometimes may, that an abstract student, or an elegant writer, is not a producer, is, in fact, an idler. The most illustrious writers of every country, the great poets, " High actions and high passions best describing," have, next to the inspirations of religion, lifted mankind, more than any other class of intellectual workmen, to their noblest pursuits of knowledge and virtue. Even those who 318 MENTAL LABOURERS. CHAP. XX. especially devote themselves to give pleasure and amuse- ment, call into action some of the highest and purest sources of enjoyment. They lead the mind to seek its recreations in more ennobling pursuits than those of sen- suality; their arts connect themselves by a thousand associations with all that is beautiful in the natural world ; they are as useful for the promotion of pure and innocent delight as the flowers that gladden us by their beauty and fragrance by the side of the corn that nourishes us. An entire community of poets and artists would be as unprofit- able as if an entire country were dedicated to the cultivation of violets and roses ; but the poets and the artists may, as the roses and the violets, furnish the graces and ornaments of life, without injury, and indeed with positive benefit, to the classes who more especially dedicate themselves to what is somewhat exclusively called the production of utility. The right direction of the talents which are dedi- cated to art and literature is all that is required from those who address themselves to these pursuits. He, therefore, who beguiles a vacant hour of its tediousness, by some effort of intellect which captivates the imagination without poisoning the morals, and he who by the exercise of his art produces forms of beauty which awaken in the mind that principle of taste which, more than any other faculty, requires cultivation, have each bestowed benefits upon the world which may be accurately enough measured even by the severe limitations of political economy ; they are profitable labourers and benefactors of their species. The positive influence of the labours of the poet and the artist upon the advance of other labour might be easily shown. In their productions, especially, supply goes before demand, and creates demand. It has been calculated by an American writer, that the number of workmen who have been set in action paper-makers, printers, binders by the writings of Sir Walter Scott alone, in all countries, would, if gathered together, form a community that would fill a large town. The Potteries of Etruria, in Staffordshire, could not have existed unless Mr. Wedgwood had intro- CHAP. XX. MENTAL LABOURERS. 319 Sir Walter Scott. From Sir F. Chantrey's Bust. duced into our manufacture of china the forms of Grecian art, bequeathed to us by the taste of two thousand years ago, and thus created a demand which has furnished profit- able labour to thousands. There are four thousand musical- instrument makers in Great Britain. What has given their industry its chief impulse? The divine art of Handel, Mozart, Beethoven, Weber, Rossini, Mendelsohn. If these great composers, and many others, had not raised music 320 MENTAL LABOURERS. CHAP. XX. into something higher and more capable of producing enjoyment than the rude melodies of uncivilized tribes, there would have been no trade in pianofortes. We have entered into these details, principally to show that there are other and higher producers in society than the mere manual labourers. It was an ignorant fashion amongst the mental labourers of other days to despise the class of the physical labourers. They have learnt to know their value ; and there should be a reciprocal knowledge. Both classes are working-classes. No one can say that the mental labourers are not workers. They are, we may truly affirm, taken as a class, the hardest workers in the commu- nity. No one ever reached eminence in these pursuits without unwearied industry : the most eminent have been universally despisers of ease and sloth, and have felt their highest pleasures in the absorbing devotion of their entire minds to the duties of their high calling. They have wooed Knowledge as a mistress that could not be won without years of unwearied assiduity. The most eminent, too, have been practical men, despising no inquiry, however trifling it might appear to common eyes, and shrinking from no occu- pation, however tedious, as long as it was connected with their higher duties. There is no higher duty than that of endeavouring so to lead public opinion, as that the general mind of the com- munity shall be directed to noble and unselfish ends. The poet, the historian, the essayist, the novelist, have the responsibility of keeping alive the love of freedom, the hatred of oppression, the cultivation of Christian charity. There never was a truly great nation that had a low litera- ture. It is the glory of our nation that its literature is amongst its best possessions; and that the general scope and tendency of that literature are calculated to raise and cherish an enlightened public sentiment. Whatever be the amount of national wealth however various the com- forts and luxuries which private riches may command it is quite certain that without that courage and intelligence which make a people free and keep them so, the public CHAI>. XX. EASTERN STORY. 321" and private accumulations are comparatively worthless. There is a beautiful Eastern story which may better illus- trate this position than any lengthened argument.* "It is related that a man of the pilgrims slept a long sleep, and then awoke, and saw no trace of the other pilgrims. So he arose and walked on ; but he wandered from the way, and he proceeded until he saw a tent, and an old woman at its door, and he found by her a dog asleep. He approached the tent, saluted the old woman, and begged of her some food ; whereupon she said to him, Go to yon valley, and catch as many serpents as will suffice thee, that I may broil some of them for thee. The man replied, I dare not catch serpents, and I never ate them. The old woman therefore said, I will go with thee, and catch some of them, and fear thou not. Then she went with him, and the dog followed her, and she caught as many of the serpents as would suffice, and proceeded to broil some of them. The pilgrim could not refrain from eating : for he feared hunger and emaciation : so he ate of those serpents. And after this, being thirsty, he demanded of the old woman some water to drink ; and she said to him, Go to the spring, and drink of it. Accordingly he went to the spring ; but he found its water bitter ; yet he could not refrain from drinking of it, notwithstanding its exceeding bitterness, on account of the violence of his thirst. He therefore drank, and then returned to the old woman, and said to her, I wonder at thee, O thou old woman, and at thy residing in this place, and thy feeding thyself with this food, and thy drinking of this water. How then, said the old woman, is your country ? He answered her, Verily, in our country are spacious and ample houses, and ripe and delicious fruits, and abundant sweet waters, and excellent viands, and fat meats, and numerous sheep, and everything good, and blessings of which the like exist not save in the Para- dise that God (whose name be exalted !) hath described to his just servants. All this, replied the old woman, I have * Note in Mr. Lane's admirable translation of the ' Thousand and One Nights,' original edition, vol. ii. p. 635. Y 322 EASTERN STORY. CHAP. XX. heard ; but tell me, have you any Sultan who ruleth over you, and oppresseth in his rule while ye are under his authority; and who, if any one of you committeth an offence, taketh his wealth, and destroyeth him, and who, if he desire, turneth you out from your houses, and eradi- cateth you utterly? The man answered her, That doth sometimes happen. And the old woman rejoined, If so, by Allah, that dainty food and elegant life, and those delight- ful comforts, with oppression and tyranny, are penetrating poison ; and our food, with safety, is a salutary antidote." Statue of Bacon. CHAP. XXI. INVENTION OF PRINTING. CHAPTER XXL Invention of printing Effects of that art A daily newspaper Provincial newspapers News-writing of former periods Changes in the character of newspapers Steam conveyance Electric telegraph Organization of a London newspaper-office The printing-machine The paper-machine Bookbinding Paper-duty. THE art of printing offers one of the readiest and most forcible illustrations of the advantages that have been bestowed upon the world by scientific discovery and by mechanical power. Although there is, happily, little occa-" sion now to combat any wide-spread hostility to machinery, the argument for its use derived from printing may be very briefly stated. It is nearly four hundred years since the art of printing books was invented. Before that time all books were written by the hand. There were many persons employed to copy out books, but they were very dear, although the copiers had small wages. A Bible was sold for thirty pounds in the money of that day, which was equal to a great deal more of our money. Of course, very few people had Bibles or any other books. A mode was invented of imitating the written books by cutting the letters on wood, and taking off copies from the wooden blocks by rubbing the sheet on the back. Soon after, the idea was carried farther by casting metal types or letters, which could be arranged in words, and sentences, and pages, and volumes ; and then a machine, called a printing-press, upon the prin- ciple of a screw, was made to stamp impressions of these types so arranged. There was an end, then, at once to the trade of the pen-and-ink copiers ; because the copiers in Y 2 324 EFFECTS OF THE INVENTION OF PRINTING. CHAP. XXI. types, who could press off several hundred books while the writers were producing one, drove them out of the market. A single printer could do the work of at least two hundred writers. At first sight this seems a hardship, for a hundred and ninety-nine people might have been, and probably were, thrown out of their accustomed employment. But what was the consequence in a year or two ? Where one written book was sold, a thousand printed books were required. The old books were multiplied in all countries, and new books were composed by men of talent and learn- ing, because they could then find numerous readers. The printing press did the work more neatly and more correctly than the writer, and it did it infinitely cheaper. What then ? The writers of books had to turn their hands to some other trade, it is true; but type-founders, paper-makers, printers, and bookbinders, were set to work, by the new art . or machine, to at least a hundred times greater number of persons than the old way of making books employed. But there is a far more important mode of viewing this matter than any consideration resulting out of the increased employment that the art of printing unquestionably has created. If printing, which is a cheap and a rapid pro- cess, could by possibility be superseded by writing, which is an expensive and a slow operation, no book, no news- paper, could be produced for the use of the people. Know- ledge, upon which every hope of bettering their condition must ultimately rest, would again become the property of a very few ; and mankind would lose the greater part of that power which constitutes the essential difference be- tween civilization and barbarism. The art of printing has gone on more and more adapting itself to the increase of our population, during the three centuries and a half in which it has been exercised in this country. Herein consists, perhaps, one of the mightiest differences between our con- dition and that of every generation which has preceded us. Through that art, no idea can now perish. Through that art, knowledge is fast becoming the common possession of all. Through that art, what the people have gained in the CHAP. XXI. A DAILY NEWSPAPER. 325 past is secured for the future. It has established the empire of public opinion. There is possibly no more striking example of the mani- fold combinations of mental labour, of scientific power, of mechanical invention, and of the use of rapid means of communication, than the forces now called into action for the issue of a London daily newspaper. Nor is there any production of literary industry which more pointedly illus- trates the distinctive qualities of printing as compared with writing the rapidity, the cheapness, and the general diffu- sion. Let us endeavour to supply a rapid sketch of the wonderful organization that is required to produce this great necessary of modern society. The essential characteristic of a newspaper is news. It may be philosophical, or critical, or imaginative it may pour forth treasures of learning or eloquence, to live but a few hours and then be too readily forgotten but no amount of ability will give it currency if it be deficient in news. It is the imperative demand for news, embracing every movement of human life in every class and every country, that sets in action the wondrous organization that produces a daily newspaper. Its ministers of communica- tion are almost ubiquitous. They are in the Bow-street police-office, watching the effrontery of the detected felon ; they are on the heights of Inkermann, to stir our hearts " as with a trumpet," and fill our eyes with tears as they tell us " How sleep the brave, who sink to vest By all their country's wishes blest." They are at the city feast, where all is blandishment and turtle ; they are at the coroner's inquest upon a street- starved pauper. They furnish news to all the world ; and they receive news from all the world. But there are similar organizations going forward through the country. The increase in number of the provincial papers, and their efforts to procure intelligence, are equally remarkable. The London editors have the not very easy task of '326 EDITORIAL DUTIES. CHAP. XXI. glancing over the five hundred local papers of the United Kingdom. These are, in ordinary cases, the vehicles from which they obtain their home intelligence. If any local matter of general interest is to be specially attended to, their own correspondent, or their own reporter, furnishes the details. Some unexpected event puts, occasionally, the electric telegraph in motion, to tell the world of Lon- don, on Saturday morning, what occurred at Liverpool on Friday night; and the Liverpool merchant reads on the Exchange at noon of that Saturday, in the newspaper printed at a distance of two hundred miles, some notice of an arrival in his own port during the hours when he was sleeping. Even the state of the weather at different parts of the kingdom is thus daily transmitted. But the Lon- don editors, and some of the provincial, have to look out for news at a greater distance than is comprised in our " nook-shotten isle of Albion." They have to search the papers of every land and every people whether written in English, French, German, Italian, Greek, or Turkish. Of course translators are always at hand. For the London daily papers the electric telegraph is " throwing its sha- dows " before the authentic heralds of " coming events." For them is the steamer bringing the special correspon- dence from the gold-diggings in Australia, and from the camp in the Crimea. For them do the people's represen- tatives make long speeches to empty benches, secure that there is a medium of communication for unnumbered eyes, although the ears be shut of those who listen not to the voice of the charmers. For them do great ministers go into obscure places, and, addressing an enthusiastic dinner- table, or a solemn corporation, speak to the world. For them does every discoverer of a private grievance claim public redress. For them is produced, in letters " to the editor," that great chaotic accumulation of fact and theory, of wisdom and folly, of calculation and impulse, whose atoms finally resolve themselves into a solid mass called public opinion. The mental labours attendant upon the provincial news- CHAP. XXI. PROVINCIAL NEWSPAPERS. 327 papers are more narrowed. But they are nevertheless very important ; and the extension of their functions by the enormous extension of the facilities for obtaining intelligence is equally striking. The old county papers, circulating steadily through the rural districts, and duly chronicling session and assize, markets and misdemeanours, have been stirred into activity by newspapers issuing from great commercial and manufacturing centres, which have arisen with the immense development of our industry. Liverpool had two papers in 1803, it has now ten; Man- chester, Birmingham, Derby, Leicester, Nottingham, which had each one at that period, have now each four. Many towns that had one paper at the beginning of the century have now two. There are about eighty provincial English papers now published in towns which had no journal at that period. Some belong to manufacturing districts which then contained a small population ; such as Bolton, Brad- ford, Hanley, Kidderminster, Macclesfield, Stockport, Sun- derland, Wakefield, Wolverhampton. Others, to places of fashion and luxury which 1 have grown up out of changes of society, such as Brighton and Cheltenham. Others, to new local centres, which, through the great modern facilities of communication, can circulate their weekly sheets at little expense, instead of sending their own messengers throughout the small towns and villages. The local changes in these vehicles of intelligence are strikingly connected with the other great social changes which have been noticed in this volume. It is satisfactory to know that the provincial press is no imperfect representative of an age of progress. The history of news- writing and news-publishing is a mirror of many of the changes in social necessities and conveniences. In 1625, Ben Jonson's play of 'The Staple of News ' exhibited a countrywoman going to an office of news, and saying to the manager, who sits in state with his registers and examiners, " 1 would have, sir, A groatsworth of any news, I care not what, To carry down this Saturday to our vicar." 328 CHANGES IN NEWSPAPERS. CHAP. XXI. This was written news. In London, before a newspaper existed, there were private gazetteers, who made a living by picking up scraps of intelligence in taverns and barbers' shops. This class of persons continued even when there were newspapers ; for the news-letter, as it was called, is thus described in the first number of the ' Evening Post,' issued in 1709 : " There must be 3/. or 41 per ann. paid by those gentlemen that are out of town for written news, which is so far 'generally from having an^ probability or matter of fact in it, that it is frequently stuffed up with a ' We hear,' or ' An eminent Jew merchant has received a letter.'" The same 'Evening Post' adds, "We read more of our own affairs in the Dutch papers than in any of our own." Sir Roger L'Estrange, who published ' The Intelligencer,' with privilege, in 1663, says that he shall publish once a week, "to be published every Thursday, and finished upon the Tuesday night, leaving Wednesday entire for the printing it off." The first advertisement in an English paper appeared in 1649. At the beginning of the present century the public used to look with wonder upon their " folio of four pages," and contrast it with the scanty chronicles of the days of Charles II. and Anne. We of the present time, in the same way, contrast our newspapers with the meagre records of the beginning of the century. The essential difference has been produced by steam navigation, by railways, by the extension of the post, dependent upon both applications of steam, and by the electric telegraph. The same scientific forces and administrative organization that bring the written news from every region of the earth, re-convey the printed news to every region. It is sufficient to glance at the lists of foreign mails, and the low rates of postage from the United Kingdom, to see the enormous extent of that intercourse which enables our government, by the packet service, to transmit a letter for sixpence to the British West Indies, to Hong-kong, to our North American colonies, to Belgium ; to nearly all the German States, by an uniform British and foreign rate, for CHAP. XXI. EXTERNAL COMMUNICATION. 329 eightpence ; to France, Algeria, Spain, and Portugal, for tenpence ; to the Italian States for a trifle more ; to Turkey in Europe for one shilling and five pence; and to India for one shilling and tenpence. With this certain and rapid intercourse, it is not likely that the least x enterprising newspaper editor would have to repeat the doubt of L'P-]strange, who says, " Once a week may do the business ; yet if I shall find, when my hand is in, and after the planting and securing my correspondents, that the matter will fairly furnish more, I shall keep myself free to double at pleasure." It is the external communication so wonderful in our own times, we repeat, which has chiefly changed the character of our newspapers. When we read in a London daily paper the one line, " The Overland Mail by electric telegraph," we have two facts of the highest significance. " The Overland Mail" would appear, of itself, a marvel great enough for one age. The Overland Mail has brought London within a month of Bombay. It has joined India most effectually to England for all commercial and state purposes. It gives us the news of India, by the aid of the electric telegraph, in as little time as we ordinarily received news from Vienna at the beginning of the eighteenth century. The steamer and the electric telegraph made the blood of England beat quicker in every heart, when our newspapers recorded, on the 13th of November, the most sanguinary and heroic battle of modern times, fought in the Crimea only a week previous. When Marlborough was setting out for his campaign of 1709, and so many political, if not patriotic, hopes, were fixed upon -the probable issue, ' The Tatler,' then a newspaper, had the following para- graph: "We learn from Brussels, by letters dated the 20th, that on the 14th, in the evening, the Duke of Marl- borough and Prince Eugene arrived at Courtray, with a design to proceed the day following to Lisle, in the neigh- bourhood of which city the confederate army was to arrive the same day." The account of the movement of the great allied generals was transmitted from Brussels six days 330 NEWSPAPER CORRESPONDENTS. CHAP. XXI. after the movement had taken place, Courtray being only distant forty-six miles ; and the important news from Brussels, of the 20th May, was published in London on the 28th, London being distant some two hundred and fifty miles. The distance from Balaclava to London is about three thousand miles. The function of a great newspaper, in connexion with the positions of armies and the events of siege and battle, is as different from the function of the journalist of fifty years ago, as the rapid firing of the soldier of the Alma with his Minie rifle contrasts with the slow evolutions of the old hand-gun- ner. In the war with Russia the presence of the newspaper reporter gives a new feature, strikingly characteristic of our times and our country. It is necessary to have the earliest and the most detailed accounts of this eventful contest ; for the people, one and all, understand that they are deeply in- terested in its issue, and that, if their country fails to assert the superiority of freedom and intelligence over slavery CHAP. XXI. NEWSPAPER CORRESPONDENTS. 331 and barbarism, the material prosperity of that country can be of no long duration. Wisely, therefore, did the London daily papers each send their active, fearless, and eloquent correspondents, to endure some of the hardships of the march and the bivouac to observe the battle-field, not secure from its dangers to write of victories, surrounded by the dead and dying to be the historians of a day, and thus to furnish the best materials for all future historians. The life of a London reporter, although a life of constant labour, is generally accompanied by much ease and com- fort. The senate does not acknowledge his presence ; but it provides the "stranger" with the best seat. He takes his place at the public dinner as an honoured guest one whose absence would be more regretted than that of the city's mayor or the borough's patron. But in a campaign, where his duties are new, he must fight his way through every difficulty. His function is recognised in an age when it would be useless to suppress intelligence, even if it were possible. He finds a ready mess in every tent where a scanty meal is set out ; he stands by the side of the commander, and gazes with him upon " the currents of the heady fight." How he wears after two months of un- usual service we have some slight notion, when we read, in a letter to * The Times ' of November 30, that the writer had seen an officer who had lately parted from the special cor- respondent. " The chances of war had deprived him of nearly all his garments ; and when last seen he was walk- ing about in a rifleman's jacket, much too small for his portly person ; and his nether garments had been converted into breeches by a constant scrambling amongst rocks and briers." Let us not forget our obligations to the men who, in peril and suffering, have made heroic action more familiar to us ; and have contributed no mean part in giving a moral impulse to our country, as essential to future safety and honour as the material wealth which has made us a people amongst the foremost of the earth. What the carrier-pigeon was in the conveyance of intel- ligence in the middle ages, and even within a few years, 332 THE CARRIER-PIGEON CHAP. XXI. the electric telegraph is in the present day. The carrier- pigeon went out from a besieged castle, to ask for succour, in eastern countries, five centuries ago. The electric tele- graph, land and submarine, brings the tidings of slaughter and sickness from Sebastopol, and England and France send instant reinforcements. The carrier-pigeon, in the last century, was despatched by the merchants of the English factory, from Seanderoon to Aleppo, to announce the arrival of the company's ships. The electric telegraph communicates to London the arrival of an Australian packet at Southampton. Within the last ten years one of the annual expenses of a London newspaper was 1800?. for pigeon expresses. The pigeons have lost their employment. The price of stocks and shares in 'Change-alley is known every quarter of an hour upon the exchanges of our great commercial marts ; and the closing price of the French funds is in type before midnight at our daily newspaper-offices. The carrier-pigeon travelled sixty miles an hour. The time which it takes to transmit a message by the electric telegraph is inappre- ciable. The newspapers of the United States employ the Carrier-pigeon. electric telegraph far more extensively than our English papers ; for the distances between one State and one city CHAP. XXI. AND THE ELECTRIC TELEGRAPH. 3S3 and another State and another city are so great, that steam travelling would not accomplish the object of com- munication with sufficient rapidity. The density of our population renders the employment of the telegraph less necessary for the ordinary transmission of intelligence. But private curiosity, in a time of great public interest, steps in ; and one of the most remarkable exhibitions of our provincial towns at the time at which we are writing when an agonizing anxiety for the fortunes of our heroic defenders in the Black Sea is the chief thought of millions is the crowd about the telegraph-office to know some- thing more than the morning paper, brought by railway speed, can furnish to this universal excitement. In America the distance between Quebec and New Orleans, a distance of three thousand miles, is overleaped by the electric tele- graph. /Two lines, each two thousand miles long, connect New York with New Orleans ; and over this space messages are transmitted, and answers received, in three hours. When we read long paragraphs in the London morning papers, received by electric telegraph after midnight from Paris, we wonder how this is accomplished. Eighteen words, which are equal to about two newspaper lines, are trans- mitted every minute ; and the full message from Dover, carefully transcribed, is in the hands of the newspaper editor in half an hour. To carry out all this scientific conquest of time and space, by the most perfect mental and mechanical arrangements in the newspaper-office itself, appears, at first sight, almost as great a wonder as the rapid communication. Nothing but the most perfect organization of the division of labour could accomplish the feat. There is, after midnight, in the office of a morning paper, a constant necessity for adapting the labour of every quarter of an hour to the requirements of the instant time. Much of the newspaper matter may have been in type in the evening ; some portion may be quite ready for printing off. But new necessities may derange much of this preparation. Say that the Parliament is sitting. The reporters are in the 334 A LONDON NEWSPAPER-OFFICE. CHAP. XXI. gallery at the meeting of the House, and each arrives at the office with his assigned portion of the debate. A heavy night is not expected, and the early reporters write with comparative fulness. Suddenly an unexpected turn is given to the proceedings. A great debate springs up, out of a ministerial statement or an opposition objection. Then come reply and rejoinder. Column after column is poured in. Smaller matters must give way to greater. The intel- ligence that will keep is put aside for the information that is pressing. The debate is prolonged till one or two o'clock, and the paper is approaching its completion. But an electric telegraph communication has arrived perhaps an important express. Away goes more news. Advertise- ments, law reports, police reports, correspondence all retire into obscurity for one day. There is plenty of ma- nipulating power in the great body of compositors to effect these changes. But not in any department is there any apparent bustle. Nor is there any neglect in the labours that wait upon the work of the compositors. One word is not put for another. The readers are as vigilant to correct every error to have no false spelling and no inaccurate punctuation as if they were bestowing their vigilance upon a book to be published next season. The reporters are as careful to make no slips which would indicate a want of knowledge, as if they were calmly writing in their libraries after breakfast. The one-presiding mind of the editor is watchful over all. At four or five o'clock the morning paper goes to press. But there are many hundred copies to be despatched by the morning mails. Manchester and Glasgow would be frightened from their propriety, if the daily London papers did not arrive at the accustomed hour. The London mer- chant, banker, lawyer, would go unwillingly to his morning labour, if he had not had one passing glance at the division in the House, the state of the money-market, the last foreign intelligence. Late as the paper may have been in its mental completion, Manchester, Glasgow, and London will hot be kept without that illumination which has become CHAP. XXI. THE PRINTING-MACHINE. 335 almost as necessary as sunlight. Machinery has been created by the demand, to carry the demand farther than the wannest imagination could have anticipated. In 1814, Kcenig, a German, erected the first printing-machine at the " Times Office," and produced eighteen hundred im- pressions an hour on one side. The machine superseded the duplicates of the type which were once necessary, painfully and laboriously to keep up a small supply, worked by men, with relays, at the rate of five hundred an hour. In 1818 Edward Cowper produced his cylinder-machine, 338 THE PRINTING-MACHINE. CHAP. XXI. which effected a revolution in the commerce of books ; and, in connexion with the paper-machine, enabled the principle of cheapness to contend against an impolitic and oppressive tax. This is still the machine in general use for many newspapers and much book-printing. We will briefly de- scribe the operation of printing a sheet of paper on both sides by this instrument. Upon the solid steel table at each end of the machine lie the pages which print one side of the sheet. At the top of the machine, where the laying-on boy stands, is a heap of wet paper. The signal being given by the director of the work, the laying-on boy turns a small handle, and the moving-power of the strap connected with a steam- engine is immediately communicated. Some ten or twenty spoiled sheets are first passed over the types to remove any dirt or moisture. If the director is satisfied, the boy begins to lay on the white paper. He places the sheet upon a flat table before him, with its edge ready to be seized by the apparatus for conveying it upon the drum. At the first movement of the great wheel, the inking-apparatus at each end has been set in motion. The steel cylinder attached to the reservoir of ink has begun slowly to move, the " doctor," or more properly " ductor," has risen to touch that cylinder for an instant, and thus receive a supply of ink, the inking-table has passed under the " doctor" and carried off that supply, and the distributing-roller?; have spread it equally over the surface of the table. This sur- face, having passed under the inking-rollers, communicates the supply to them ; and they in turn impart it to the form which is to be printed. All these beautiful operations are accomplished in the sixteenth part of a minute, by the travelling backward and forward of the carriage or table upon which the form rests. Each roller revolves upon an axis which is fixed. At the moment when the form at the back of the machine is passing under the inking-roller, the sheet, which the boy has carefully laid upon the table before him, is caught in the web-roller and conveyed to the end- less bands or tapes which pass it over the first impressing CHAP. XXI. THE PRINTING-MACHINE. 337 cylinder. It is here seized tightly by the bands, which fall between the pages and on the outer margin. The mo- ment after the sheet is seized upon the first cylinder, the form passes under that cylinder, and the paper "being brought in contact with it receives an impression on one side. To give the impression on the other side the sheet is to be turned over, and this is eifected by the two drums in the centre of the machine. The endless tapes never lose their grasp of the sheet, although they allow it to be reversed. While the impression has been given by the first cylinder, the second form of types at the other end of the table has been inked. The drums have conveyed the sheet during this inking upon the second cylinder ; it is brought in contact with the types, and the operation is complete. Koenig's machine, which was a very complicated instru- ment, was supplanted at the * Times ' office by a modification of Applegath's and Cowper's machine, which printed four thousand sheets an hour on one side. But that has been superseded by a vertical machine, which prints ten thou- sand copies an hour, on one side. The separate columns of type are fixed on a large type-drum, two hundred inches in circumference. The drum is surrounded by eight impress- ing cylinders ; the ink is applied to the surface of the type by rollers which work between these cylinders ; and the sheets are laid on upon eight tables, (A, A, A,) which, by a most in- genious mechanism, carry each sheet to a point where its position is suddenly changed, and it is impressed between the type and the cylinder ; the paper being then suspended by tapes, from which it is released as it passes forward, to be laid upon the heap which will be scattered, in a few hours, to every corner of the kingdom. The printing machines, which have been in full operation for little more than twenty years, have called into action an amount of employment which was almost wholly unknown when knowledge was for the few. Paper-makers, type- founders, wood-engravers, bookbinders, booksellers, have 338 THE PRINTING-MACHINE. CHAP. XXI. THE PAPER-MACHINE. ', 339 been raised up by this extension of the art of printing, in numbers which far exceed those of any former period. But the printing machine would have worked feebly and imperfectly without the paper machine. That most com- plete invention has not only cheapened paper itself, but it has cheapened the subsequent operations of printing, in a remarkable degree. It has enabled one revolution of the cylinder of the printing machine to produce four sheets instead of one, or a surface of print equal to four sheets. When paper was altogether made by hand, the usual paper for books was called demy ; and a sheet of demy produced six- teen octavo pages of a book. The paper could not have been economically made larger by hand. A sheet of paper equal to four sheets of demy is now worked at the newspaper machine ; and sixty -four pages of an octavo book might be so worked, if it were needful for cheapening production. Double demy is constantly worked for books. Thus, one economical arrangement of science produces another con- trivance ; and machines in one direction combine with machines having a different object, to produce legitimate cheapness, injurious to no one, but beneficial to all. Let us attempt to convey a notion of the beautiful opera- tions of the paper-machine. In the whole range of machinery, there is, perhaps, no series of contrivances which so forcibly address themselves to the senses. There is nothing mysterious in the opera- tion ; we at once see the beginning and the end of it. At one extremity of the long range of wheels and cylinders we are shown a stream of pulp, not thicker than milk and water, flowing over a moying plane ; at the other extremity the same stream has not only become perfectly solid, but is wound upon a reel in the form of hard and smooth paper. This is, at first sight, as miraculous as any of the fancies of an Arabian tale. Aladdin's wonderful lamp, by which a palace was built in a night, did not in truth produce more extraordinaiy effects than science has done with the paper- machine. At one extremity of the machine is a chest, full of stuff z 2 340 THE PAPER-MACHINE. CHAP. XXI. or pulp. We mount the steps by its side, and see a long beam rolling incessantly round this capacious vessel, and thus keeping the fibres of linen, which look like snow flakes, perpetually moving, and consequently equally sus- pended, in the water. At the bottom of the chest, and above the vat, there is a cock through which we observe a continuous stream of pulp flowing into the vat ; which is, always, therefore, filled to a certain height. From the upper to the lower part of this vat a portion of the pulp flows upon a narrow wire frame, which constantly jumps up and down with a noise resembling a cherry- clack. Having passed through the sifter, the pulp flows still onward to a ledge, over which it falls in a regular stream, like a sheet of water over a smooth dam. Here we see it caught upon a plane, which presents an uninterrupted sur- face of five or six feet, upon which the pulp seems evenly spread, as a napkin upon a table. A more accurate inspec- tion shows us that this plane is constantly moving onwards with a gradual pace ; that it has also a shaking motion from side to side ; and that it is perforated all over with little holes in fact, that it is an endless web of the finest wire. If we touch the pulp at the end of the plane, upon which it first descends, we find it fluid ; if we draw the finger over its edge at the other end, we perceive that it is still soft not so hard, perhaps, as wet blotting-paper, but so completely formed, that the touch will leave a hole, wnicn we may trace forward till the paper is perfectly made. The pulp does not flow over the sides of the plane, we observe, because a strap, on each side, constantly moving and passing upon its edges, regulates the width. After we pass the wheels upon which these straps termi- nate, we perceive that the paper is sufficiently formed not to require any further boundary to define its size ; the pulp has ceased to be fluid. But it is yet tender and wet. The paper is not yet completely off the plane of wire : before it quits it, another roller, which is clothed with felt, and upon which a stream of cold water is constantly flowing subjects it to pressure. The paper has at length left what CHAP. XXI. THE PAPER-MACHINE. 341 may be called the region of wire, and has entered that of cloth. A tight surface of flannel, or felt, is moving onwards with the same regular march as the web of wire. Like the wire, the felt is what is called endless, that is, united at the extremities, as a jack-towel is. We see the sheet travel- ling up an inclined plane of this stretched flannel, which gradually absorbs its moisture. It is now seized between two rollers, which powerfully squeeze it. It goes travelling up another inclined plane of flannel, and then passes through a second pair of pressing-rollers. It has now left the region of cloth, and has entered that of heat. The paper, up to this point, is quite formed ; but it is fragile and damp. It is in the state in which, if the machinery were to stop here, as it did upon its first invention, it would require (having been wound upon a reel) to be parted and dried as hand-made paper is. But in a few seconds more it is subjected to a process by which all this labour and time is saved. From the last pair of cloth-pressing rollers, the paper is received upon a small roller which is guided over the polished surface of a large heated cylinder. The soft pulp tissue now begins to smoke ; but the heat is propor- tioned to its increasing power of resistance. From the first cylinder, or drum, it is received upon a second, consider- ably larger, and much hotter. As it rolls over this polished surface, we see all the roughness of its appearance, when in the cloth region, ' gradually vanishing. At length, having passed over a third cylinder, still hotter than the second, and having been subjected to the pressure of a blanket, which confines it on one side, while the cylinder smooths it 011 the other, it is caught upon the last roller, which hands it over to the reel. The last process of the machine is to cut the roll of paper into sheets. In consequence of the cheaper production of the press, and the consequent extension of the demand for books, bookbinding has become a large manufacture, carried on with many scientific applications. We have rolling-ma- chines, to make the book solid; cutting-machines, to supersede the hand-labour of the little instrument called a 34:2 BOOKBINDING. CHAP. XXI. plough ; embossing machines, to produce elaborate raised patterns on leather or cloth; embossing presses, to give the gilt ornament and lettering. These contrivances, and other similar inventions, have not only cheapened books, but have enabled the publisher to give them a permanent instead of a temporary cover, ornamental as well as useful. There are eleven thousand bookbinders now employed, of which one-third are females. The number employed has been quadrupled by these inventions. In 1830, the jour- neymen bookbinders of London opposed the introduction of the rolling-machine. Books were formerly beat with large hammers upon a stone, to give them solidity. The work- men were relieved from the drudgery of the beating-ham- mer by the easy operation of the rolling-machine. They soon discovered the weak foundation of their objection to an instrument which, in truth, had a tendency, above all other things, to elevate their trade, and to make that an art which in one division of it was a mere labour. If the painter were compelled to grind his own colours and make his own frames, he would no longer follow an art, but a trade ; and he would receive the wages of a labourer instead of the wages of an artist, not only so far as related to the grinding and frame-making, but as affecting all his occupa- tions, by the drudgery attending a portion of them. The commerce of literature has been doubled in twenty years. But it would be scarcely too much to assert that the influence of the press, in forming public opinion, and causing it to operate upon legislation, has doubled almost every other employment. To that public opinion, chiefly so formed, we owe the successive removals of restrictions upon trade, which have carried forward our exports from thirty-six millions sterling in 1831 to ninety millions in 1853. To that public opinion we owe the abolition of pro- hibitive duties upon foreign produce, which has given us a far wider range of beneficial consumption. To that public opinion we owe the repeal of the oppressive excise duties upon salt, leather, candles, glass, bricks which duties im- peded production even more effectually than the extortions CHAP. XXI. TAX UPOX PAPER. 343 and tyrannies of the middle ages. Strange it is, that the power of the press, which has done so much for the removal of other fiscal impediments to industry, should have been able to effect so little for itself; that the tax upon paper should still interfere with the commerce of literature, when general education has no longer to en- counter any misgivings in the minds of those who govern an earnest and patriotic people. The difficulty of procuring the material of paper has become a serious impediment to the cheap diffusion of knowledge ; and the paper-tax works in the same evil direction. There have been innume- rable obstacles to the extension of knowledge since the days when books were written on the papyrus obstacles equally raised up by despotic blindness and popular igno- rance. But it is not fitting that either of such causes should still be in action in the days of the printing-ma- chine. Papyrus. 344 POWER OF SKILL. CHAP. XXII. CHAPTEE XXIJ. Power of skill Cheap production Population and production Partial and temporary evils Intelligent labour Division of labour General knowledge The Lowell Offering Union of forces. WE have thus, without pretending to any approach to com- pleteness, taken a rapid view of many of the great branches of industry in this country. We have exhibited capital working with accumulation of knowledge ; we have shown labour working with skill. We desire to show that the counter-control to the absorbing power of capital is the rapidly developing power of skill for that, also, is capital. Knowledge is power, because knowledge is property. Mr. Whitworth, whose Report on American Manufactures we have several times quoted, says that the workmen of the United States, being educated, perform their duty "with less supervision than is required when dependence is to be placed upon uneducated hands." He adds, "It rarely happens that a workman, who possesses peculiar skill in his craft, is disqualified to take the responsible position of super- intendent, by the want of education and general knowledgd, as is frequently the case in this country." This is a reproach which every young person in our land ought, as speedily as possible, to wipe out. The means of education may not be quite so universal here as in the United States ; but they are ample to produce a large increase of that skill and that trustworthiness which are the most efficient powers which those who' work for their living can possibly command, for elevating their individual positions, and for elevating the great body of workers throughout the realm. One of the CHAP. XXII. CHEAPNESS CREATES DEMAND. 345 most essential steps towards the attainment of this elevation is the conviction that manual labour, to be effective, must adapt itself almost wholly to the direction of science ; and that under that direction unskilled labour necessarily be- comes skilled, and limited trust enlarges into influential re- sponsibility. Those who have taken a superficial view of the question of scientific application say, that, only whenever there is a greater demand than the existing means can supply, is any new discovery in mechanics a benefit to society, because it gives the means of satisfying the existing wants ; but that, on the contrary, whenever the things produced are sufficient for the consumers, the discovery is a calamity, because it does not add to the enjoyments of the consumers ; it only gives them a better market, which better market is bought at the price of the existence of the producers. All such reasoning is false in principle, and unsupported by experience. There is no such thing, nor, if machines went on improving for five hundred years at the rate they have done for the last century, could there be any such thing, as a limit to the wants of the consumers. The great mass of facts which we have brought together in this book must have shown, that the cheaper an article of necessity becomes, the more of it is used ; that when the most press- ing wants are supplied, and supplied amply by cheapness, the consumer has money to lay out upon new wants ; that when these new wants are supplied cheaply, he goes on again and again to other new wants; that there are no limits,. in fact, to his wants as long as he has any capital to satisfy them. Bear in mind this ; that the first great ob- ject of every invention and every improvement is to confer a benefit upon the consumers, to make the commodity cheap and plentiful. The working man stands in a double cha- racter ; he is both a producer and a consumer. But we will be bold to say that the question of cheapness of pro- duction is a much more important question to be decided in his favour as a consumer, than the question of deamess of production to be decided in his favour as a producer. 346 CHEAP PRODUCTION A GENERAL GOOD. CHAP. XXII. The truth, is, every man tries to get as much as he can for his own labour, and to pay as little as he can for the labour of others. If a mechanic, succeeding in stopping the machine used in his own trade, by any strange deviation from the natural course of things were to get higher wages for a time, he himself would be the most injured by the exten- sion of the principle. When he found his loaf cost him two shillings instead of sixpence ; when he was obliged to go to the river with his bucket for his supply of water; when his coals cost a guinea a bushel instead of eighteen pence ; when he was told by the hosier that his worsted stockings were advanced from a shilling a pair to five shil- lings ; when, in fact, the price of every article that he uses should be doubled, trebled, and, in nine cases out of ten, put beyond the possibility of attainment ; what, we ask, would be the use to him of his advance in wages ? Let us never forget that it is not for the employment of labourers, but for the benefit of consumers, that labour is employed at all. The steam-engines are not "working in the coal-pits of Northumberland, and the ships sailing from the Tyne to the Thames, to give employment to colliers and to sailors, but to make coals cheap in London. If the people of Lon- don could have the coals without the steam-engines and the ships, it would be better for them, and better for the rest of the world. If they could get coals for nothing, they would have more produce to exchange for money to spend upon other things ; and the comforts, therefore, of every one of us would be increased. This increase of comfort, some may say, is a question that more affects the rich than it affects the great mass. This again is a mistake. The whole tendency of the im- provements of the last four hundred }^ears has not only been to lift the meanest, in regard to a great many comforts, far above the condition of the rich four hundred years ago, but absolutely to place them, in many things, upon a level with the rich of their own day. They are surrounded, as we have constantly shown throughout this book, with an in- finite number of comforts and conveniences which had no CHAP. XXII. INCREASED EMPLOYMENT. 347 existence two or three centuries ago ; and those comforts and conveniences are not used only by a few, but are within the reach of almost all men. Every day is adding something to our comforts. Our houses are better built our clothes are cheaper we have a number of domestic utensils, whose use even was unknown to our ancestors we can travel cheaply from place to place, and not only travel at less expense, but travel ten times quicker than the richest man could travel two hundred years ago. The bulk of society is not only advancing steadily to the same level in point of many comforts with the rich, but is gain- ing that knowledge which was formerly their exclusive possession. Let all of us who are producers keep fast hold of that last and best power. We have endeavoured to show throughout this book that the one great result of machinery, and of every improve- ment in art, is to lessen the cost of production ; to increase the benefit to the consumer. But it is a most fortunate arrangement of the social state, as we have also shown, that cheap production gives increased employment. The same class of false reasoners who consider that the wants of society are limited, cry out, it is better to have a popula- tion of men than of steam-engines. That might be true, if the steam-engines did put out the men ; but inasmuch as they increase the productions by which men t are main- tained, they increase the men. What has increased the population of England nearly tenfold during the last five -hundred years, but the improvement of the arts of life, which has enabled more men to live within the land? There is no truth so clear, that as the productions of in- dustry multiply, the means of acquiring those productions multiply also. The productions which are created by one producer furnish the means of purchasing the productions created by another producer ; and, in consequence of this double production, the necessities of both the one and the other are better supplied. The multiplication of produce multiplies the consumers of produce. There are, probably, upon the average, no more hats made in the year than there 348 INCREASED POPULATION. CHAP. XXII. are heads to wear them ; but as there are twenty-one mil- lions of heads of the British subjects of Queen Victoria, and there were only five millions of the British subjects of Queen Anne, it is self-evident that the hat-makers have four times as much work as they had a century and a half ago. What has given the hat-makers four times as much work ? The quadrupling of the population. And what has quadrupled the population ? The quadrupling of produce the quadrupling of the means of maintaining that popula- tion. It is a remarkable fact, derived from the official returns, that whilst our exports of home produce and manufactures have increased about twofold in price since the commencement of the century, they have increased eight-fold in quantity. Their real or declared value indi- cates the price. What is called the official value indicates the quantity. What is true of our exports is also true of our home-consumption. The great multiplication of pro- duce is accompanied, proportionately, with a far greater diminution of price. There is a just and eloquent passage in the Registrar- General's Report upon the Census of 1851, which we gladly copy : " With all that we now see around us, it is difficult to place ourselves in the position of the people of 1751 ; and to understand either the simplicity of the means, or the greatness of the task which has since been achieved by the people of England and Scotland. It is evident, however, that if the whole that they have accomplished had been proposed as a project, or been held out as the policy of the greatest minister then living, its difficulty and grandeur would have overwhelmed him with confusion. If in the height of power he had thus addressed the people of Britain, would he not have been heard with justifiable incredulity ? ' These islands and Ireland are occupied by the men of many separate states that are now happily united. After the settlement on the land of tribes, fleets, and armies of Celts, of Saxons, of Danes, and of Normans and after cen- turies of patient culture, its fertile soil sustains seven millions CHAP. XXII. PARTIAL AND TEMPORARY EVILS. 349 of people in its whole length, from the 'Isle of Wight to the Shetland Islands. We cannot for the mighty power is not given us say, let there be on the European shores of the Atlantic ocean three Great Britain s. But the means exist for creating on this land, in less than a hundred years, two more nations, each in number equal to the existing popu- lation, and of distributing them, over its fields, in cottages, farms, and towns, by the banks of its rivers, and around its immemorial hills : and they will thus be neither separated by longer roads, nor wider seas, but be neighbours, fellow- workers, and fellow-countrymen on the old territory; wielding by machines the forces of nature, that shall serve them with the strength of thousands of horses, on roads, and seas, in mines, manufactories, and ships. Subsistence shall be as abundant as it is now, and luxuries, which are confined to the few, shall be enjoyed by multitudes. The wealth of the country its stock and its produce shall increase in a faster ratio than the people. All this shall be accomplished without any miraculous agency, by the progress of society, by the diffusion of knowledge and morals, by improvements, and improvements chiefly in the institution of marriage 'that true source of human offspring,' whence, ' Founded in reason, loyal, just, and pure, Relations dear, and all the charities Of father, son, and brother, first were known.' " If the reader has rightly considered the various facts which we have presented, he will long before this have come to the conclusion, that it is for the general inter- ests of society that every invention, which v has a ten- dency to diminish the cost of production, shall have the most perfect freedom to go forward. He will also have perceived, that the exercise of this nalural right, this proud distinction, of man, to carry on the work of im- provement to the fullest extent of his capacity and know- ledge, can never be wholly stopped, however e somewhat less ; and unless the accu- mulation from the economy were expended universally in some improved accommodation, labourers would gradually arise who would be contented with the smaller amount ne- cessary for subsistence, and the greater number of labourers seeking for wages would depress the amount paid to each individual labourer. "In England and Scotland," says Mr. Morison, "the classes living by wages form the majority of the popula- tion." It has been estimated by Mr. Greg that the annual amount paid in wages is a hundred and forty millions CHAP. XXIV. WAGES AND PRICES. 395 sterling; 'to which maybe added twenty millions for the board of domestic servants. The profits of all the opera- tions of industry to the capitalists are estimated by Mr. Morison at ninety millions. The census returns show that there were three hundred and fifty-four thousand masters in trades, and fanners, employing fourteen hundred thousand men. This gives a proportion of about four men employed to one employer. Compared with the estimate of profits it shows that each employer, assuming the calculation to be correct, would derive a revenue of two hundred and fifty pounds a year as the recompense of his capital, skill, and risk. This is not so large an aggregate profit as is ordina- rily supposed. The men employed would each receive a revenue of one hundred a year. But we must add a large number to the men receiving wages, who would not be returned by their employers ; and the calculation of pay ments must be further diminished by the consideration that in many branches of industry, and in factory labour espe- cially, a very large number of females are employed, as well as boys. , But the fact of the general proportion of wages to profits is sufficiently striking to show that the inequality of the condition of the labourer and the em- ployer is not so extravagantly great as we have been accus- tomed of late years to hear asserted. In looking back upon the historical evidence which we possess, imperfect as it is, of the condition of society at various periods of our industrial progress, we cannot doubt that there has been a process constantly going forward by which the circumstances of all classes have been steadily raised. In the table of Gregory King, which we have several times referred to, the average income of ten thou- sand merchants is put down at three hundred a year; of shopkeepers and tradesmen at forty-five pounds ; of farmers at forty-two pounds; and of labouring people at fifteen pounds. The income of gentlemen is taken at two hundred and eighty pounds a year. The increase of the means of these various classes at the present day as compared with the end of the seventeenth century, has certainly been 396 TURXIXG OVER CAPITAL. CHAP. XXIV. threefold. If we turn to the passage which we have quoted from the * Chronicon Preciosum,' originally published in 1707, we may at once compare the advantages which a threefold increase of means will procure. "Wheat is not six pounds a quarter, nor broad-cloth two pounds fourteen shil- lings a yard, which would be the case if we trebled the prices of 1707. We have abundance of conveniences and comforts of which the people of Queen Anne's reign had no notion, which have been bestowed upon us by manufac- tures, and commerce, and scientific agriculture. "We have already stated and illustrated the general prin- ciple that the w r ages of labour are determined by the accu- mulations of capital, compared with the number of labourers. Hence it necessarily results that, as has been forcibly expressed, " the additional capital, whenever it is produc- tively employed, will tend as certainly to the benefit of the working population at large as if the owner were a trustee for their benefit."* But the profitable employment of capital depends very greatly upon activity, knowledge, and foresight on the part of the capitalist. It was for the want of these qualities that all the old schemes for providing labour out of a common stock chiefly broke down. Sir Matthew Hale, in his plans for employing paupers in spin- ing flax and weaving cloth, knew theoretically the truth that the amount of capital available for the payment of labour would be largely increased by the rapidity with which it might be turned over. He says, " If it could be supposed that the cloth could be sold as soon as made, which is not, I confess, reasonably to be expected then a stock of 24Z. would, by its continual return, provide materials and pay the workmen for one loom's work in perpetuity." The "if" expresses the difference between individual commercial activity and knowledge, and official sluggishness and incapacity. But it also expresses the dif- erenc e between the commerce of our days, and that of the end of the seventeenth century. Without roads, or canals, or rail- roads, how difficult was it to bring the seller and the buyer * M orison, ' Labour and Capital,' p. 24. CHAP. XXIV. TURNING OVER CAPITAL. 397 together ! All manufactures would be, for the most part, local. The cloths of Kendal might go to the neighbouring fairs on packhorses ; and thence slowly spread through the country by pedlers and other small dealers ; and the pro- ceeds might return to the manufacturer at the end of a year. But the rapid turning over of capital which begins with buying a bale of cotton at New York, and having it in Sydney in the shape of calico in three months, with the bill that is to pay for it drawn at Manchester, accepted in Sydney, and discounted in London in another three months, is a turning over of capital which was scarcely imagined by the projectors and practical traders of a cen- tury ago. This rapid turning over of capital, and the consequent more rapid accumulation of the labour-fund, depends upon the confidence of the capitalist that his capital will work to a profit. It will not so work if he is to be undersold. If wages could press upon profit beyond a certain ascer- tained limit, he would be undersold. The home competition of localities and individuals is perpetually forcing on the most economical' arrangements in production. The foreign competition is doing so still more. If we have increased productiveness here, through scientific application, the same increased productiveness, from the same causes, is going forward elsewhere. * Price-Currents ' supply a perpe- tual barometer of industrial cloud or sunshine; and the manufacturer and merchant have constantly to unfurl or furl their sails according to the indications. Whenever there is shipwreck, the ship's crew and the captain partake of a common calamity ; and the calamity is always precipitated and made more onerous when, from any cause, there is not cordial sympathy and agreement. 398 WHAT POLITICAL ECONOMY TEACHES. CHAP. XXV. CHAPTEE XXV. What political economy teaches Skilled labour and trusted, labour Com- petition of unskilled labour Competition of uncapitalled labour . Itinerant traders The contrast of organised industry Factory-labour and garret-labour Communism Proposals for state organisation of labour Social publishing establishment Practical co-operation. THERE is a passage in Wordsworth's * Excursion ' in which he describes the benevolent and philosophical hero of his poem, a pedler, listening to the complaints of poverty, and searching into the causes of the evil : " Nor was he loth to enter ragged huts, Huts where his charity was biest ; his voice Heard as the voice of an experienced friend. And, sometimes, where the poor man held dispute With his own mind, unable to subdue Impatience, through inaptness to perceive General distress in his particular lot ; Or cherishing resentment, or in vain Struggling against it, with a soul perplex'd And finding in herself no steady power To draw the line of comfort that divides Calamity, the chastisement of Heaven, * From the injustice of our brother men ; To him appeal was made as to a judge ; Who, with an understanding heart, allay'd The perturbation ; listen'd to the plea ; Resolv'd the dubious point ; and sentence gave So grounded, so applied, that it was heard With soften'd spirit e'en when it condemn'd." The poor man is acctistomed to hold dispute with his own mind ; he thinks his particular lot is worse than the general lot ; his soul is perplexed in considering whether his con- dition is produced by a common law of society, or by the injustice of his fellow-men ; the experienced friend listens, CHAP. XXV. WHAT POLITICAL ECONOMY TEACHES. 399 discusses, argues, but he argues in a temper that produces a softened spirit. The adviser soothes rather than inflames, by dealing with such questions with "an understanding iieart." He unites the sympathising heart with the reason- ing understanding. Now, we may fairly inquire if, during the many unfortu- nate occasions that are constantly arising of contests for what are called the rights of labour against what is called the tyranny of capital, those who are the most immediate sufferers in the contest are addressed with the "understand- ing heart " ? If argument be used at all, the principles which govern the relations between capital and labour are put too often dictatorially or patronisingly before them, as dry, abstract propositions. They are not set forth as matters of calm inquiry, whose truths, when dispassionately examined, may be found to lead to the conclusion that a steadily- increasing rate of wages, affording the emplo} T ed a greater amount of comforts and conveniences, is the inevitable re- sult of increasing capital, under conditions which depend upon the workers themselves. The result is generally such as took place in. a recent Lancashire strike, where one of the leaders exclaimed, " The sooner we can rout political economy from the world, the better it will be for the work- ing-classes." It might, indeed, as well be said, the sooner we can rout acoustics from the world, the better it will be for those who have ears to hear ; but the absurdity would not be corrected by a mathematical demonstration to those who did not comprehend mathematics. The same person held that political economy was incompatible with the gospel precept of doing unto others as we would be done unto, because it encourages buying in the cheapest market and selling in the dearest ; and he necessarily assumed that political economy recommends the capitalist to buy labour cheap and sell it dear. "We have not learnt that calmly and kindly he was told, in the real spirit of political economy, that it is impossible that, by any individual or local advantage the capitalist may possess, he can long depress wages below the rate of the whole country, because other capitalists 400 SKILLED AND TRUSTED LABOUR. CHAP. XXV. would enter into competition for the employment of labour, and raise the average rate. If Wordsworth's experienced friend had heard this perversion of the meaning of the axiom about markets, he would have said, we think, that to buy in the cheapest market and sell in the dearest simply means, in commerce, to buy an article where its cheapness represents abundance, and to sell it in a place where its clearness represents a want of it and a consequent demand, even as he, the pedler, bought a piece of cloth at Kendal, where there was plenty of cloth, and sold it for a profit at Grasmere, where there was little cloth. The business of mercantile knowledge and enterprise is to discover and apply these conditions ; so that, if a trader were to buy hides in Smithfield and carry them to Buenos Ayres, he would reverse these conditions, he would buy in the dear- est market and sell in the cheapest. Political economy the declaimer against it might have been told says that to produce cheap is essential to large demand, and constantly- increasing demand ; but it does not say that cheap produc- tion necessarily implies diminished wages. It says that cheap production, as a consequence of increased production, depends upon the constantly-increasing use of capital in production, and the constantly-diminishing amount of mere manual labour compared with the quantity produced which result is effected by the successive application of all the ap- pliances of science to the means of production. At every step of scientific improvement there is a demand for labour of a higher character than existed without the science. At every extended organization of industry, resulting from an extended demand, not cpily skilled labour, but trusted la- bour, becomes more and more in request ; and the average amount of all labour is better paid. A bricklayer is paid more than the man who mixes his mortar, because one is a skilled labourer, and has learnt his art by some expenditure of time, which is capital. The merchant' s bookkeeper is paid more than his porter, because the one has an office of high trust and responsibility, and the other a duty to per- form of less importance, and for which a far greater number CHAP. XXV. UNSKILLED LABOUR. 401 of men wanting hire are fitted. We could wish that not only " in ragged huts," but in well-appointed houses, were the things better understood that political economy really does say. The process which has been steadily going on amongst us for increasing the demand for skill and trustworthiness has no doubt produced a diminution of the funds for employ in which neither skill nor trust is required. Thus a great amount of suffering is constantly presented to our view, which benevolence has set about relieving, in our time, with a zeal which shows how fully it is acknowledged that the great principle, to " Love one another," is not to evaporate in sentiment, but is to be ripened in action. As a nation, Feed the hungry. 2 D 402 COMPETITION OF UNSKILLED LABOUR. CHAP. XXV. England was never indifferent to the command, " Feed the hungry." The art of Flaxman has shown this "act of mercy" in its most direct form. But the "understanding heart " has discovered that many of the miseries of society may be relieved by other modes as effectually as by alms- giving, and perhaps much more effectually. Whether some of these efforts may be misdirected, in no degree detracts from the value of the principle which seeks the prevention of misery rather than the relief. One of the most obvious forms in which misery has presented itself in our large cities, and especially in London, has arisen from the com- petition amongst labour which may be called unskilled, be- cause there are a numerous unemployed body of labourers at hand to do the same work, in which there is no special skill. This was the case with the sempstresses of London'; and the famous l Song of the Shirt ' struck a note to which there was a responding chord in every bosom. But the terrible evils of the low wages of shirt-making would not have been relieved by an universal agreement of the com- munity to purchase none but shirts that, by their price, could afford to give higher wages to the shirt-makers. The higher wages would have infallibly attracted more women and more children to the business of shirt-making. The straw-platters, the embroiderers, the milliners would have rushed to shirt-making ; and, unless there had been a con- stantly-increasing rate of price charged to the wearers of shirts, and therefore a constant forced contribution to the capital devoted to shirt-making, the payment to one shirt- maker would have come to be divided amongst two ; and the whole body, thus doubled by a rate of wages dispropor- tioned to the rate of other labour requiring little peculiar skill, would have been in a worse condition in the end than in the beginning. Whatever suffering may arise out of the competition that must exist between mere manual labour, and also between that labour which is displayed in the practice of some art easily learnt, capable of exercise by both sexes, and in which very young children may readily engage it is scarcely fair CHAP. XXV. COMPETITION OF UNSKILLED LABOUR. 403 that those who witness the suffering of the employed at very low wages should instantly conclude that the employers are extortioners and oppressors. A branch of trade which seems inconsiderable as regards the article produced is often found in a particular locality, and furnishes employ- ment to large numbers. In the London parish of Cripplegate there are great quantities of toothbrushes made.- The handle is formed by the lathe, in which skilled labour is employed. The hair is cut by machinery. The holes in the handle in which the hair is inserted are also pierced by machines. But the insertion of the hair, and the fastening it by wire, are done by hand. Excellent people, who, with a strong sense of Christian duty, enter "ragged huts" to relieve and to advise, see a number of women and children daily labouring at the one task of fastening the hair in toothbrushes; and they learn that the wages paid are miserably low. They immediately conclude that the wages should be higher; because in the difference between the retail price of a toothbrush and the manufacturing cost there must necessarily be large profits. They say, there- fore, that -the wholesale manufacturer is unjust in not giving higher wages. But the retail price of toothbrushes, however high, does not enable the manufacturer, necessarily, to give a payment more considerable than the average of such labour to the women and children who very quickly learn the art of fastening the hair. The price he can pay is to be measured by the average price of such labour all over the country. It is not in the least unlikely that the manu- facturer in Cripplegate may not receive a fourth of the price at which a toothbrush is sold in Saint James's. The profits are determined by the average of all his transactions. He has to sell as cheaply as possible for the export trade. If he sell dear, the export-trader will see if he cannot buy a hundred thousand toothbrushes at Havre instead of London. It is nothing to the exporter whether he obtain a profit out of French or English toothbrushes. Again. The manufacturer sends a hundred thousand tooth- brushes to a wholesale dealer at Glasgow, who supplies the 2 D 2 404 COMPETITION OF UNCAPITALLED LABOUR. CHAP. XXV. retailers throughout Scotland. But before the Scotch ware- houseman will repeat the order, he will ascertain whether he can buy the article cheaper at Birmingham ; and one per cent, lower will decide against Cripplegate. Now, in all these domestic labours invoking small skill, the question is whether the miserably-paid workers can do anything more profitable. Mr. Mayhew says that some large classes " do not obtain a fair living price for their work, because, as in the case of the needleworkers and other domestic manufac- turers, their livelihood is supposed to be provided for them by the husband or father ; and hence the remuneration is viewed rather as an aid to the family income than as an absolute means of support." It is not what is " supposed/' or what is " viewed," that determines the question. It is what really is. Such employ may, unhappily, be sought by many as "an absolute means of support." But if there be an almost unlimited number who seek it as " an aid to the family income," there is no possibility of preventing a com- petition, perfectly equal as regards the wages of labour, but wretchedly unequal in the application of those wages. The miseries that are so frequently resulting from the competition of unskilled labour are also results from what we will venture to call uncapitalled labour, attempting to unite wages with profits. Upon a large scale, the miseries of Ireland, which finally collapsed in the terrible famine, were produced by labour trenching upon the functions of capital without possessing capital. In 1847 there were in Ireland five hundred thousand acres of land in more than three hundred thousand holdings, thus supplying the only means of maintenance to three hundred thousand male labourers and their families, but averaging little more than an acre and a half to each tenant. There are not more than nine hundred thousand labourers and farmers to the twenty- five million cultivated acres in England and Wales about one labourer to every thirty-eight acres, and about one farmer capitalist to every hundred and ten acres. Nor is the effect of uncapitalled and unskilled labour for uncapi- talled labour is for the most part unskilled less remarkable CHAP. XXV. COMPETITION OF UXCAPITALLED LABOUR. 405 in manufactures than in agriculture. Many are familiar with the minute details of low wages and suffering of the oppressions attributed to masters and middle-men which are contained in a series of papers by Mr. Henry Mayhew, published in ' The Morning Chronicle' in 1849-50, under the title of * London Labour, and London Poor.' Nothing could be more laudable than the general object of these papers, which, in the preface to a collected edition of a portion of them, was "to give the rich a more intimate knowledge of the sufferings, and the frequent heroism under these sufferings, of the poor ;" and to cause those " of whom much is expected, to bestir themselves to improve their condition." But, at the same time, it would be difficult to say how the condition of particular classes of these sufferers was to be improved, except by such general efforts as would raise up the whole body of the people in knowledge and virtue, and by directing the labours of those who, with- out skill or capital, were struggling against skill and capital, into courses of industry more consonant with the great modes of productiveness all around them. One example may illustrate our meaning that of " the garret-masters of the cabinet-trade." The writer we have mentioned says that wages had fallen 400 per cent, in that trade, between 1831 and 1850 ; but he also says that the trade was " de- pressed by the increase of small masters that is to say, by a class of workmen possessed of just sufficient capital to buy their own materials, and to support themselves while making them up." Taking the whole rate of wages, the payment to the unskilled as well as the skilled workmen it would be difficult not to believe that the average reduction was quite as great as represented. A cabinet-maker tells this tale: " One of the inducements," he said, " for men to take to making up for themselves is to get a living when thrown out of work until they can hear of something better. If they could get into regular journey work there a'n't one man as wouldn't prefer it it would pay them a deal better. Another of the reasons for the men turning small masters is 406 COMPETITION OF UXCAP1TALLED LABOUR. CHAP. XXV. the little capital that it requires for them to start themselves. If a man has got his tools he can begin as a master-man with a couple of shillings. If he goes in for making large tahles, then from 305. to 355. will do him, and it's the small bit of money it takes to start with in our line that brings many into the trade who wouldn't be there if more tin was wanted to begin upon. Many works for themselves, because- nobody else won't employ them, their work is so bad. Many weavers has took to our business of late. That's quite common now their own's so bad; and some that used to hawk hearthstones about is turned Pembroke table- makers." Whether the mode in which this workman ex- presses himself correctly indicates, or not, the amount of his education, it is quite certain that he had got to the root of the evil of which he complains. The competition that is only limited by the capacity of endurance between the unskilled workman and the uncapi- talled workman each striving against the other, and striving in vain against capital and skill has been going on for centuries in the distribution of commodities. The retailer with small capital has always had to carry on an unequal contest with the retailer with large capital. In our time, small shops are swallowed up in magnificent warehouses, in which every article of dress especially can be purchased under one roof from a penny yard of ribbon to a hundred- guinea shawl. In splendour these bazaars, with one pro- prietor, rival the oriental with many competitors. But their distinguishing characteristic is the far-seeing organization, by which the capital is turned over with unexampled rapidity, and no unsaleable stock is kept on hand. It is easy to understand that the larger profits of the small retailer have very little chance of accumulation against the smaller profits of the large retailer. But this contest of small capital against large was for- merly carried on in the struggle of the itinerant traders against the shopkeepers. It is now carried on in a struggle amongst themselves. The census returns show seven thousand , costermongers, hucksters, and general- CHAP. XXV. ITINERANT TRADERS. 407 dealers. Mr. Mayhew says there are ten thousand in London.* The costennonger is a travelling shopkeeper. "We en- counter him not in Comhill, or Holbom, or the Strand : in Costermonger. the neighbourhood of the great markets and well-stored shops he travels not. But his voice is heard in some silent streets stretching into the suburbs ; and there his donkey- cart stands at the door, as the dingy servant-maid cheapens a bundle of cauliflowers. He has monopolized all the trades that were anciently represented by such " London cries " as "Buy my artichokes, mistress;" "Ripe cowcumbers ;" " White onions, white St. Thomas' onions ;" " White radish;" " Ripe young beans" " Any baking pears ;" " Ripe speragas" He would be indignant to encounter such petty chapmen interfering with his wholesale operations. Mr. May hew says that "the regular or thoroughbred costermongers repudiate the nu- merous persons who only sell nuts or oranges in the streets." No doubt they rail against these inferior competitors, as the * The subject of itinerant traders is treated fully in an article by the author of ' Knowledge is Power,' in a paper in ' London,' vol. i. A portion of that article is here reprinted, with some alterations. 408 ITINERANT TRADERS. CHAP. XXV. city shopkeepers of the sixteenth and seventeenth centuries railed against itinerant traders of every denomination. In the days of Elizabeth, they declare by act of common council, that in ancient times the open streets and lanes of the city have been used, and ought to be used, as the com- mon highway only, and not for hucksters, pedlers, and hagglers, to stand and sit to sell their wares in, and to pass from street to street hawking and offering their wares. In the seventh year of Charles I. the same authorities denounce the oyster-wives, herb-wives, tripe-wives, and the like, as " unruly people ;" and they charge them, somewhat unjustly as it must appear, with " framing to themselves a way whereby to live a more easy life than by labour." " How busy is the man the world calls idle ! " The evil, as the citizens term it, seems to have increased ; for in 1694 the common council threatened the pedlers and petty chapmen with the terrors of the laws against rogues and sturdy beggars, the least penalty being whipping, whether for male or female. The reason for this terrible denunciation is very candidly put : the citizens and shop- keepers are greatly hindered and prejudiced in their trades by the hawkers and pedlers. Such denunciations as these had little share in putting down the itinerant traders. They continued to flourish, because society required them ; and they vanished from our view when society re- quired them no longer. In the middle of the last century they were fairly established as rivals to the shopkeepers. Dr. Johnson, than whom no man knew London better, thus writes in the ' Adventurer : ' " The attention of a new- coiner is generally first struck by the multiplicity of cries that stun him in the streets, and the variety of merchandise and manufactures which the shopkeepers expose on every hand." The shopkeepers have now ruined the itinerants not by putting them down by fiery penalties, but by the competition amongst themselves to have every article at hand, for every man's use, which shall be better and cheaper than the wares of the itinerant. CHAP. XXV. ITINERANT TRADERS. 409 A curious parallel might be carried out between the iti- nerant occupations which the progress of society has im- perfectly suspended, and those which even the most ad- vanced civilization is compelled to retain. For example, the water-carrier is gone. It is impossible that London can ever again see a man bent beneath the weight of a yoke and two enormous pails, vociferating " New Miver Water." But the cry of " Milk" or the rattle of the milk-pail, will never cease to be heard in our streets. There can be no reservoirs of milk, no pipes through which,. it flows into the houses. The more extensive the great capital becomes, the more active must be the individual exertion to carry about this article of food. The old cry was, " Any milk here?" and it was sometimes mingled with the sound of " Fresh cheese and cream;" and it then passed into "Milk, maids, below;" and it was then shortened into "Milk below;" and was finally corrupted into " Mio" which some wag inter- preted into mi-eau demi-eau half-water. But it must still be cried, whatever be the cry. The supply of milk to the metropolis is perhaps one of the most beautiful combina- tions of industry we have. The days are long since past when Finsbury had its pleasant groves, and Clerkenwell was a village, and there were green pastures in Holboin, and St. Pancras boasted only a little church standing in meadows, and St. Martin's was literally in the fields. Slowly but surely does the baked clay stride over the clover and the buttercup ; and yet every family in London may be supplied with milk by eight o'clock every morning at their own doors. Where do the cows abide ? They are congre- gated in wondrous masses in the suburbs ; and though in spring-time they go out to pasture in the fields which lie under the Hampstead and Highgate hills, or in the vales of Dulwich and Sydenham, and there crop'the tender blade, " When proud pied April, dress'd in all his trim, Hath put a spirit of youth in everything," yet for the rest of the year the coarse grass is carted to their stalls, or they devour what the breweries and distil- 410 ITINERANT TRADERS. CHAP. XXV. leries cannot extract from the grain-harvest. Long before "the unfolding star wakes up the shepherd" are the London cows milked ; and the great wholesale venders of the com- modity bear it in carts to every part of the town, and distri- bute it to hundreds of itinerants, who are waiting like the water-carriers at the old conduits. But the wholesale vend- ers have ceased to depend upon the suburban cows. The railways bring milk in enormous cans to every station. The suburb has extended, practically, to a circle of fifty miles instead of five. It is evident that a perishable com- modity which every one requires at a given hour must be rapidly distributed. The distribution has lost its romance. Misson, in his ' Travels,' published at the beginning of the last century, tell us of the May-games of " the pretty young- country girls that serve the town with milk." Alas ! the May-games and pretty young country girls have both departed, and a milkwoman has become a very unpoetical personage. There are few indeed of milkwomen who remain. So it is with most of the occupations that associate London with the country. The cry of " Water-cresses " used to be heard from some barefoot nymph of the brook, who at sun- rise had dipped her feet into the bubbling runnel, to carry the green luxury to the citizens' breakfast-tables. Water- cresses are now grown like cabbages in gardens. Of the street trades that are past and forgotten, the small- coal man was one of the most remarkable. He tells a tale of a city with few fires ; for who could now imagine a man earning a living by bawling " Small coals" from door to door, without any supply but that in the sack which he carries on his shoulders ? His cry was, however, a rival with " Wood to cleave" In a metropolis full of haberdashers, large and small, what chance would an aged man now have with his flattering solicitation of "Pretty pins, pretty women ? " He who carries a barrel on his back, with a measure and funnel at his side, bawling " Fine writing-ink" is wanted neither by clerks nor authors. There is a grocer's shop at every turn ; and who therefore needs him who salutes us with "Lily-white vinegar?" The history of "cries" is a CHAP. XXV. ITINERANT TRADERS. 411 history of social changes. The working trades, as well as- the venders of things that can be bought in every street, are now banished from our thoroughfares. " Old chairs to mend " still salutes us in some retired suburb ; and we still see the kiiife-grinde r's wheel; but who vociferates ''Any work for John Cooper? "or " A brass pot or an iron pot to mend? " The- trades are gone to those who pay scot and lot. Pots to mend. There are some occupations of the streets, however,. which remain essentially the same, though the foini be somewhat varied. The sellers of food are of course amongst these. "Hot peascods," and hot sheep's-feet, are not popular delicacies, as in the time of Lydgate. " Hot wardens" and " Hot codlings" are not the "cries" which invite us to taste of stewed pears and baked apples. But we have still apples hissing over a charcoal fiie; and potatoes steaming in a shining apparatus, with savoury salt-butter to put between the " fiuit" when it is cut; and chestnuts roasted ; and greasy sausages, redolent of onions and marjoram; and crisp brown flounders ; and the mutton- pie-man, with his " toss for a penny." Kice-milk, furmety, barley-broth, and saloop are no longer in request. The greatest improvement of London in our own day has been 412 ITINERANT TRADERS. CHAP. XXV. the establishment of coffee-shops, where the artisan may take his breakfast with comfort, and even with luxury; where a good breakfast may be had for three-pence ; where no intoxicating liquors are sold ; and where the newspapers and the best periodical works may be regularly found. If we lament over the general decay of the itinerant traders their uncertain gains, their privations from con- stant exposure, their want of home comforts, their tempta- tion to drive their children into the streets to make more sales we lament over what is an inevitable consequence of the general progress of society. Can we correct these evils by saying that the profits of the itinerant traders ought to be raised ? Their low condition is a necessary consequence of their carrying on a system of industry which is at variance with the general system of civilization. They may have their uses in districts with a scattered population, because they bring articles of consumption to the door of the consumer. But in densely populated districts they must inevitably be superseded by the shopkeepers. They carry on their in- dustry by a series of individual efforts, which are interfered with by numerous chances and accidents. We are told that the class is extending yearly. But it cannot extend profitably. In many cases it assumes only another form of mendicity. It is a precarious occupation. It can count upon no regular returns. Its gains, such as they are, are like all other uncertain gains the impulse to occasional profligacy in connection with habitual misery. The coster- mongers, according to Mr. Mayhew, are drunkards and gamblers, living without religion or the family ties. Their children are wholly uneducated. These are brought up to assist very early in obtaining their precarious living ; and they cleave to a wandering in place of a settled life. Dissociated, thus, from all regular industry, they become the outcasts of the people ; and go on swelling the number of those who, in France, are called "the dangerous classes." All classes are dangerous in whom there is none of that self-respect which goes along with domestic comfort with sobriety, with cleanliness, with a taste for some pursuit CHAP. XXV. CONTRAST OF ORGANIZED INDUSTRY. 413 that has a tincture of the intellectual. How is such a class to be dealt with ? The adult are almost past hope ; the young, taken early enough, may be trained into something better. But the very last thing that society has to do is to encourage, by any forced and unnatural process, the acces- sion of numbers to the body, always deriving new compe- titors from the unfortunate and the idle who have fallen out of regular occupation. Those who learn the necessity of being provident cease to be costermongers. With some, indeed, the profitable sale of an article in the streets may be the first step in an accumulation which will lead to the more profitable sale of an article at a stall, and thence, onward, to the possession of a shop. There have been such instances ; and we knew of a remarkable one in a boy who went to a tea-dealer, and said if he could be trusted with one pound of tea he could make a living. He was trusted. In time he wanted no credit, and was a regular and valuable customer to his first patron. He passed out of the itinerant life into the settled ; and ultimately became a flourishing shopkeeper. In striking contrast to the various fonns of unskilled labour and irregular trading which we have noticed, may be mentioned an industry which in London has a very per- fect organization. In Clerkenwell and the neighbouring parish of Saint Luke's, there are sixteen hundred watch- makers. These are not the artisans whom we see as we pass along the streets of the metropolis, and of the pro- vincial towns, sitting in front of the shop-window dili- gently repairing or putting together the works of a watch, by the light of day or of a brilliant lamp, each with a magnifying glass pressed under his eyebrow. Nor are they the workers in metal who manufacture the movements, that is, the wheels of a watch, for these chiefly dwell in Lancashire. The London watchmakers, thus closely packed in a district which is small compared with the whole area of the metropolis, are those who put the movements toge- ther, and supply all the delicate parts of the mechanism, such as the spring and the escapement. They provide also 414 . ORGANIZED INDUSTRY. CHAP. XXV. the case and the dial-plate. The degree of the skilled labour employed in these several branches necessarily varies, according to the quality of the instrument to be produced, from the ordinary metal watch to the most luxu- rious repeater. With some exceptions, the artisans do not work in large factories. They are subdivided according to their respective qualities, amongst small establishments, where a master has several men receiving wages for per- forming one particular branch of work ; or the artisan him- self, in his own home, may be an escapement-maker, a spring- maker, a fusee-maker, a maker of hands, an enarneller, an -engine-turner, a jewelled pivot-hole maker. All this beau- tiful subdivision of employments has been found necessary for the perfection and the cheapness of watches. The capi- talist, who is essentially the watch manufacturer, organizes all these departments of industry. English watches, by this economical system of production, keep their place against the competition of foreign watches ; of which we imported, in 1853, fifty-four thousand. The skilled workmen, in all the various subdivisions of the manufacture, are well paid, and take their due rank amongst the great and increasing body of intelligent mechanics. Within these few years American clocks have been ex- tensively sold in this country. People would once have thought that the business of clockmaking in England would be at an end, if it had been predicted that in 1853 we should import, as we did, a hundred and forty thousand clocks. The goodness and cheapness of American clocks have carried a clock into many a house, that without them would have been deficient of this instrument for keeping all industry in accordance with the extraordinary punctuality which has been forced upon us as an indispensable quality. We owe the general exercise of this virtue to the post and the rail- roads. No one needs now to be told, as our grandfathers were somewhat roughly told by the sun-dial in the Temple, " Be gone about thy business." The American clocks are produced by factory labour. In Connecticut two hundred and fifty men are employed in one establishment, in making CHAP. XXV. COMMUNISM. 415 six hundred clocks a-day, the price varying from one dollar to ten, and the average price being three dollars. Each clock passes through sixty different hands; but in every stage the most scientific applications of machinery chiefly produce the excellence and the cheapness. Between the factory-labour required to produce an Ame- rican clock, which labour affords ample wages to every labourer employed, and ample security to the capitalist that he will not establish expensive machinery, and pay constant wages, without profit, between this factory-labour, and the 4 'garret-labour" which produces a rickety Pembroke-table, with bad materials and imperfect tools, at the lowest rate of profit to the workman, the difference really consists in the application or non-application of capital. The theorist then steps in at this stage of the evidence, and says that the garret-labourer ought to be provided with capital. His theory resolves itself into what is called Communism ; and it seeks to be maintained by exhibiting the aggregate evils of Competition. The theorist does not deny that competition has produced an immense development of wealth ; but he affirms that the result of the struggle has been to fill the hands that were already too full, and to take away from the hands that were already nearly empty. He maintains that the labouring classes have been more and more declining with every increase of the general riches; and that, at every step in which industry advances, the proportion of the wretched to the great mass of the population as certainly increases. We shall not attempt to reply to these decla- mations by any counter declamation. We point to the great body of facts contained in this volume; and upon them rests our unqualified assertion that the doctrines of Communism are wholly untrue, and are opposed to the whole body of evidence that enables us to judge of the average condition of the people, past and present. To remedy the evils which it alleges to exist, Communism proposes associations working upon a common capital, and dividing the produce of all the labour of the community. To make a whole country labour in this way, by a confisca- 416 STATE ORGANIZATION OF LABOUR. CHAP. XXV. tion of all the capital of the country, presents, necessarily, great difficulties ; and therefore there must be smaller com- munities in particular localities. But these communities must produce everything within themselves, or they must deal with other communities. There would be competition in these communistic dealings between one community and another. Even if the whole world were to become com- munistic, there would be competition between one nation and another nation. The main objection to the theory of Communism (the ob- jections to its application are obvious enough) is that, in proposing to have a common fund for all labour, it wars against the natural principle of individuality, and destroj's the efficiency of production, by confounding the distinctions between the various degrees of skill and industry. If it give higher rewards to skilled labour than to unskilled, it does exactly what is done in the present state of society. If the unskilled and idle were the larger number under a sys- tem of Communism, they would soon degrade the skilled and the industrious to their own level. If they were the less powerful number, the skilled and the industrious would soon bring back the law of competition, and drive the un- skilled and idle to the minimum point of subsistence. But Communism, to meet such difficulties, sets up a sys- tem of expedients. It invokes the aid of the State as a regulating power; and, having maintained that the State is bound to find employ for every one willing to labour, however inefficiently, and to supply the necessary funds for all labour, it makes the State the great healer of differences, e^en as Mr. Sergeant Thorpe held that the State could pro- vide " a salve for every sore." Let us take one example of the mode in which Communism proposes to discharge its functions. There is a little treatise, in Italian, by Count Pecchio, on the Application of the General Laws of Production to Lite- rary and Scientific Publications. It considers that literary labour is governed by the same laws as any other labour ; that the capital of a man of letters consists in his stores of CHAP. XXV. SOCIAL PUBLISHING ESTABLISHMENT. 417 acquired knowledge ; that, as there is no equality in literary talent as there is a great range of talent between the most skilled and the least skilled literary labourer so the rewards of literary industry are proportionally unequal; that the wages of literary labour depend upon the usual conditions of demand and supply ; that, under a system of competition in an open market, the literary labourer is more sure of his reward, however large may be the number of labourers, than in the old days of patronage for the few ; that State encouragement is not necessary to the establishment of a high and enduring literature ; that when literary industry is free - -when it is neither fostered by bounties, nor cramped and annihilated by prohibitions when there is neither patron- age nor censorship it is in the most favourable condition for its prosperous development. These principles, applied to literary production, are in many respects applicable to all production. Every one has heard of the ' Organization of Labour,' which some philosophers of a neighbouring country were attempting to transfer from the theories of the closet to the experiments of the workshop, in 1848. It is not our object, as we have said, to discuss whether a vast system of national co-operation for universal production be a wise thing or a practical thing. Let us state only a small part of that system, as exhibited in the * Organisation du Travail,' by Monsieur Louis Blanc, the second part of which is devoted to the question of literary property. All the beneficial results contemplated by the organizers of a universal social industry are to be obtained for literary industry, according to this system, by the foundation of a Social Publishing Establishment, which is thus described : It would be a literary manufacture belonging to the State without being subject to the State. This institution would govern itself, and divide amongst its members the profits obtained by the common labour. According to its original laws, which would be laid down by the State, the Social Publishing Establishment would not have to purchase any author's right in his works. The price of books would 2 E 418 SOCIAL PUBLISHING ESTABLISHMENT. CHAP. XXV. be determined by the State, with a view to the utmost pos- sible cheapness ; all the expenses of the impression would be at the charge of the Social Establishment. A committee of enlightened men, chosen and remunerated by the Social Establishment, would receive the works. The writers whose works the Social Establishment would publish would ac- quire, in exchange for their rights as authors, which they would wholly resign, the right of exclusively competing for national recompenses. There would be, in the annual national budget, a fund provided for such recompense, for authors in every sphere of thought. Every time the first work of an author was deemed worthy of a national recom- pense, a premium would also be given to the Social Esta- blishment, that it might be indemnified for the possible loss which it had sustained in giving its support to youthful talent. Every year the representatives of the people would name, for every branch of intellectual exertion, a citizen who would examine the works issuing from the social presses. He would have a whole year to examine them thoroughly ; to read all the criticisms upon them ; to study the influence which they had produced upon society ; to interrogate public opinion through its organs, and not judge by the blind multitude of buyers ; and finally to pre- pare a report. The national rewards would then be dis- tributed in the most solemn manner. We thus state briefly but fairly the plan which is to put an end to that literary competition which it is proclaimed " commences in dishonour and ends in misery ;" which is to destroy bad books and encourage good ; which, it is affirmed, is "no longer to make the publication of good books depend upon the speculators, who have rarely any other intelligence than a commercial aptitude, but upon compe- tent men, whom it interests in the success of every useful and commendable work." We truly believe that this would be a practicable plan provided two conditions were secured, which at present seem to be left out of the account. They are simply these that there should be unlimited funds at hand for the purpose of rewarding authors, and unlimited CHAP. XXV. PRACTICAL CO-OPERATIOX. 419 wisdom and honesty in their administrators. But unhappily, as we understand it, the entire plan is a confusion of prin- ciple rejecting much that is valuable in competition, and adopting much that is positively harmful in co-operation. Those authors who are profiting largely by the competitive system are to give up their profits to the common fund, which is to support those who could not make profits under that system. This is the social workshop notion of equality. But in the literary workshop the State is to step in and restore the ancient condition of inequality, by exclusive rewards to the most deserving of the competitors. It is a practical satire upon the whole scheme of a new social arrangement. With a sincere disposition to speak favourably of very plan for promoting the welfare of our fellow-creatures which is not founded upon a destruction of the security of property, we have no desire to maintain that all the denouncers of competition are weak and dangerous advisers of the great body of working people. We believe that the entire system of any proposed co-operation that would set aside competi- tion is a delusion, out of which, indeed, some small good might be slowly and painfully evoked, but which can never mainly affect the great workings of individual industry, whilst its futile attempts may relax the springs of all just and honest action. But we do not in any degree seek to oppose any practical form of co-operation that is built upon the natural and inevitable workings of capital, tending to produce in a manner not less favourable for production than a system entirely competitive. We are inclined to believe, with many just and prudent men, that some forms of co- operation for production might not be disadvantageously introduced amongst us ; and that, as very extensive legisla- tive inquiries in recent years have been directed to this point, it is our duty not to omit these considerations from our general view of the productive forces of modern society. 2 E 2 120 CO-OPERATION NOT MODERN. CHAP. XXVI. CHAPTEE XXVI. Co-operation not a modern theory Prize-money a co-operative principle Limited liability ; opinions concerning Alleged improvidence of working men Consumption of stimulants and necessaries Associations for expenditure Duties of the employed Duties of employers Industry and war. CO-OPERATION is not a new thing in England. Two centuries and a half ago, Shakspere became a considerable land- proprietor at Stratford, ont of his share of the profits of a co-operative enterprise ; and, in the same profession of a player, Allen acquired a sufficient fortune to found Dulwich College. In those companies of players of the Elizabethan era there were shareholders with varying interests some having a capital in the building and properties of a theatre, combined with their other capital of histrionic skill. The joint proprietors lived in great harmony together, and treated each other with affection as friends and fellows. The co-operation which many earnest thinkers hold to be desirable to establish in England is precisely this sort of united industry. They have no desire to attempt the intro- duction of a fallacious equality, such as communism pro- poses ; but they ask to have the legal power of combining men in common labours, according to their respective degrees and qualifications. He who brought to the under- taking capital only should receive a share of profits pro- portioned to its value and hazard the wear and tear of implements the deterioration of stock. He who brought great administrative skill, and took the higher office of trust and responsibility, should also receive a share in pro- portion to the rarity of these qualities ; and so of those who were skilful and trustworthy in a lesser degi ee. The great CHAP. XXVI. PRIZE-MONEY. 421. body of the workers would receive their due shares under a scale founded upon experience. But capitalist, inventor, manager, and labourers, all would have some ultimate interest in reference to profits. It really at first sight seems difficult to understand how any experiments in this direction should be considered of a levelling tendency. There is a great experiment going forward at this day the greatest that the world has seen for forty years. The State has embarked an enormous capital in war. It has built and victualled ships organized and clothed armies furnished all the munitions of offence against a dangerous enemy. The State engages to pay wages according to the several degrees of the military labourers, from the field-marshal to the drummer, from the admiral to the cabin-boy. But it also says, you shall all receive a share of profits you shall all have prize- money, according also to your several degrees. Would the State make this arrangement unless it had found by expe- rience that the hope of some reward beyond a payment in wages was a stimulus to enterprise ? The expectation of gain would, not stand in the place of the higher motive of duty; but it would not deaden that motive, or lessen, in the slightest degree, the nobler impulses of courage and dis- cretion. Nor would the proportionate arrangement which gave a higher share to the admiral than to the shipboy "on the high and giddy mast," be any cause of com- plaint to the great body of sharers. If the admiral were to appropriate all the prize, then, indeed, the entire crew would complain. They might exaggerate the value of the prize, and thus be partially rash and unwise in denouncing the spirit in which it was appropriated by one who, in his degree, had not worked more zealously than his crew, though with far higher responsibility. But they would not be wholly ignorant or unjust. The decision of a prize-court would satisfy them; but they would not be satisfied by being told that, as they were the humblest of the co-ope- rators in navigation or battle, the prize should go only to the highest. 422 LIMITED LIABILITY. CHAP. XXVI. Tliis, if we understand the case rightly, is something like the complaint of those who seek to improve their con- dition upon some principle of partnership between labour and capital. They desire to do this by having the existing law of partnership altered, so as to admit of a limited lia- bility, as in the United States and other countries. We have a large folio book before us * in which this question is fully considered by a number of able and experienced per- sons. The Commissioners themselves say that "they have been much embarrassed by the great contrariety of opinion entertained by those who have favoured them with answers to their questions." We presume that, in consequence of this embarrassment, they think it best to let matters remain as they are. " The opinions of foreign countries," they say, " preponderate in favour of limited liability." But, then, foreign countries suggest " that the circumstances of the trading interest in the United Kingdom may give it a very different operation here." They think that "there is a sufficient amount of capital for the purposes of trade," and that any new direction of that amount " might induce men to embark in speculative adventures." They have also con- sidered the subject with regard to the possible benefit to individuals, "by enabling them to obtain capital, and establish themselves in business, by the aid of persons in- curring a limited liability only." They indeed think that "men of probity and talent would derive benefit from such a system ;" but they " are of opinion that such benefit has been greatly overrated." Finally they think there will be benefit "to the managing or limited partners," but that the system would be " injurious to traders bearing the bur- den of unlimited liability." It seems strange that an elabo- rate inquiry should have produced such feeble results ; and that the labours of the Commissioners look very like those of many others who pursue the occupation " Of dropping buckets into empty wells, And growing old in drawing nothing up." On the other hand, in looking through the Appendix to * ' First Report of Mercantile Law Commission,' 1854, CHAP. XXVI. LIMITED LIABILITY. 423 this Report, which contains the answers to the Commis- sioners' questions, we find many words which capitalists and working men will perfectly understand, and which, we think, they will not readily forget. Let us bring together a few of the opinions upon one branch of the subject which more particularly concerns us in this chapter the benefit that limited liability would confer on individuals of pro- bity and talent, having a natural and not unreasonable desire to be to a certain extent independent ; and who feel that their zeal and their experience ought not always to be measured by wages only. We will first see what the law of partnership is, as it exists in this country ; and we derive the clearest informa- tion from the testimony of Mr. G. K. Rickards, Counsel to the Speaker of the House of Commons, and Professor of Political Economy in the University of Oxford. He says that the legislature, although it will grant limited liability to a large class of undertakings, such as railways, gas and water works, refuses that privilege to all companies of a trading character. It imposes unlimited liability on all members of non-incorporated companies. " This law," says Mr. Rickards, " differs from those which govern the relation of partnership in France, Italy, Germany, Holland, Belgium, and the United States. It is also at variance with the re- cognised principles of political economy. By fettering the employment of capital it tends to produce a periodical con- gestion of it, which is only relieved from time to time by the waste of vast sums in bubble speculations. As the law restricts the use of capital, it consequently limits the demand for labour. It increases the gulf, in this country too wide, between capitalist and labourer, by withholding those faci- lities, which a wise policy would multiply, for uniting and identifying the two classes of producers. The association of small capitals is precisely that object which, with a view to raise the condition of the working classes, to extend the market for labour, and thereby increase the national wealth, a prudent government should favour and encourage." There is a sort of partnership very common in France, 424 OPINIONS CONCERNING CHAP. XXVI. called partnership en commandite. It is designed to facilitate the union between skill and capital, by enabling moneyed persons to assist with funds, at a denned risk, the responsi- ble managers of an undertaking. " It is, in fact," says Mr. Rickards, " if we analyse its nature, a system for enabling persons to advance capital to a partnership at a rate of interest contingent upon the profits of the undertaking. Such a contract the law of England does not permit, except on the terms of full partnership liability. If the rate of interest be fixed, the lender is deemed a mere creditor ; but if it be dependent on the profits, he is a partner, subject to all the consequences of that relation." The two doors that are open in other countries for the admission of trust and skill to a just and honourable union with capital are thus, we see, closely barred in this country. What is risked by the existence of the law, and what might be gained by its modification, are clearly put by Mr. J. M. Ludlow, an eminent barrister: "The example of those strikes which have been first agitating and then deso- lating the country for the last half-year '(1853) is surely most instructive on this head. It cannot be doubted that, from the energies of the working classes having been hitherto directed, it may be said, to the sole economic object of high wages, both the best paid and most prudent workmen have often been dragged, willingly or unwillingly, into these conflicts, of which some at least of the most bene- volent employers have in like manner had to bear the brunt. But suppose a power given to the working men, by a relaxation of the laws of partnership, to invest their savings as c&mmandite partners in their employer's concern, how different might have been the result ! Whenever an employer had really deserved the confidence of his work- people, all the most industrious amongst them might have grown bound up as c&mmandite partners with the interests of the establishment, having no longer for their object the raising of their own wages, but the prosperity of that busi- ness in the profits of which they would have a share able, on the one hand, as receivers .of wages, to counsel the em- CHAP. XXVI. LIMITED LIABILITY. 425 ployer, their managing partner, as to any wise advance; able, on the other, as receivers of profits, to dissuade their fellow-workers from any injurious demand." Let us hear the opinion of a practical merchant Mr. George Warde Norman, a Director of the Bank of England : " The extreme difficulty, if not the legal impossibility in England, of giving clerks or workmen a salary proportioned to the profits of an employer, without making them partners in the widest sense, I consider a vast practical evil. It seems to me that the system thus checked is of so highly beneficial a nature, that it merits every encouragement that the law can give it. .It would at once enable an earnest wish on the part of a portion of the operative class to be met in a way most satisfactory to their feelings." Let us also hear another merchant, Mr. G. Robertson of Liverpool, upon a point which appears to have entirely escaped the Adew of those who think there is nothing to dread but any change of their own trading advantages under the present system. Mr. Robertson says, " I think such a change in the law highly expedient at this juncture, when we have to run a race, and a very heavily weighted one too, with an enterprising and ingenious country like the United States. With their great advantages for the free combina- tion and distribution of capital, let them only accumulate enough of it, and procure an adequate supply of labour both which wants they are in a fair way of supplying very speedily and they will beat us hollow in the march of trade and industry. We cannot at this moment afford to throw away the smallest advantage ; and yet here we are voluntarily tying up our hands by a law which prevents small capitals from combining for the promotion of indus- trial schemes which consigns the inventor to neglect and penury which depresses the energies of many a young man striving to advance in life and which keeps the work- man dissatisfied and improvident, because few of his class can ever hope to attain a position in which their industry can go hand-in-hand with the advance of science and the accumulation of capital, each reaping their fair share of the 426 LIMITED LIABILITY. CHAP. XXVI. increased produce which their combined energies have created." Lastly, let us mark what is said by Mr. Robert Lowe, M.P. : *' In enterprises of a partly philanthropic nature, such as the erection of dwellings for the poor, or any other attempt which is meant at once to be charitable and self-supporting, the aid of limited liability would be invaluable. I do not approve of patents ; but I have no doubt that many a useful invention has gone down to the grave in the brain of its inventor, for want of the funds which the dread of partner- ship liabilities has withheld." One of the respondents to the questions of the mercantile commission has expressed some opinions which cannot be set aside, however unpalatable to many. Mr. Howell (of the firm of Ellis, Everington, and Co.) says " The pro- tection of property is one of the grand functions of all governments, and property may exist in personal endow- ments as well as in accumulated wealth. The free use of either ought to be equally secured to the possessor. We know with what subtle skill owners of material property in modern times have organized their schemes for its preserva- tion how they have fenced it round by multifarious modes of insurance I claim a clear stage for the artist and labourer ; I demand that their rights be equally respected . . . Hucksterers rather than artists gain the prizes of life. There are some splendid exceptions ; but, generally speaking, the hardest and coarsest-minded men acquire the largest for- tunes." It is painful to see, in this Report of the Mercan- tile Commission, how completely one or two millimnaires ignore any interests but the protection of capital. There are bankers, bank directors, eminent merchants, barristers, commisioners of bankrupts, who hold out the hand of friend- ship to the humble and the struggling ; but the cold indif- ference of others is too marked. It is far more painful than the most active enmity. Limited liability is "a socialist idea," says one. The "lower or middle classes should invest their accumulations in savings-banks," says another. The earnings of " the lower orders," says a third, " assuming CHAP. XXVI. ALLEGED IMPROVIDENCE. 427 the expenses of maintaining families, are too slender to admit of savings to any material extent." This disposition to narrow human interests to the capitalist-point of view appears to us quite as dangerous as the disposition to look upon society from the labour-point of view only. Why is it that the great capitalist so often sees in Political Econo- my the laws merely which regard the production of wealth, and not those which regard the production of happiness ? They are the same laws, rightly considered. Why is it that a capitalist may be a rapacious bill-discounter, and not the less beheld "a good man" by the capitalist class ? Why is it that there is a constant preachment that the working class are improvident and incapable of accumulation, and at the same time an instinctive fear that the corporals of indus- try the superintendents, the managers, the bookkeepers, the skilled workmen of large establishments should rise out of their condition into partners, and thus lead the whole working class to a greater elevation? Why does even a benevolent and most thinking writer, belonging to the class of capitalists, after citing what are called "facts" relating to improvident expenditure, say, " The increase of the income of the working men would be, as respects a very large number of them, a positive evil, unless preceded by improvement in their tastes and habits " ? * This almost general denunciation of the working-classes is wholly incon- sistent with the "facts" that display the wonderful "im- provement in their tastes and habits" of all those who have participated in the general advance of society by improved modes of production of by far the majority. It is wholly opposed to the " facts" which show that drunkenness and other forms of profligacy are now, for the most part, con- fined to the inferior classes of labourers, and especially to those, such as the itinerant class, who are in a constant anta- gonism with all the modes of industry that admit of organiz- ation. Any one who has really made himself acquainted with the habits of the great body of artisans must see that, during the last ten years especially, their "tastes and * C. Movison, ' Labour and Capital/ p. 44. 428 CONSUMPTION OF STIMULANTS CHAP. XXVI. habits" have received the most decided " improvement;" and we attribute this as much to education as to the real "increase of their income," by the cheapening of commo- dities produced by the abolition of restrictive laws, by appli- cations of science, and by a wiser direction of taxation. Amongst the few " facts" which Mr. Morison has cited to show " the general preference of immediate gratification to saving amongst the great mass of the people," he gives the following summary, extracted from Mr. Vanderkiste's ' Notes and Narratives of a jSix Years' Mission, principally among the Dens of London.' The London Directory of 1848 shows, according to this statist, 2,500 bakers, 990 butteimen and cheesemongers, 1,700 butchers, 3,000 grocers and tea dealers, 900 established dairy-keepers, 400 fishmongers, 1 ,300 greengrocers and fruiterers, making a total of 10,970 shopkeepers supplying the chief necessaries of life. But to exhibit the degradation of the working-classes it is held that there are in London 11,000 public-houses. Now, let us put the "facts" in another way, from another authority, the Census of 1851. There are in London the following persons engaged in these occu- pations : 11, 580 bakers, 2,715 buttermen and cheesemongers, 9,586 butchers, 7,853 grocers, 3,938 milksellers, 2, .5 71 fishmongers, 3,885 greengrocers, 1,997 dealers in other animal food, making a total of 44,105 persons engaged in supplying the chief necessaries of life. But the whole number of persons engaged in every degree of service in connection with CHAP. XXVI. AND NECESSARIES. 429 drunkenness the licensed victuallers, and all other dealers in liquors, and their servants amounted to 11,608 about one-fourth of those engaged in supplying necessaries. Let us test " the general preference of immediate gratification," in the same manner, in Manchester and Salfprd. The census of occupations gives us there a total of 4192 persons engaged in supplying necessaries. The whole number of persons engaged in supplying stimulants licensed victuallers, beer- shop keepers, and wine and spirit dealers, and their servants was 1108. Our late excellent friend Mr. Porter estimated that "the self-imposed taxation of the working-classes," in rum, gin, and whisky beer and porter tobacco and snuff, amounted to 53,411,615?. annually. The customs and excise returns no doubt furnished the data for this estimate. It is a large one. It amounts to nearly two-fifths of the estimate of the annual payment for wages. But, as an evidence of general improvement, we may state that, if the total home consump- tion of British and foreign spirits was nearly one gallon per head annually, of the population of the United Kingdom, from 1841 to 1851, it was a gallon and one-tenth in the pre- vious decennial period ; that in the latter decennial period the consumption of sugar had increased from sixteen Ibs. per head to twenty ; of tea, from one Ib. and a third per head to one Ib. and two-thirds ; and of coffee, from less than one Ib. to one Ib. and a quarter. Leaving Ireland out of the account, the consumption of sugar in Great Britain in 1853 was seven million cwts., being at the rate of thirty- seven Ibs. per head ; of tea, fifty-one million Ibs., or two Ibs. and a half per head; and of coffee, thirty-seven million Ibs., being one Ib. and three-quarters per head. The returns of excise show us that there was less wine con- sumed in 18 50 than in 1840 ; and, compared with the popula- tion, the five decennial averages of the century exhibit a decrease from about a third of a gallon per head in 1810, to about a quarter of a gallon per head in 1850. The wine-duties were much reduced in the middle of the half-century, and the proportionate consumption was then slightly increased ; 430 CONSUMPTION OF STIMULANTS. CHAP. XXVI. but it decreased again steadily to the end of the half-centmy. Those who have observed the general habits of the middle classes, from the beginning of the century to the present time, know that the use of wine at their tables has univer- sally increased; but they also know that the practice of drinking to excess is, in a great degree, at an end. It is impossible to draw a strict line of demarcation between what are called the middle-classes, whose habits are so much improved, and what are called the working-classes, who, according to some authorities, are irreclaimable from drunkenness. Those who have observed the habits of all the superior classes of artisans, know that they are reformed as much as their employers ; that as a body they drink con- siderably less than at the beginning of the half-century, or the middle of the half-century ; and that, if the consumption of spirits have not declined in proportion to the consumption of wine, there has been a positive decrease amongst most educated mechanics. Greatly do we lament that there has been a proportionate increase amongst that large body whom education has not reached whom society leaves to abide, grovelling in their dirt and ignorance, in miserable courts and alleys, where the sun rarely shines through clouds of smoke upon the cellar and garret where they pantingly breathe. The greatest practical teacher that ever lived, whose wisdom is eternal, tells us of "the good seed," that " some fell among thorns, and the thorns sprung up with it and choked it." The great social labour required in our day is to prevent the thorns choking the wheat. We are accustomed to see the thorns rampant amongst the wheat, and to fancy that the whole field is one of thorns. It is the close neighbourhood of the idle and the industrious, the profligate and the prudent, the criminal and Ihe honest, that makes us confound the two classes, and assail the good and the bad with random legislation and vain homilies. "We assist the thorns in choking the wheat when we oppose any of the modes by which the field of profitable cultivation can be extended. "We produce suspicions and heart-burnings when we constantly regard a great body of men, acting CHAP. XXVI. ASSOCIATIONS FOR EXPENDITURE. 431 under very different motives and circumstances, as "the improvident working-class." Whatever may be the prejudices of some of the propertied classes to a system of limited liability as directed to pur- poses of production, even they can scarcely make an objec- tion to the same principle directed to purposes of consump- tion and expenditure. The law, as it stands, interferes with associations for great public improvements for better lodging-houses for baths for libraries for places of ra- tional recreation. It is not so much to be desired that the capital of the propertied classes should be devoted to such objects, as that the workers should unite to accomplish many useful enterprises, which are generally described as works of benevolence that will not "pay," but which it is politic to set about. The consequence is, that little has been done compared with the amount which is required to be done. We can see no end to the benefits of association for consumption ; of association for making the comforts of life accessible to the largest number by economical expendi- ture ; of association for placing the conveniences and even refinements of the rich within the reach of the poor; of association for cultivating the understanding and elevating the taste ; of association for raising the whole moral and intellectual condition of all the people of the land. Take the single case of dwellings. It is in the power of a very- large number of the receivers of wages to co-operate for the purpose of obtaining better houses than those in which they now dwell. Something is done by " Building Societies," but little in comparison with the exigencies of the popula- tion. The same may be said of the operations of various admirable societies in the metropolis.* We believe that nothing effectually can be done till the receivers of wages set about this great duty themselves. A year or two of close economy, founded upon habitual self-restraint, would soon work a mighty change in the aspect of our great towns. Association for such an object amongst the great body of artisans would provide them with an accumulation in the * See diopter xv. p. 199. 432 DUTIES OF THE EMPLOYED. CHAP. XXVI. form of decency, cleanliness, health, longevity, which would carry them quickly forward to other accumulations, which would soon dissipate the accusation, partly true and partly false, that they are incapable of accumulation. However earnest and thinking men may differ as to the degree in which improvement, moral, intellectual, and physical, has reached the masses of our population, it is a prayer in which all good men unite, that the condition of the working-classes may be more and more improved, that their outward circumstances may be made better and better. But those who labour the steadiest, and the most zealously, in the endeavour to realize this hope, feel that the day of this amelioration is far removed by perpetual contests between the employed and the employers, which impede production and diminish the funds for the support of labour. They know that every improvement in the arts of life improves also the condition of the humblest working- man in the land ; and they also know that every successive improvement has a tendency to lessen the inequality in the distribution of wealth. But, if the condition of the working- men of these kingdoms is to be permanently improved, if they are to obtain a full share of the blessings which science and industry confer upon mankind, they must win those blessings by their own moral elevation. They cannot snatch them by violence ; they cannot accomplish them suddenly by clamour; they cannot overthrow a thousand opposing circumstances to a great and rapid rise of wages ; they must win them by peaceful and steady exertion. "When the working-men of this country shall feel, as the larger portion of them already feel, that knowledge is power, they will next set about to see how that power shall be exercised. The first tyranny which that power must hold in check is the tyranny of evil habits those habits which, looking only to the present hour, at one time plunge some into all the thoughtless extravagance which belongs to a state of high wages at another, throw them prostrate before their em- ployers, in all the misery and degradation which accompany CHAP. XXVI. DUTIES OF EMPLOYERS. 433 a state of low wages, without a provision for that state. It is for them, and for them alone, to equalize the two conditions. The changes of trade, in a highly commercial country like this, must be incessant. It is for the workmen themselves to put a "governor" on the commercial machine, as far as they are concerned ; in a season of prosperity to accumulate the power of capital in a season of adversity to use effectively, because temperately, that power which they have won for themselves. But there are other duties to be performed, in another direction the duties of employers. That duty does not consist in making servants partners, if the employers have no inclination thereto. It does not consist in attempting any private benevolence, by raising the rate of wages paid by their own firms beyond the average rate, which attempt would be ruinous to both classes interested. But it does consist in exercising the means within their power to benefit the condition of all in their employ, by cultivating every sympathy with them that may be the real expression of a community of interests. Such sympathy is manifested when large firms devote a considerable portion of their profits to the education of the young persons employed in their factories; when they cultivate the intelligent plea- sures of their adult workpeople ; when, in a word, they make the factory system a beautiful instrument for rais- ing the whole body of their labourers into a real equality, in all the moral and intellectual conditions of our nature, with themselves, the captains of industry. When these duties are attended to, there may be common misfor- tunes ; demand may fall off; the machinery, whether of steam or of mind, may be imperfectly in action ; the season of adversity may bring discomfort. But it will not bring animosity. There may be deep anxieties on one part, and severe privations on the other, but there will not be hatreds and jealousies, the cold neglect, and the grim despair. And when we speak of a season of adversity, let us not shut our eyes to the possibility that such a season may come upon us " like a thief in the night." After forty 2 F 434 INDUSTRY AND WAR. CHAP. XXVI. years of peace, we are again at war. During that peace, a very large amount of the wondrous development of indus- try which we have noticed in this volume has taken place ; and, at the same time, the amount of the public burthens has been decreased one-half as compared Avith the increase of the population. Whatever stimulus a condition of war may afford to particular employments of capital, there can be no doubt that it is one of the worst uses of those accumu- lations which are usually devoted to the general wages of labour, and that Mr. Senior truly says, " War is mischievous to every class in the community ; but to none is it such a curse as to the labourer." In the conduct of the war with Russia, the improved intelligence of the English and French governments has determined that it shall not be such an obstacle to general commerce as the last great war. It is something, too, that the enormous advances of science must render the contest much shorter, by rendering all the ma- chinery of war more effectual. The scientific resources of our country in this war, as compared with those of the wars of the eighteenth century, are as superior as those resources were to the appliances of the wars of the fourteenth cen- tury, with their bows and battering-rams. These resources have been displayed, not only in great armaments, but in the manifold exertions to repair the waste of disease and slaughter, and to uphold the combatants in all the efficiency of health and comfort. Never, in the history of man, did the productive forces of a nation so instantly concentrate themselves upon the supply of urgent and sudden neces- sities. The clothing of an army is buried in the ocean below the cliffs on which that army stands. New stores immediately supply the loss. The furs of Hudson's Bay are transported by hundreds of thousands to the Crimea, not for luxury, but for the stern necessity of a northern winter. Preserved meats form the cargoes of succouring ships. Wooden houses are sent out by thousands to give a better shelter than tents. The waterproof fabrics take the place of the capes and sheets that the rain penetrates. Mighty guns, such as modern artillery never saw, are being pre- CHAP. XXVI. INDUSTRY AND WAR. 435 pared by the steam hammers. Great bodies of workmen, who have been labouring for years upon our internal rail- ways, go forth to make siege-work easier by iron roads. The electric telegraph is carried from the camp to the shore, and from the shore to the fleet. And while all these la- bours, resulting from the forces that have made us wealthy, spring up as if by magic, arises that sublimer power without which all this wealth would have been as nothing the power of a great national will the admiration of heroism; the sorrow for suffering ; the determination to relieve and mitigate calamity by every generous exertion of private duty. It is a spectacle that excites a feeling far higher than national pride, the thanksgiving to God that forty years of advancing prosperity have not made us enervate, selfish, indifferent that we have secured something in those years beyond money-capital, important as that is to us that we have an exhaustless capital in our dedication to honour and our country. .But the harmonious industry of Peace must with us be kept constantly in activity to maintain the discordant waste of War. Mr. Jeffrey truly said, speaking of James Watt in 1819, " It was our improved steam-engine that fought the battles of Europe, and exalted and sustained, through the late tremendous contest, the political greatness of our land." It is the advance of the same scientific power that, in its almost marvellous organization, still using the words of the same eloquent writer, " has completed the dominion of mind over the most refractory qualities of matter." Tb maintain this dominion to carry it forward in new forms of productiveness prepared by new applications of ingenuity to bear her civilizing commerce upon the mighty wings of the same steam into the most remote regions of the earth is the labour which Great Britain has long been perform- ing in peaceful security. Another nation, or rather the ruler of another nation, has long been silently at work, to bring the discoveries and improvements of science to bear upon one sole object the preparation for aggressive war. We cannot doubt which of the applications of knowledge is destined to 2 G 436 INDUSTRY AND WAR. CHAP. XXVI. a final triumph. Exactly in the same degree as the calm courage of intelligence, as displayed in the British soldier, may be contrasted in its victories over the fierceness of ignorance, as displayed in the Russian soldier, so may the assured triumph of the higher civilization over the lower be safely predicted. That victory will not be easily won, but it must be won, or we shall go backward in the race we have so long been running, and if backward, to coming ages of material decay, and general suffering, and moral degradation. Enough that we know our duty. " We know the arduous strife, the eternal laws, To which the triumph of all good is given : High sacrifice, and labour without pause, Even to the death." Statue of Watt. LONDON: PRINTED BY w. CLOWES AND SONS, STAHFOKD STKEET, AND CHARING CROSS. PREPARING- FOR PUBLICATION". THE POPULAR HISTORY OF ENGLAND ; AN ILLUSTRATED HISTORY ' OF SOCIETY AND GOVERNMENT, FROM THE EARLIEST PERIOD TO OUR OWN TIMES. BY CHARLES KNIGHT. DR. JOHNSON, in conversation with Dr. Robertson, is related to have said, "I have heard Henry's ' History of Britain' well spoken of; I am told it is carried on in separate divisions, as the civil, the military, the religious history. I wish much to have one branch well done, and that is, the history of manners, of common life." To this Robertson answered, " Henry should have applied his attention to that alone, which is enough for any man." Dr. Robertson, it may be thought, did not take a philosophical view of this subject. " The history of manners, of common life," is essentially dependent upon " the civil, the military, the religious history," of a nation. Public events act upon the condition of a people, and the condition of a people interchangeably acts upon public events. Properly to trace the essential connection between Government and People, we must look at history from a new point of view. We must put the people in the foreground. We must study events and institutions, not as abstract facts, but as influencing the condition of a whole com- munity. We must not only chronicle the acts of sovereigns and states- men, but we must " read their history in a nation's eyes." We must construct THE HISTORY OF THE PEOPLE. The People, if we understand the term rightly, means no distinct class or section of the population. Goldsmith called " the middle order of mankind " the " People," and those below them the " Rabble." We have outlived all this. A century of thought and action has widened and deepened the foundations of the State. This People, then, want to find, in the history of their country, something more than a series of annals, either of policy or war. In connection with a faithful narrative of public affairs, they want to learn their own history how they have [Continued. POPULAR HISTORY OF ENGLAND continued. grown out of slavery, out of feudal wrong, out of regal despotism, into constitutional liberty, and the position of the greatest estate of the realm. They want to know how the course of events, the principles of government, and the progress of our social institutions, have affected their condition. They want to know how the discoveries of science, and the refinements of art and literature, have raised them in the moral and social scale. They want to know how the great work of the elevation of industry has progressed from age to age in past times, and from year to year in our times. They want to learn the history of the English Home, as well as the history of the English State. The extent and proportions of the POPULAR HISTORY OF ENGLAND are measured and denned by the object which the writer proposes, namely, to produce an original history, of moderate dimensions, not exceeding three large octavo volumes which may become a library book for all classes; especially suited for those who have completed their elementary education, and are readers for instruction combined with amusement. The illustrative engravings, which will not be less than twelve hundred, will have the same object as the text to furnish a systematic view of the condition of society in the various eras that mark our advance in civilization, as well as to draw attention to the most graphic events, and the most important persons. Now Beady. 2 vok. fcap. 8vo., 10s., ONCE UPON A TIME. BY CHARLES KNIGHT. Fcap. 8vo., 5s., THE OLD PRINTER AND THE MODERN PRESS. BY CHARLES KNIGHT. ALBEMARLJ? STREET, Loxnox. January, ISoo, MR MURRAY'S GENERAL LIST OF WORKS. ABBOTT'S (REV. J.) Philip Musgrave ; or, Memoirs of a Church of England Missionary in the North American Colonies. Post 8vo. 2s. Gd. ABERCROMBIE'S (JOHN, M.D.) Enquiries concerning the Intel- lectual Powers and the Investigation of Truth. Fourteenth Edition. Fcap. 8vo. 6s. 6d. Philosophy of the Moral Feelings. Tenth Edition. Fcap. 8vo. 4s. Pathological and Practical Researches on the Diseases of the Stomach, the Intestinal Canal, the Liver, and other Viscera of the Abdomen. Third Edition. Fcap. 8vo. 6s. ACLAND'S (REV. CHARLES) Popular Account of the Manners and Customs of India, Illustrated with Numerous Anecdotes. PostSvo. 2s.6d. ADDISON'S WORKS. A Few Edition, with a New Life and Notes. By Rev. WHITWELL EMVIN. 4 Yols. 8vo. In Preparation. AESCHYLUS. (The Agamemnon and Choephorre.) A New Edition of the Text, with Notes, Critical, Explanatory, and Philological, for the Use of Students. By Rev. W. PEILB, D.D. Second Edition. 2 Yols. 8vo. 9s. each. AESOP'S FABLES. A New Version, chiefly from the Original Greek. By Rev. THOMAS JAMES, M.A. Illustrated with 100 Woodcuts, by JOHN TENNIEL. 2lst Edition. Post 8vo. 2s. 6d. AGRICULTURAL (THE) JOURNAL. Published (half-yearly) by the Royal Agricultural Society of England. 8vo. 105. AMBER-WITCH (THE). The most interesting Trial for Witch- craft ever known. Edited by Dr. MEINHOLD. Translated from the German by LADY DUFF GORDOX. Post 8vo. 2s. 6d. ARABIAN NIGHTS. A New Translation. By E. W. LANE. With Explanatory Notes. 600 Woodcuts. Medium 8vo. 21s. ARISTOPHANES. The Birds and the Clouds. Translated from SUVERN by W. R. HAMILTON, F.R.S. 2 Vols. Post 8vo. 9s. ARTHUR'S (LITTLE) History of England. By LADY CALLCOTT. Eighteenth Edition. Woodcuts. ISmo. AUNT IDA'S Walks and Talks ; a Story Book for Children. By a LADY. Woodcuts. 16mo. 5s. B LIST OF WORKS ADMIRALTY PUBLICATIONS ; Issued by direction of the Lords Commissioners of the Admiralty: 1. A MANUAL OF SCIENTIFIC ENQUIRY, for the Use of Officers in H.M. Navy and Travellers in General. By Various Hands. Edited by SIR J. F. HERSCHEL, Bart. Second Edition. Post 8vo. 10s. Qd. 2. AIRY'S ASTRONOMICAL OBSERVATIONS MADE AT GBEEXWICH. 1836 to 1847. Royal 4to. 50s. each. 3. APPENDIX TO THE ASTRONOMICAL OBSERVATIONS. 1836, 1837, 1842, 8s. each ; and 1847, 14s. Royal 4to. CONTENTS. 1836. Bessel's Refraction Tables. Tables for converting Errors of R.A. and N.P.D. into Errors of Longitude and Ecliptic P.D. 1837. Logarithms of Sines and Cosines to every Ten Seconds of Time. Table for converting Sidereal into Mean Solar Time. 1842. Catalogue of 1439 Stars. 1847. Twelve Years' Catalogue of Stars. 4. MAGNETICAL AND METEOROLOGICAL OBSERVA- TIONS. 1840 to 1847. Royal 4to. 50s. each. ASTRONOMICAL, MAGNETICAL, AND METEOROLO- GICAL OBSERVATIONS, 1848 to 1853. Royal 4to. 50s. each. 6. REDUCTION OF THE OBSERVATIONS OF PLANETS. 1750 to 18:0. Royal 4to. 50s. 7. - LUNAR OBSERVATIONS. 1750 to 1830. 2 Vols. Royal 4to. 50s. each. 8. BERNOULLI'S SEXCENTENARY TABLE. London, 1779. 4to. 5s. 9. BESSEL'S AUXILIARY TABLES FOR HIS METHOD OF CLEAR- ING LUNAR DISTANCES. 8vo. 10 . FUNDAMENT A ASTRONOMIES: Regwmonti ,1818. Folio. 60*. 11. BIRD'S METHOD OF CONSTRUCTING MURAL QUADRANTS. London, 1768. 4to. 2s. Qd. 12. METHOD OF DIVIDING ASTRONOMICAL INSTRU- MENTS. London, 1767. 4to. 2s. 6d. 13. COOK, KING, AND BAYLY'S ASTRONOMICAL OBSERVATIONS. London, 1782. 4to. 21s. 14. EIFFE'S ACCOUNT OF IMPROVEMENTS IN CHRONOMETERS. 4to. 2s. 15. ENCKE'S BERLINER JAHRBUCH, for 1830. Berlin, 1828. Svo. 9s. 16. GROOMBRIDGE'S CATALOGUE OF CIRCUMPOLAR STARS. 4to. 10s. 17. HARRISON'S PRINCIPLES OF HIS TIME-KEEPER. PLATES. 1767. 4to. 5s. 18. BUTTON'S TABLES OF THE PRODUCTS AND POWERS OF NUMBERS. 1781. Folio. 7s. Qd. 19. LAX'S TABLES FOR FINDING THE LATITUDE AND LONGI- TUDE. 1821. Svo. 10s. 20. LUNAR OBSERVATIONS at GREENWICH. 1783 to 1819. Compared with the Tables, 1821. 4to. 7s. Qd. 21. DISTANCES of the MOON'S CENTRE from the PLANETS. 1822, 3.--.; 1823, 4s. Qd. 1824 to 1835, 8vo. 4s. each. 22. MASKELYNE'S ACCOUNT OF THE GOING OF HARRISON'S WATCH. 1767. 4to. 2s. Qd. 23. MAYER'S THEORIA LUN^E JUXTA SYSTEMA NEWTONI- ANUM. 4to. 2s. Qd. 24. TABULJE MOTUUM SOLI8 ET LUN^E. 1770. 4 to. 5s. 25. ASTRONOMICAL OBSERVATIONS MADE AT GOT- TINGEN, from 1756 to 1761. 1826. Folio. Is . Gd. PUBLISHED BY MR. MURRAY. ADMIRALTY PUBLICATIONS continued. 26. NAUTICAL ALMANACS, from 1767 to 1859. 8vo. 2s. Qd. each. 27. - SELECTIONS FROM THE ADDITIONS up to 1812. 8vo. 5s, 1834-54. 8vo. 5s. 28. - SUPPLEMENTS, 1828 to 1833, 1837 and 1838. 8vo. 2s. each. 29. TABLE requisite to be used with the N.A. 1781. 8vo. 5s. 30. POND'S ASTRONOMICAL OBSERVATIONS. 1811 to 1835. 4to. 21s. each. 31. RAMSDEN'S ENGINE for DIVIDING MATHEMATICAL INSTRUMENTS. 4to. 5s. 32. ENGINE for DIVIDING STRAIGHT LINES. 4to. 5s. 33. SABINE'S PENDULUM EXPERIMENTS to DETERMINE THE FIGURE OF THE EARTH. 1825. 4to. 40s. 34. SHEPHERD'S TABLES for CORRECTING LUNAR DISTANCES. 1772 Royal 4to. 21s. 35. TABLES, GENERAL, of the MOON'S DISTANCE from the SUN, and 10 STARS. 1787. Folio. 5s. Qd. 36. TAYLOR'S SEXAGESIMAL TABLE. 1780. 4to. 15s. 37. - TABLES OF LOGARITHMS. 4to. SI. 38. TIARK'S ASTRONOMICAL OBSERVATIONS for the LONGITUDE of MADEIRA. 1822. 4to. 5s. 39. CHRONOMETRICAL OBSERVATIONS for DIFFERENCES of LONGITUDE between DOVER, PORTSMOUTH, and FALMOUTH. 1823. 4to. 5s. 40. VENUS and JUPITER : OBSERVATIONS of, compared with the TABLES. London, 1822. 4to. 2s. 41. WALES' AND BAYLY'S ASTRONOMICAL OBSERVATIONS. 1777. 4to. 21s. 42. WALES' REDUCTION OF ASTRONOMICAL OBSERVATIONS MADE IN THE SOUTHERN HEMISPHERE. 17641771. 1788. 4t6. Wa. 6d. AUSTIN'S (SARAH) Fragments from German Prose Writers. Translated, with Biographical Notes. Post 8vo. 10s. Translation of Ranke's Political and Ecclesiastical History of the Popes of Rome. Third Edition. 2 Vols. 8vo. 24s. BABBAGE'S (CHARLES) Economy of Machinery and Manufactures. Fourth Edition. Fcap. 8vo. 6s. Table of the Logarithms of the Natural Numbers from 1 to 108000. Fourth Edition. Royal 8vo. 6s. Ninth Bridgewater Treatise. Second Edition. 8vo. 9s. Gd. - Reflections on the Decline of Science in England, and on some of its Causes. 4to. 15s. - Exposition of 1851 ; or, Views of the Industry, the Science, and the Government of England. Second Edition. 8vo. 7s. 6d. BANKES' (RIGHT HON. G.) STORY OF CORPE CASTLE, with documents relating to the Time of the Civil Wars, &c. Woodcuts. Post 8vo. 10s. 6d. BASSOMPIERRE'S Memoirs of his Embassy to the Court of England in 1626. Translated, with Notes. 8vo. 9s. 6d. o 2 LIST OF WORKS BARROWS (SiR JOHN) Autobiographical Memoir, including Reflections, Observations, and Reminiscences at Home and Abroad. From Early Life to Advanced Age. Portrait. 8vo. 16. Voyages of Discover}' and Research within the Arctic Regions, from 1818 to the present time, in search of a North- West Passage: with Two Attempts to reach the North Pole. Abridged and arranged from the Official Narratives. 8vo. 15s. - (JOHN) Naval Worthies of Queen Elizabeth's Reign, their Gallant Deeds, Daring Adventures, and Services in the infant state of the British Navy. Svo. 14,s. Life and Voyages of Sir Francis Drake. With nume- rous Original Letters. Post 8vo. 2s. 6d. BEES AND FLOWERS. Two Essays, reprinted from the " Quar- terly Review." Fcap. 8vo. Is. each. BELL'S (SiR CHARLES) Anatomy and Philosophy of Expression as connected with the Fine Arts. Fourth Edition. Plates. Impl. Svo. 21*. Mechanism and Vital Endowments of the Hand as evincing Design. The Bridgewater Treatise. Sixth Edition. Wood- cuts. Post Svo. Is. 6d. BENEDICT'S (JULES) Sketch of the Life and Works of Felix Mendelssohn Bartholdy. Second Edition. Svo. 2s. Qd. BERTHA'S Journal during a Visit to her Uncle in England. Containing a Variety of Interesting and Instructive Information. Seventh Edition. Woodcuts. 12mo. 7s. 6d. The Heiress in her Minority ; or, the Progress of Character. By Author of " BERTHA'S JOURNAL." 2 Vols. 12mo. BIRCH'S (SAMUEL) History of Ancient Pottery : Egyptian, Asiatic, Greek, Roman, Etruscan, and Celtic. With Illustrations. Svo. (Nearly Heady.) BIRT'S (W. R.) Hurricane Guide. Being an Attempt to connect the Rotatory Gale, or Revolving Storm, with Atmospheric Waves. With Circles on Cards. Post Svo. 3s. BIOSCOPE (THE) ; or, the Dial of Life explained. By GRANVILLE PENN. Second Edition. With Plate. 12mo. 12s. BLAINE (ROBERTON) on the Laws of Artistic Copyright and their Defects, for Artists, Engravers, Printsellers, &c. Svo. 3s. 6d. BLUNT'S (REV. J. J.) Undesigned Coincidences in the Writings of the Old and New Testament, an Argument of their Veracity : with an Appendix containing Undesigned Coincidences between the Gospels, Acts, and Josephus. Fourth Edition. Svo. 9s. History of the Church in the Three First Centuries. Svo. Principles for the proper understanding of the Mosaic Writings, stated and applied, together with an Incidental Argument for the truth of the Resurrection of our Lord. Being the HULSEAH LECTUBKS for 1832. Post 8vo. 6s. 6d. BOOK OF COMMON PRAYER. With 1000 Illustrations of Borders, Initials, and Woodcut Vignettes. A New Edition. Medium Svo. 21s. cloth, 31s. Qd. calf, or 42s. morocco. BOSWELL'S (JAMES) Life of Dr. Samuel Johnson. Including the Tour to the Hebrides, with Notes by Sir W. SCOTT. Edited by the Right Hon. JOHN WILSOS CROKEB. Third Edition. Portraits. One Volume Roral Svo. 15s. PUBLISHED BY MR. MURRAY. BORROWS (GEORGE) Lavengro ; The Scholar The Gipsy and the Priest. Portrait. 3 Vols. Post 8vo. 30. - Bible in Spain; or the Journeys, Adventures, and Imprisonments of an Englishman in an Attempt to circulate the Scriptures in the Peninsula. 3 Vols. Post Svo. 27s., or Cheap Edition, 16mo, 6s. Zincali, or the Gipsies of Spain ; their Manners, Customs, Religion, and Language. 2 Vols. Post Svo. 18s., or Cheap Edition, 16mo. 6*. BRAY'S (MRS.) Life of Thomas Stothard, R.A. With Personal Reminiscences. Illustrated with Portrait and 60 Woodcuts of his chief works. 4to. 21s. BREWSTER'S (SiR DAVID) Martyrs of Science, or the Lives of Galileo, Tycho Brahe, and Kepler. Second Edition. Fcap. Svo. 4s. 6d. - More Worlds than One. The Creed of the Philo- sopher and the Hope of the Christian. Seventh Thousand. Post Svo. 6s. BRITISH CLASSICS. A New Series of Standard English Authors, printed from the most correct text, and edited with elucidatory notes. Published in demy Svo. Volumes, 7s. Qd. each. Already Published. GOLDSMITH'S WORKS. Edited by PETER CUNNINGHAM, F.S.A. Vignettes. 4 Vols. GIBBON'S DECLINE AND FALL OF THE ROMAN EMPIRE. Edited by WILLIAM SMITH, LL.D. Portrait and Maps. 8 Vols. JOHNSON'S LIVES OF THE ENGLISH POETS. Edited with Noter, By PETER CUNNINGHAM, F.S.A. LORD BYRON'S POETICAL WORKS. Edited, with Notes. 6 vols. In Preparation. WORKS OF ALEXANDER POPE. Edited by the RIGHT HON. JOHK WILSON CHOKER. Assisted by PETER CUNNINGHAM, F. S. A. WORKS OF DRYDEN. Edited with Notes. HUME'S HISTORY OF ENGLAND. A new Edition, carefully revised throughout, with Notes and Commentations, to correct his errors and supply his deficiencies. WORKS OF SWIFT. Edited with Notes. WORKS OF JOSEPH ADDISON. Edited, with Notes. BRITISH ASSOCIATION REPORTS. Svo. York and Oxford, 1831-32, 13s. Gd. Cambridge, 1833, 12.?. Edinburgh, 183 1, 15s. Dublin, 1835, 13s. Gd. Bristol, 1836, 12s. Liverpool, 1837, 16s. 6d. Newcastle. 1838,15s. Birmingham, 1839, 13s. 6d. Glasgow, 1840, 15s. Plymouth, 1841, 13s. 6d. Manchester, 1842, 10s. Qd. Cork, 1843, 12s. York, 1844. 20s. Cambridge. 1845, 12s. Southampton, 1846, 15s. Oxford, 1847, 18,^. Swansea, 1848, 9s. Birmingham, 1849, 10s. Edinburgh, 1850, 15s. Ipswich. 1851, 16s. Gd. Belfast, 1852, 15s. Hull, 1853, 10s. Qd. Liverpool, 1854, 18f . BROGDEN'S (REV. JAS.) Illustrations of the Liturgy and Ritual of the United Church of England and Ireland. Being Sermons and Discourses selected from the Works of eminent Divines of the 17th Century. 3 Vols. Post Svo. 27s. - Catholic Safeguards against the Errors, Corruption?, and Novelties of the Church of Rome. Being Sermons and Tracts selected from the Works of eminent Divines of the 17th Century. Second Edition . With Preface and Index. 3 Vols. Svo. 36s. BROOKE'S (SiR JAMES) Journals of Events in Borneo, including the Occupation of Labnau, and a Visit to the Celebes. Together with the Expedition of H.M.S. Iris. By CAPT. RODNEY MIJ.VDY, R.N. Plates. 2 Vols. Svo. 32*. LIST OF WORKS BROUGHTON'S (LORD) Journey through Albania and other Provinces of Turkey in Europe and Asia, to Constantinople, 1809 10. New Edition. Maps and Woodcuts. 2 Vols. 8vo. BUBBLES FROM THE BRUNNEN OF NASSAU. By an Old MAN. Sixth Edition. 16mo. 5s. BUNBURY'S (C. J. F.) Journal of a Residence at the Cape of Good Hope; with Excursions into the Interior, and Notes on the Natural History and Native Tribes of the Country. Woodcuts. Post 8vo. 9s. BUNYAN (JOHN) and Oliver Cromwell. Select Biographies. By ROBERT SOUTHEY. Post 8vo. 2s. Qd. BUONAPARTE'S (NAPOLEON) Confidential Correspondence with his Brother Joseph, sometime King of Spain. From the French. 2 vols.Svo. BURGHERSH'S (LORD) Memoir of the Operations of the Allied Armies under Prince Schwaszenberg and Marshal Blucher during the latter end of 181314. 8vo. 21s. _ Early Campaigns of the Duke of Wellington in Portugal and Spain. 8vo. 8s. 6d. BURN'S (LIEUT-COL.) French and English Dictionary of Naval and Military Technical Terms. Third Edition. Crown 8vo. 15s. BURNES' (SiR ALEXANDER) Journey to the City of Cabool. Second Edition. Plates. Svo. 18s. BURNS' (ROBERT) Life. By JOHN GIBSON LOCKHART. Fifth Edition. Fcap. Svo. 3s. BURR'S (G. D.) Instructions in Practical Surveying, Topogra- phical Plan Drawing, and on sketching ground without Instruments. Second Edition. Woodcuts. Post Svo. Is. 6d. BUXTON'S (SiR FOWELL) Memoirs. With Selections from his Correspondence. By his Son. F.ifth Edition. Svo. 16s. ; or, Popular Edition, Post Svo. 8s. 6d. BYRON'S (LORD) Life and Letters. By THOMAS MOORE. Plates. 6 Vols. Fcap. Svo. 18s. One Volume, royal Svo. 12s. Poetical Works. 6 Yols. Svo. 45s. or Plates. 10 Yols. Fcap. Svo. 30s. ______ - One Yolume, royal Svo. 12s. Pocket Edition. 8 Yols. 24mo. 20s. Or separately as follows: Childe Harold; Dramas, 2 Vols.; Tales and Poems ; Miscellanies, 2 Vols.; Beppo and Don Juan, 2 Vols. - Childe Harold's Pilgrimage. Illustrated Edition. "With 30 Vignettes. Crown Svo. 10s. 6cf, Beauties Poetry and Prose. Fcap. Svo. 3s. BUTTMAN'S LEXILOGUS ; or, a Critical Examination of the Meaning and Etymology of numerous Greek Words and Passages, intended principally for Homer and Hesiod. Translated, and edited, with Explanatory Notes and copious Indexes, by REV. J. K. FISHLAK.E. Third Edition. Svo. 14s. PUBLISHED BY MR. MURRAY. BUTTMAN'S Irregular Greek Verbs; With all the Tenses extant their Formation, Meaning, Usage, and accompanied by an Index. Translated, with Notes, by KEY. J. K. FISHLAKE. Second Edition. Svo. 7s. 6d. CALVIN'S (JOHN) Life. With Extracts from his Correspondence. By THOMAS H. DYEB. Portrait. Svo. 15s. CALLCOTT'S (LADY) Little Arthur's History of England. Eighteenth Edition. Woodcuts. 18mo. 2s. 6d. CAREME'S FRENCH COOKERY. Translated by W. HALL. Second Edition. Plates. Svo. 15s. CARMICHAEL'S (A. 1ST.) Greek Verbs. Their Formations, Irregularities, and Defects. Second Edition. Post Svo. 8s. 6ci. CARNARVON'S (LORD) Portugal, Gallicia, and the Basque Provinces. From Notes made during a Journey to those Countries Third Edition. Post Svo. 6s. CAMPBELL'S (LORD) Lives of the Lord Chancellors and Keepers of the Great Seal of England. From the Earliest Times to the Death of Lord Eldon in 1S38. Third Edition. 1 Vols. Svo. 102s. Lives of the Chief Justices of England. From the Norman Conquest to the Death of Lord Mansfield. 2 Vols. Svo. 30a. - Life of Lord Bacon. Reprinted from the Lives of the Chancellors. Fcap. Svo. 2s. (GEORGE) Modern India. A Sketch of the System of Civil Government. With some Account of the Natives and Native Institutions. Second Edition. Svo. 16s. - India as it may be. An Outline of a proposed Government and Policy. Svo. 12s. (Tiros.) Specimens of the British Poets. With Bio- graphical and Critical Notices, and an Essay on English Poetry. Third Edition. Portrait. Royal Svo. 15s. Short Lives of the British Poets. With an Essay on English Poetry. Post Svo. 5s. CASTLEREAGH (THE) DESPATCHES, from the commencement of the official career of the late Viscount Castlereagh to the close of his life. Edited by the MABQUIS OF LONDONDERRY. 12 Vols. Svo. 14s. each. CATHCART'S (SiR GEORGE) Commentaries on the War in Russia and Germany, 1812-13. Plans. Svo. 14s. CHARMED ROE (THE) ; or, The Story of the Little Brother and Sister. By OTTO SPECKTEB. Plates. 16mo. 5s. CLARENDON (LORD CHANCELLOR) ; Lives of his Friends and Contemporaries, illustrative of Portraits in his Gallery. By Lady THERESA LEWIS. Portraits. 3 Vols. Svo. 42s. CLARK (SiR JAMES) On the Sanative Influence of Climate, with an Account of the Best Places for Invalids in the South of Europe, &c. Fourttt Edition. Post Svo. 10s. Qd. CLAUSE WITZ'S (GENERAL CARL VON) Campaign of 1812, in Russia. Translated from the German by LORD ELLESMEBE. Map. Svo. 10s. Qd CLIVE'S (LORD) Life. By REV. G. R. GLEIO, M.A. Post Svo. 6 LIST OF WORKS COLERIDGE'S (SAMUEL TAYLOR) Table-Talk. Fourth Edition. Portrait. Fcap. 8vo. 6. - (HENRY NELSON) Introductions to the Study of the Greek Classic Poets. Third-edition. Fcap. 8vo. 5s. 6d. COLONIAL LIBRARY. [See Home and Colonial Library.] COMBER'S (DEAN) Friendly Advice to the Roman Catholics of England. By Rev. Dr. HOOK. Fcap. 8vo. 3s. COOKERY (DOMESTIC). Founded on Principles of Economy and Practical Knowledge, and adapted for Private Families. New Edition. Woodcuts. Fcap. 8vo. 5s. CRABBE'S (REV. GEORGE) Life and Letters. By his SON. Portrait. Fcap. 8vo. 3s., or with Plates, 5s. Life and Poetical Works. Plates. 8 Yols. Fcap. 8vo. 24s.; or, One Volume. Royal 8vo. 10s. 6d. CUMMING'S (R. GORDON) Five Years of a Hunter's Life in the Far Interior of South Africa. Fourth Edition. With Woodcuts. 2 Vols, Post 8vo. 12s. CURZON'S (HoN. ROBERT) Visits to the Monasteries of the Levant. Fourth Edition. Woodcuts. PostSvo. 15s. ARMENIA AND ERZEROUM. A Year on the Frontiers of Russia, Turkey, and Persia. Third Edition. Woodcuts. PostSvu. 7*. 6d. CUNNINGHAM'S (ALLAN) Life of Sir David Wilkie. With LSa Journals, and Critical Remarks on Works of Art. Portrait. 3 Yols. 8vo. 42s. Poems and Songs. Now first collected and arranged, with Biographical Notice. 24mo. 2s. 6d. - (CAPT. J. D.) History of the Sikhs. From the Origin of the Nation to the Battle of the Sutlej. Second Edition. Maps. 8vo. 15s. - (PETER) London Past and Present. A Hand- book to the Antiquities, Curiosities, Churches, Works of Art, Public Buildings, and Places connected with interesting and historical asso- ciations. Second Edition. PostSvo. 16s. Modern London. A complete Guide for Visitors to the Metropolis. Map. 16mo. 5s. Environs of London. Including a circle of 30 miles round St. Paul's. With Hints for Excursions by Rail, Road, and River. Post 8vo. In the Press. - Westminster Abbey. Its Art, Architecture, and Associations. Woodcuts. Fcap. 8vo. Is. Works of Oliver Goldsmith. A New Edition now first printed from the last editions which passed under the Author's owu eye. Vignettes. 4 vols. Svo. 30s. (Murray's British Classics.) Lives of Eminent English Poets. By SAMUEL JOHNSON, LL.D. A New Edition, with Notes. 3 vols. Svo. 22s. 6d (Murray's British Classics.) PUBLISHED BY MR. MURRAY. CHOKER'S (RIGHT HON. J. W.) Progressive Geography for Children. Fourth Edition. 18mo. 1*. Gd. - Stories for Children, Selected from the History of England. Fifteenth Edition. Woodcuts. 16mo. 2s. Gd. Boswell's Life of Johnson. Including the Tour to the Hebrides. Tkird Edition. Portraits. Royal 8vo. 15s. - LORD HERVEY'S Memoirs of the Reign of George the Second, from his Accession to the death of Queen Caroline. Edited with Notes. Second Edition. Portrait. 2 Vols. 8vo. 21*. - Essays on the Early French Revolution. Contributed to the "Quarterly Review." 8vo. History of the Guillotine. Woodcuts. Fcap. Svo. Is. CROMWELL (OLIVER) and John Bunyan. Select Biographic?. By ROBERT SOUTHEV. Post 8vo. 2s. Gd. DARWIN'S (CHARLES) Journal of Researches into the Natural History and Geology of the Countries visited during a Voyage round the World. Post Svo. 8s. Gd. DAVY'S (SiR HUMPHRY) Consolations in Travel; or, Last Days of a Philosopher. Fifth Edition. Woodcuts. Fcap. Svo. 6s. Salmonia ; or, Days of Fly Fishing. With some Account of the Habits of Fishes belonging to the genus Salmo. Fourth Edition. Woodcuts. Fcap. Svo. 6s. DENNIS' (GEORGE) Cities and Cemeteries of Etruria; or, the extant Local Remains of Etruscan Art. Plates. 2 Vols. Svo. 42. DE YEREUX'S (HoN. CAPT., R.N.) Lives and Letters of the Devereux Earls of Essex, in the Reigns of Elizabeth, James I., and Charles I., 15401646. Chiefly from unpublished documents. Portraits. 2 Vols. 8vo. 30s. DODGSON'S (Rsv. C.) Controversy of Faith; or, Advice to Candi- dates for Holy Orders. Containing an Analysis and Exposition of the Argument by which the Catholic Interpretation of the Baptismal Services is to be vindicated. 12mo. 3s. DOG-BREAKING ; the Most Expeditious, Certain, and Easy Method, whether great excellence or only mediocrity be required. By LiEUT.-CoL. HUTCHINSON. Second Edition. Woodcuts. Fcap. Svo. 7s. 6rf. DOMESTIC MODERN COOKERY. Founded on Principles of Economy and Practical Knowledge, and adapted for Private Families. New Edition. Woodcuts. Fcap. Svo. 5s. DOUGLAS'S (GENERAL SIR HOWARD) Treatise on the Theory and Practice of Gunnery. Fourth Edition. Plates. Svo. 21s. Treatise on the Principle and Construction of Military Bridges, and the Passage of Rivers in Military Operations. Third Edition. Plates. Svo. 21*. DRAKE'S (SiR FRANCIS) Life, Voyages, and Exploits, by Sea and Land. By JOHN BARROW. Third Edition. Post Svo. 2s. Gd. DRINKWATER'S (JOHN) History of the Siege of Gibraltar. 1779-1783. With a Description and Account of that Garrison from the Earliest Periods. Post Svo. 2s. Gd. ]0 LIST OF WORKS DRYDEN'S (JOHN) Works. A New Edition, based upon Sir Walter Scott's Edition, entirely revised. 8vo. In Preparation. DUDLEY'S (EARL OF) Letters to the late Bishop of Llandaff, Second Edition. Portrait. Svo. 10s. 6d. DURHAM'S (ADMIRAL SIR PHILIP) Naval Life and Services. By CAPT. ALEXANDER MUKKAY. 8vo. 5s. 6d. DYER'S (THOMAS H.) Life and Letters of John Calvin. Compiled from authentic Sources. Portrait. 8vo. 15s. EASTLAKE (SiR CHARLES) The Schools of Painting in Italy. From the Earliest times. From the German of KCGLEE. Edited, with Notes. Third Edition. Illustrated with 100 Engravings from the Old Masters. 2 Vols. PostSvo. 30*. Contributions to the Literature of the Fine Arts. 8vo. 12s. EDWARDS' (W. H.) Yoyage up the River Amazon, including a Visit to Para. Post Svo. 2s. 6d. EGERTON'S (How. CAPT. FRANCIS) Journal of a Winter's Tour in India; with a Visit to Nepaul. Woodcuts. 2 Vols. PostSvo. 18s. ELDON'S (LORD CHANCELLOR) Public and Private Life, with Selec- tions from his Correspondence and Diaries. By HORACE Twiss. Third Edition. Portrait. 2 Vols. Post Svo. 21s. ELLESMERE'S (LORD) Two Sieges of Vienna by the Turks. Translated from the German. Post Svo. 2s. Gd. - Second Campaign of Radetzky in Piedmont. The Defence of Temeswar and the Camp of the Ban. From the German. Post Svo. 6s. &d. Life and Character of the Duke of Wellington ; a Discourse. Second Edition. Fcap. Svo. Gd. Campaign of 1812 in Russia, from the German of. General Carl Von Clausewitz. Map. Svo. 10s. 6d. Pilgrimage, and other Poems. Illustrated. Crown 4to. ELPHINSTONE'S (HoN. MOUNTSTUART) History of India the Hindoo and Mahomedan Periods. Third Edition. Map. Svo. 18s. ELWIN'S (Rev. W.) Lives of Eminent British Poets. From Chaucer to Wordsworth. 4 Vols. Svo. In Preparation. ENGLAND (HISTORY OF) from the Peace of Utrecht to the Peace of Versailles, 171383. By LORD MAHON. Library Edition, 7 Vols., Svo, 93s. ; or, Popular Edition, 7 Vols. Post Svo, 4'2s. From the First Invasion by the Romans, down to the 14th year of Queen Victoria's Reign. By MRS. MARKHAM. 6Sth Thousand. Woodcuts. 12mo. 6s. As IT is : Social, Political, and Industrial, in the Middle of the 19th Century. By W. JOHNSTON. 2 Vols, PostSvo. 18s. and ' France under the House of Lancaster. With an Introductory View of the Early Reformation. Second Edition. Svo. 15s. PUBLISHED BY MR. MURRAY. 11 ERSKINE'S (CAPT., R.N.) Journal of a Cruise among the Islands of the Western Pacific, including the Fejees and others inhabited by the Polynesian Negro Races. Plates. 8vo. 16s. ESKIMAUX (THE) and English Vocabulary, for the use of Travellers in the Arctic liegions. 16mo. 3s. 6d. ESSAYS FROM "THE TIMES." Being a Selection from the LITERARY PAPEES which have appeared in that Journal. 7th Thousand. 2 vols. Fcap. 8vo. 8s. ENGLISHWOMAN IN RUSSIA: or, Impressions of Manners and Society during a Ten Years' Residence in that Country, fifth Thousand. Woodcuts. Post 8vo. 10s 6d. EXETER'S (BISHOP OF) Letters to the late Charles Butler, on the Theological parts of his Book of the Roman Catholic Church; with Remarks on certain Works of Dr. Milner and Dr. Lingard, and on some parts of the Evidence of Dr. Doyle. Second Edition. Svo. 16s. FAIRY RING (THE), A Collection of TALES and STORIES for Young Persons. From the German. By J. E. TAYLOR. Illustrated by RICHASO DOYLE. Second Edition. Fcap. Svo. FALKNER'S (FRED.) Muck Manual for the Use of Farmers. A Treatise on the Nature and Value of Manures. Second Edition, with a Glossary of Terms and an Index. Fcap. Svo. 5s. FAMILY RECEIPT-BOOK. A Collection of a Thousand Valuable and Useful Receipts. Fcap. Svo. 5s. 6d. FANCOURT'S (CoL.) History of Yucatan, from its Discovery to the Close of the 17th Century. With Map. Svo. 10s. 6d. FARINI'S (LuiGi CARLO) History of the Roman State, 1815-50. Translated from the Italian. By Right Hon. W. E. GLADSTONE. 4 Vols. Svo. 12s. each. FEATHERSTONHAUGH'S (G. W.) Tour through the Slave States of North America, from the River Potomac, to Texas and the Frontiers ef Mexico. Plates. 2 Vols. Svo. 26s. FELLOWS' (SiR CHARLES) Travels and Researches in Asia Minor, more particularly in the Province of Lycia. New Edition. Plates. Post Svo. 9s. FERGUSSON'S (JAMES) Palaces of Nineveh and Persepolis Restored: an Essay on Ancient Assyrian and Persian Architecture. With 45 Woodcuts. Svo. 16s. Handbook of Architecture. Being a Concise and Popular Account of the Different Styles prevailing in all Ages and Countries in the World. With a Description of the most remarkable Buildings. With 1000 Illustrations. 2 Vols. Svo. FERRIER'S (T. P.) Caravan Journeys in Persia, Affghanistan, Tnrkistan, and Beloochistan, with Descriptions of Meshed, Herat, Balk, and Candahar, and Sketches of the Nomade Tribes of Central Asia. Map. Svo. FEUERBACH'S Remarkable German Crimes and Trials. Trans- lated from the German by Lady DUFF GORDOX. Svo. 12?. 12 LIST OF WORKS FISHER'S (REV. GEORGE) Elements of Geometry, for the Use of Schools. Third Edition. ISmo. 3s. - First Principles of Algebra, for the Use of Schools. Third Edition. 18mo. 3s. FISHLAKE'S (REV. J. R.) Translation of Buttman's Lexilogus ; A Critical Examination of the Meaning and Etymology of numerous Greek Words and Passages, intended principally for Homer and Hesiod. With Explanatory Notes and Copious Indexes. Third Edition. 8vo. 14s. Translation of Buttman's Catalogue of Irregular Greek Verbs; with all the Tenses extant their Formation, Meaning, and Usage. With Explanatory Notes, and accompanied by an Index. Second Edition. 8vo. Is. 6d. FLOWER GARDEN" (THE). An Essay reprinted from the " Quarterly Review." Fcap. 8vo. Is. FORD'S (RICHARD) Handbook for Spain, Andalusia, Ronda, Valencia. Catalonia, Granada, Gallicia, Arragon, Navarre, &c. Third Edition. 2Vols. PostSvo. 30*. Gatherings from Spain. Post 8vo. 6s. FORSYTE'S (WILLIAM) Hortensius, or the Advocate : an Historical Essay on the Office and Duties of an Advocate. Post 8vo. 12s. History of Napoleon at St. Helena. From the Letters and Journals of SIR HUDSON LOWE. Portrait and Maps. 3 Vols. 8vo. 45s. FORTUNE'S (ROBERT) Narrative of Two Visits to China, between the years 1843-52, with full Descriptions of the Culture of the Tea Plant. Third Edition. Woodcuts. 2 Vols. PostSvo. 18s. FRANCE (HISTORY OF). From the Conquest by the Gauls to the Death of Louis Philippe. By Mrs. MARKHAM. 40th Thousand. Wood- cuts. 12mo. 6s. FRENCH (THE) in Algiers ; The Soldier of the Foreign Legion and the Prisoners of Abd-el-Kadir. Translated by Lady DUFF GORDON. Post 8vo. 2s. 6d. GALTON'S (FRANCIS) Art of Travel ; or, Hints on the Shifts and Contrivances available in Wild Countries. Second Edition. Wood- cuts. Post 8ro. GEOGRAPHICAL (THE) Journal. Published by the Royal Geo- graphical Society of London. 8vo. GERMANY (HISTORY OF). From the Invasion by Marius, to the present time. On the plan of Mrs. MARKUAM. 6th Thousand. Woodcuts. 12mo. 6s. GIBBON'S (EDWARD) Life and Correspondence. By DEAN MILMAN. Portrait. 8vo. 9s. Decline and Fall of the Roman Empire. A New Edition. Preceded by the Autobiography of GIBBON. Edited with Notes by Dr. WM. SMITH. Portrait and Maps. 8 Vols. 8vo. 60s. (Murray's British Classics.) GIFFARD'S (EDWARD) Deeds of Naval Daring; or, Anecdotes of the British Navy. 2 Vols. Fcap. 8vo. 5s. GISBORNE'S (THOMAS) Essays on Agriculture. TJiird Edition. PostSvo. 5s. PUBLISHED BY MR. MURRAY. 13 GLADSTONE'S (EIGHT HON. W. E.) Prayers arranged from the Liturgy for Family Use. Second Edition. 12mo. 2s. Qd. - History of the Roman State. Translated from the Italian of LUIGI CARLO FARIXI. 4 Vols. 8vo. 12s. each. GOLDSMITH'S (OLIVER) Works. A New Edition. Printed from the last editions revised by the Author. Edited by PETER CUNNING- HAM. Vignettes. 4 Vols. 8vo. 30s. (Murray's British Classics.) GLEIG'S (REV. G. R.) Campaigns of the British Army at Washing- ton and New Orleans. Post 8vo. 2*. Qd. Story of the Battle of Waterloo. Compiled from Public and Authentic Sources. Post 8vo. 5s. Narrative of Sir Robert Sale's Brigade in Afghanistan, with an Account of the Seizure and Defence of Jellalabad. Post 8vo. 2s. Qd. Life of Robert Lord Clive. Post 8vo. 5s. Life and Letters of General Sir Thomas Munro. Post Svo. 5s. GOOCH (ROBERT, M.D.), On the most Important Diseases peculiar to Women. Second Edition. Svo. 12s. GORDON'S (SiR ALEX. DUFF) Sketches of German Life, and Scenes from the War of Liberation. From the German. Post Svo. 6s. (LADY DUFF) Amber- Witch : the most interesting Trial for Witchcraft ever known. From the German. Post Svo. 2s. Qd. French in Algiers. 1. The Soldier of the Foreign Legion. 2. The Prisoners of Abd-el-Kadir. From the French. Post Svo. 2s. Qd. Remarkable German Crimes and Trials. From the German. Svo. 12s. GOSPEL STORIES FOR CHILDREN. An Attempt to render the Chief Events of the Life of Our Saviour intelligible and profitable. Second Edition. ISmo. 3s. Qd. GRANT'S (ASAHEL) Nestorians, or the Lost Tribes ; containing Evidence of their Identity, their Manners, Customs, andCeremonies ; with Sketches of Travel in Ancient Assyria, Armenia, and Mesopotamia . and Illustrations of Scripture Prophecy. Third Edition. Fcap. Svo. 6s ' GRENVILLE (THE) LETTERS AND DIARIES ; being the Public and Private Correspondence of George Grenville, his Friends and Con- temporaries, during a period of 30 years. Including his DIARY OF POLITICAL EVENTS while First Lord of the Treasury. Edited, with Notes, by W. J. SMITH. 4 Vols. Svo. 16s. each. GREEK GRAMMAR FOR SCHOOLS. Abridged from Matthise. By the BISHOP OF LONDON. Eighth Edition, revised by Rev. J. EDWARDS 12mo. 3s. Accidence for Schools. Abridged from Matthise. By the BISHOP OF LONDON. Fourth Edition, revised by Kev. J. EDWARDS. 12mo. 2s. GREY'S (Sin GEORGE) Polynesian Mythology, and Ancient Traditional History of the New Zealand Race. Woodcuts. Post Svo. 10s. Qd. 14 LIST OF WORKS GROTE'S (GEORGE) History of Greece. From the Earliest Period to the death of Alexander the Great. Maps. 12 vols. 8vo. 16s. each. The Work may be had as follows : VOLS. I. -II. Legendary Greece. Grecian History to the Reign of Peisistratns at Athens. VOLS. III. IV. History of Early Athens, and the Legislation of Solon. Grecian Colonies. View of the Contemporary Nations surrounding Greece. Grecian History down to the first Persian Invasion, and the Battle of Marathon. VOLS. V. VI. Persian War and Invasion of Greece hy Xerxes. Period hetween the Persian and the Peloponnesian Wars. Peloponnesian War down to the Expedition of the Athenians against Syracuse. VOLS. VII. VIII. The Peace of Nikias down to the Battle of Knidus. Socrates and the Sophists. VOLS. IX. XI. From the Restoration of the Democracy at Athens down to the Death of Philip of Macedon (B.C. 403359). VOL. XII. The end of the Reign of Alexander the Great. Review of Plato and Aristotle. GITIZOT (M.) on the Causes of the Success of the English Revolution of 1640-1688. 8vo. 6s. ; or Cheap Edition, 12mo, Is. Democracy in France. Sixth Edition. 8vo. 3s. 6d. GTJRWOOD'S (CoL.) Despatches of the Duke of Wellington during his various Campaigns. Compiled from Official and Authentic Docu- ments. New, enlarged, and complete Edition. 8 vols. 8vo. 21s. each. - Selections from the Wellington Despatches and General Orders. New Edition. 8vo. 18s. Speeches in Parliament of the Duke of Wellington. 2 Vols. 8vo. 42s. GUSTAVUS VAS A (History of), King of Sweden. With Extracts from his Correspondence. Portrait. 8vo. 10s. Qd. HALLAM'S (HENRY) Constitutional History of England, from the Accession 'of Henry the Seventh to the Death of George the Second. Seventh Edition. 3 Vols. Svo. 30s. History of Europe during the Middle Ages. Tenth Edition. 3 Vols. Svo. 30s. Introduction to the Literary History of Europe, during the 16th, 17th, and 18th Centuries. Fourth Edition. 3 Vols. Svo. 36s. Literary Essays and Characters. Selected from the last work. Fcap. Svo. 2s. - Historical Works. Popular Edition. 10 Yols. Post 8vo. 6s. each. HAMILTON'S (WALTER) Hindostan, Geographically, Statistically, and Historically. Map. 2 Vols. 4to. 94s. 6d. (W. J.) Eesearches in Asia Minor, Pontus, and Armenia; with some Account of the Antiquities and Geology of those Countries. Plates. 2 Vols. Svo. 38s. HAMPDEN'S (BISHOP) Essay on the Philosophical Evidence of Christianity, or the Credibility obtained to a Scripture Revelation from its Coincidence with the Facts of Nature. Svo. 9*. M. HARCOURT'S (EDWARD VERNON) Sketch of Madeira ; with Map and Plates. Post Svo. Ss. 6d. HART'S ARMY LIST. (Published Quarterly and Annually.) 8ro. PUBLISHED BY MR. MURRAY. 15 HAY'S (J. H. DRUMMOND) Western Barbary, its wild Tribes and savage Animals. Post 8vo. 2s. 6d. HAND-BOOK OP TRAVEL-TALK; or, Conversations in English, German, French, and Italian. 18mo. 3s. 6d. NORTH GERMANY HOLLAND, BELGIUM, and the Rhine to Switzerland. Map. Post Svo. 9s. SOUTH GERMANY Bavaria, Austria, Salzberg, the Austrian and Bavarian Alps, the Tyrol, and the Danube, from Ulm to the Black Sea. Map. Post 8vo. 9s. SWITZERLAND the Alps of Savoy, and Piedmont. Maps. Post Svo. 7s. 6d. PAINTING the German, Dutch, Spanish, and French Schools. From the German of KTTGLEK. Edited by SIB EDMUND HEAD. Woodcuts. 2 Vols. Post Svo. FRANCE Normandy, Brittany, the French Alps, the Rivers Loire, Seine, Rhone, and Garonne, Dauphine", Provence, and the Pyrenees. Maps. Post Svo. 9s. SPAIN Andalusia, Ronda, Granada, Valencia, Catalonia, Gallicia, Arragon, and Navarre. Maps. 2 Vols. Post Svo. 30s. - PORTUGAL, LISBON, &c. Map. Post Svo. NORTH ITALY Florence, Sardinia, Genoa, the Riviera, Venice, Lombardy, and Tuscany. Map. Post Svo. 2 Vols. 12s. CENTRAL ITALY SOUTH TUSCANY and the PAPAL SPATES. Map. Post Svo. 7s. ROME AND ITS ENVIRONS. Map. Post Svo. 7s. -- SOUTH ITALY Naples, Pompeii, Herculaneum, Vesuvius, &c. Map. Post Svo. PAINTING the Italian Schools. From the Ger- man of KUGLEB. Edited by Sir CHARLES EASTLAKE. Woodcuts. 2 Vols. Post Svo. 30s. PICTURE GALLERIES OF ITALY. Being a Dictionary of Italian Painters. Edited by RALPH WOBNUM. With a Chart. Post Svo. 6s. Kd. - GREECE the Ionian Islands, Albania, Thessaly, and Macedonia. Maps. Post Svo. 15s. TURKEY MALTA, ASIA MINOR, CONSTANTINOPLE, Armenia, Mesopotamia, &c. Maps. Post Svo. 10s. EGYPT Thebes, the Nile, Alexandria, Cairo, the Pyramids, Mount Sinai, &c. Map. Post Svo. 15s. DENMARK NORWAY and SWEDEN. Maps. Post Svo. 12s. RUSSIA THE BALTIC; AND FINLAND. Maps. Post Svo. 12s. - DEVON AND CORNWALL. Maps. Post Svo. 6*. LONDON, PAST AND PRESENT. Being an Alpha- betical Account of all the Antiquities, Curiosities, Churches, Works of Art, Places, and Streets connected with Interesting and Historical Associations. Post Svo. 16s. 16 LIST OF WORKS HAND-BOOK OF MODERN LONDON. A Guide to all objects of interest in the Metropolis. Map. 16mo. 5*. ENVIRONS OF LONDON. Including a Circle of 30 Miles round St. Paul's. Maps. Post 8vo. (Nearly ready.) BRITISH MUSEUM; ITS ANTIQUITIES AND SCULP- TURE. 300 Woodcuts. PostSvo. 7s. 6d. PICTURE GALLERIES IN AND NEAR LONDON. WESTMINSTER ABBEY its Art, Architecture; and Associations. Woodcuts. 16rao. - CHRONOLOGY & HISTORY, Alphabetically ar- ranged. 8vo. (Nearly Ready.) - (OFFICIAL). Giving an Historical Account of the Duties attached to the various Civil and Ecclesiastical Departments of the Government. Post 8vo. 6s. FAMILIAR QUOTATIONS. Chiefly from English Authors. A New Edition, with an Index. Fcap. 8vo. 5s. ARCHITECTURE. Being a Concise and Popular Account of the Different Styles prevailing in all Ages and Countries. By JAMES FERGUSSON. With 1000 Illustrations. 2 Vols. Svo. - CATHEDRALS OF ENGLAND. With Plates. Post Svo. In Preparation. OF THE ARTS OF^THE MIDDLE AGES AND Renaissance By M. Jules Labarte. With Illustrations. Svo. HEAD'S (SiR FRANCIS) Rough Notes of some Rapid Journeys across the Pampas and over the Andes. Post Svo. 2s. Qd. Bubbles from the Brunnen of Nassau. By an OLD MAN. Sixth Edition. 16mo. 5s. Emigrant. Sixth Edition. Fcap. Svo. 2s. 6d. Stokers and Pokers, or the London and North- Western Railway. Post Svo. 2s. Gd. Defenceless State of Great Britain. ContentsI. Mili- tary Warfare. 2. Naval Warfare. 3. The Invasion of England. 4. The Capture of London by a French Army. 5. The Treatment of Women in War. 6. How to Defend Great Britain. Post Svo. 12s. Sketches of Paris, or Faggot of French Sticks. New Edition. 2 Vols. Post Svo. 12s. Fortnight in Ireland. Second Edition. Map. Svo. 1-*. (SiR GEORGE) Forest Scenes and Incidents in Canada. Second Edition. PostSvo. 10s. Home Tour through the Manufacturing Districts of England, Scotland, and Ireland, including the Channel Islands, and the Isle of Man. Third Edition. 2 Vols. PostSvo. 12s. PUBLISHED BY MR. MURRAY. 17 HEAD'S (SiR EDMUND) Handbook 'of Painting the German, Dutch, Spanish, and French Schools. Partly from the German of KUGLKR. With Illustrations. 2 Vols. Post Svo. HEBER'S (BISHOP) Parish Sermons ; on the Lessons, the Gospel, or the Epistle, for every Sunday in the Year, and for Week-day Festivals; Sixth Edition. 2 Vols. Post Svo. 16*. Sermons Preached in England. Second Edition. Svo. 9s. Qd. Hymns written and adapted for the weekly Church Service of the Year. Twelfth Edition. 16mo. 2s. Poetical Works. Fifth Edition. Portrait. Fcap. Svo. 7s. Qd. Journey through the Upper Provinces of India, From Calcutta to Bombay, with a Journey to Madras and the Southern Pro- vinces. 2 Vols. Post Svo. 10s. HEIRESS (THE) in Her Minority ; or, The Progress of Character. By the Author of " BERTHA'S JOURNAL." 2 Vols. 12mo. HERODOTUS. A New English Version. Translated from the Text of GAISFORD, and Edited with Notes, illustrating the History and Geography of Herodotus, from the most recent sources of information. By Rev. G. RAWLINSON, COLONEL RAWLINSON, and SIK J. G. WILKINSON. 4 Vols. Svo. In Preparation. HERSCHEL'S (Sia J. W. F.) Manual of Scientific Enquiry, for the Use of Travellers. By various Writers. Second Edition. Post Svo. 10s. Qd. HERVEY'S (LORD) Memoirs of the Reign of George the Second, from his Accession to the Death of Queen Caroline. Edited, with Notes, by Right Hon. J. W. CHOKER. Second and Cheaper Edition. Portrait. 2 Vols. Svo. 21s. HICKMAN'S (WM.) Treatise on the Law and Practice of Naval Courts Martial. Svo. 10s. Qd. HILL (FREDERIC) On Crime : its Amount, Causes, and Remedies. Svo. 12s. HILLARD'S (G. S.) Six Months in Italy. 2 Vols. Post Svo. 16s. HISTORY OF ENGLAND AND FRANCE UNDER THE HOUSE OF LANCASTER. With an Introductory View of the Early Reformation. Second, Edition. Svo. 15s. the late War: with Sketches of Nelson, Wellington, and Napoleon. By J. G. LOCKHART. 18mo. 2s. Qd. HOLLAND'S (REV. W. B.) Psalms and Hymns, selected and adapted to the various Solemnities of the Church. Third Edition. 24mo. Is. 3d. HOLLWAY'S (J. G.) Month in Norway. Fcap. Svo. 25. HONEY BEE (THE). An Essay. Reprinted from the "Quar- terly Review." Fcap. Svo. Is. c 18 LIST OF WORKS HOME AND COLONIAL LIBRARY. Complete in 76 Parts. Post 8vo, 2s. Qd. each, or bound in 37 Volumes, cloth. CONTENTS OP THE SERIES. THE BIBLE IN SPAIN. By GEORGE BORROW. JOURNALS IN INDIA. By BISHOP HEBEB. TRAVELS IN THE HOLY LAND. By CAPTAINS IRBY and MANGLES. THE SIEGE OF GIBRALTAR. By JOHN DRINKWATER. MOROCCO AND THE MOORS. By J. DRUMMOND HAY. LETTERS FROM THE BALTIC. By a LADY. THE AMBER-WITCH. By LADY DUFF GORDON. OLIVER CROMWELL & JOHN BUNYAN. By ROBERT SOUTHEY. NEW SOUTH WALES. By MRS. MEREDITH. LIFE OF SIR FRANCIS DRAKE. By JOHN BARROW. FATHER RIPA'S MEMOIRS OF THE COURT OF CHINA. A RESIDENCE IN THE WEST INDIES. By M. G. LEWIS. SKETCHES OF PERSIA. By SIR JOHN MALCOLM. THE FRENCH IN ALGIERS. By LADY DUFF GORDON. BRACEBRIDGE HALL. By WASHINGTON IRVING. VOYAGE OF A NATURALIST. By CHARLES DARWIN. HISTORY OF THE FALL OF THE JESUITS. LIFE OF LOUIS PRINCE OF CONDE. By LORD MAHON. GIPSIES OF SPAIN. By GEORGE BORROW. THE MARQUESAS. By HERMANN MELVILLE. LIVONIAN TALES. By a Lady. MISSIONARY LIFE IN CANADA. By REV. J. ABBOTT. SALE'S BRIGADE IN AFFGHANISTAN. By REV. G. R. GLEIO, LETTERS FROM MADRAS. By a LADY. HIGHLAND SPORTS. By CHARLES ST. JOHN. JOURNEYS ACROSS THE PAMPAS. By SIR F. B. HEAD. GATHERINGS FROM SPAIN. By RICHARD FORD. SIEGES OF VIENNA BY THE TURKS. By LORD ELLESMEBE. SKETCHES OF GERMAN LIFE. By SIR A. GORDON. ADVENTURES IN THE SOUTH SEAS. By HERMANN MELVILLE. STORY OF BATTLE OF WATERLOO. By REV. G. R. GLEIG. A VOYAG E UP THE RIVER AMAZON. By W. H. EDWARDS. THE WAYSIDE CROSS. By CAPT. MILMAN. MANNERS & CUSTOMS OF INDIA. By REV. C. ACLAND. CAMPAIGNS AT WASHINGTON. By REV. G. R. GLEIG. ADVENTURES IN MEXICO. By G. F. RUXTON. PORTUGAL AND GALLICIA. By LORD CARNARVON. LIFE OF LORD CLIVE. By REV. G. R. GLEIG. BUSH LIFE IN AUSTRALIA. By H. W. HAYGARTH. THE AUTOBIOGRAPHY OF HENRY STEFFENS. TALEI3 OF A TRAVELLER. By WASHINGTON IRVING. SHORT LIVES OF THE POETS. By THOMAS CAMPBELL. HISTORICAL ESSAYS. By LORD MAHOX. LONDON & NORTH-WESTERN RAILWAY. By SIR F. B. HEAD. ADVENTURES IN THE LIBYAN DESERT. By BAYLE ST. JOHN. A RESIDENCE AT SIERRA LEONE. By a LADY. LIFE OF GENERAL MUNRO. By REV. G. R. GLEIG. MEMOIRS OF SIR FOWELL BUXTON. By his SON. LIFE OF OLIVER GOLDSMITH. By WASHINGTON IBVINO. PUBLISHED BY MR. MURRAY. 19 HOOK'S (REV. DR.) Church Dictionary. Seventh Edition. 8vo. 16s. - Discourses on the Religious Controversies of the Day. 8vo. 9s. Advice to the Eoman Catholics. By DEAN COMBER. A New Edition. With Notes. Fcap. 8vo. 3s. (THKODORE) Life. An Essay. Reprinted from the "Quarterly Review." Fcap. 8vo. Is. HOOKER'S (Dr. J. D.) Himalayan Journals ; or, Notes of an Oriental Naturalist in Bengal, the Sikkim and Nepal Himalayas, the Khasia Mountains, &c. Second Edition. Weodcuts. 2 vols. Post 8vo. HOOPER'S (LIEUT.) Ten Months among the Tents of the Tuski ; with Incidents of an Arctic Boat Expedition in Search of Sir John Franklin. By LIEUT. HOOPER, R.N. Plates 8vo. 14s. HORACE (Works of). Edited by DEAN MILMAN. New Edition. With 300 Woodcuts. Crown 8vo. 21s. (Life of). By DEAN MILMAN. New Edition. Woodcuts, and coloured Borders. 8vo. 9s. HORNER'S (FRANCIS) Memoirs and Letters. By his BROTHER. Second Edition. Portrait. 2 Vols. 8vo. 30s. HOSPITALS AND SISTERHOODS. Second Edition. Fcap. 8vo. 5s. HOUSTOUN:S (MRS.) Yacht Voyage to Texas and the Gulf of Mexico. Plates. 2 Vols. Post 8vo. 21s. HUMBOLDT'S (ALEX.) Cosmos ; or, a Physical Description of the World. Translated by COL. and MBS. SABINB. Seventh Edition. 3 Vols. Post 8vo. 10s. 6d. - Aspects of Nature in different Lands and in different Climates. Translated by COL. and MBS. SABINE. 2 Vols. Post 8vo. 5s. HUTCH1NSON (COLONEL) on Dog-Breaking; the most expe- ditious, certain, and easy Method, whether great Excellence or only Mediocrity be required. Second Edition. Woodcuts. Fcap. 8vo. 7s. 6d. INKERSLEY'S (Tnos.) Gothic Architecture in France ; Being an Inquiry into the Chronological Succession of the Komanesque and Pointed Styles; with Notices of some of the principal Buildings, and an Index. 8vo. 12s. IRBY AND MANGLES' Travels in Egypt, Nubia, Syria, and the Holy Land, including a Journey round the Dead Sea, and through the Country east of the Jordan. Post 8vo. 2s. 6d. JAMES' (REV. THOMAS) Fables of jEsop. A New Version, chiefly from the Original Greek. With 100 Original Designs, by JOHN TENNIEL. Twenty-first Edition. Post 8vo. 2s. 6d. JAMESON'S (MRS.) Handbook to the Picture Galleries in and near London. With Historical, Biographical, and Critical Notices. Post 8vo. Second Edition. 10s. JAPAN AND THE JAPANESE. Described from the Accounts of Recent Dutch Travellers. New Edition. Post 8vo. 6s. JERVIS'S (LIEUT.) Manual of Operations in the Field, for the Use of Officers. Post 8vo. 9s. Qd. c 2 20 LIST OP WORKS JESSE'S ^EDWARD) Visits to Spots of Interest in the Vicinity of Windsor and Eton. Woodcuts. Post 8vo. 12s. Scenes and Occupations of Country Life. With Recol- lections of Natural History. Third Edition. Woodcuts. Fcap. Svo. 6s. Gleanings in Natural History. With Anecdotes of the Sagacity and Instinct of Animals. Eighth Edition. Fcap. Svo. 6s. JOCELYN'S (LORD) Six Months with the Chinese Expedition ; or, Leaves from a Soldier's Note-Book. Seventh Edition. Fcap. Svo. 5s. 6<7. JOHNSON'S (DR. SAMUEL) Life : By James Boswell. Including the Tour to the Hebrides, with Notes by SIB W. SCOTT. Edited by the Right Hon. JOHN WILSON CHOKER. Third Edition. 1 Vol. Portraits. Royal 8vo. los. Lives of the most eminent English Poets. A New Edition. Edited and annotated. By PETER CCNXING HAM. Svols. Svo. 22s. 6rf. (Murray's British Classics.) JOHNSTOWN'S (WM.) England as it is : Social, Political, and Industrial, in the Middle of the 19th Century. 2 Vols. Post Svo. 18s. JOURNAL OP A NATURALIST. Fourth Edition. Woodcuts. Post Svo. 9s. Qd. JOWETT'S (Rev. B.) Commentary on St. Paul's Epistles to the Thessalonians, Galatiaus, and Romans. With Notes and Dissertations. 2 Vols. Svo. 30s. KEN'S (BISHOP) Life. By A LAYMAN. Second Edition. Portrait. 2 Vols. Svo. 18s. Exposition of the Apostles' Creed. Extracted from his "Practice of Divine Love." New Edition. Fcap. Is. 6d. Approach to the Holy Altar. Extracted from his " Manual of Prayer " and " Practice of Divine Love." Neio Edition. Fcap. Svo. Is. 6d. KING EDWARD Vlin's Latin Grammar: or, an Introduction to the Latin Tongue, for the Use of Schools. Tenth Edition. 12mo. 3s. 6rf. .. , .. First Latin Book ; or, the Accidence, Syntax and Prosody, with an English Translation for the Use of Junior Classes. Second Edition. 12mo. 2s. KINNEAR'S (JOHN G.) Cairo, Petra, and Damascus, described from Notes made during a Tour in those Countries : with Remarks on the Government of Mehemet AH, and on the present prospects of Syria. Post Svo. 9s. 6d. KNIGHT'S (CHARLES) Knowledge is Power : a View of the Productive forces of Modern Society, and the results of Labour, Capital, and Skill. Woodcuts. Fcap. Svo. 7s. 6d. Once upon a Time. 2 Vols. Fcap. Svo. 105. Old Printer and Modern Press. Woodcuts. Fcap. Svo. 5s. KOCH'S (PROFESSOR) Crimea and Odessa; their Climate and Re- sources, described from personal knowledge. Map. Post Svo. 10s. (k*. PUBLISHED BY MR. MURRAY. KUGLER'S (Dr. FRANZ) Handbook to the History of Tainting (the Italian Schools). Translated from the German. Edited, with Notes, by Sin CHARLES EASTLAKE. Third Edition. With Woodcuts from the Old Masters. 2 Vols. Post 8vo. 30s. (the German, Dutch, Spanish, and French Schools). Partly Translated from the German. Edited, with Notes, by SIR EDMUND HEAD, Bart. With Woodcuts from the Old Masters. 2 Vols. PostSvo. 24s. LABAETE'S (M. JULES) Handbook of the Arts of the Middle Ages and Renaissance. Translated from the French, and edited with Notes. Woodcuts. 8vo. LABORDE'S (LEON DE) Journey through Arabia Petrsea, to Mount Sinai, and the Excavated City of Petrsea, the Edom of the Prophecies. Second Edition. With Plates. Svo. 18s. LAMBERT'S (Miss) Church Needlework. With Practical Remarks on its Preparation and Arrangement. Plates. Post 8ro. 9s. Qd. My Knitting Book. "Woodcuts. Two Parts. 16mo. 3s. My Crochet Sampler. Woodcuts. Two Parts. 16mo. 4s. Hints on Decorative NeedleAvork. 16mo. Is. 6d. LANE'S (E. W.) Arabian Nights. Translated, with Explanatory Notes. With Woodcuts. Royal 8vo. 21s. LATIN GRAMMAR (KING EDWARD THE Tim's.) For the Use of Schools. Tenth Edition. 12mo. 3*. 6d. - First Book (KING EDWARD VI.) ; T or, the Accidence, Syntax, and Prosody, Avith English Translation for Junior Classes. Second Edition. 12mo. 2s. LA YARD'S (A. H.) Nineveh and its Remains. Being a Nar- rative of Researches and Discoveries amidst the Ruins of Assyria. With an Account of the Chaldean Christians of Kurdistan ; the Yezedis? or Devil-worshippers; and an Enquiry into the Manners and Arts of the Ancient Assyrians. Sixth Edition. Plates and Woodcuts. 2 Vols. 8vo. 36s. Nineveh and Babylon ; being the Result of a Second Expedition to Assyria, fourteenth Thousand. Plates. 8vo. 21s. Or Fine Paper, 2 Vols. 8vo. 30s. - Popular Account of Nineveh. 1.5th Edition. With ^Voodcuts. Post 8vo. 5s. Monuments of Nineveh. First and Second Series. Illustrated by One Hundred and Seventy Engravings. 2 Vols. Imperial Folio, 101. 10s. each. LEAKE'S (CoL, W. MARTIN) Topography of Athens, with Remarks on its Antiquities; to which is added, the Demi of Attica. Second Edition. Plates. 2 Vols. Svo. 30s. - Travels in Northern Greece. Maps. 4 Yols. Svo. 60s. Greece at the End of Twenty-three Years' Protection. 8vo. 6J. Peloponnesiaca : A Supplement to Travels in the Morea. Svo. 15s. Thoughts on the Degradation of Science in England. 8vo. 3s. 22 LIST OF WORKS LESLIE'S (C. R.) Handbook for Young Painters. With Illustra- tions. Post 8vo. 10s. Gd. LETTERS FROM THE SHORES OF THE BALTIC. By a LADY. Post 8vo. 2s. 6d. Madras ; or, First Impressions of Life and Manners in India. By a LADY. Post 8vo. 2s. Qd. Sierra Leone, written to Friends at Home. By a LADY. Edited by Mrs. NORTON. Post 8vo. 6s. LEWIS' (G. COKNEWALL) Essay on the Government of Dependencies. 8vo. 12s. Glossary of Provincial Words used in Herefordshiie and some of the adjoining Counties. 12mo. 4s. Qd. - Essay on the Origin and Formation of the Romance Languages. Second Edition. 8vo. 12s. (LADY THERESA) Friends and Contemporaries" of the Lord Chancellor Clarendon, illustrative of Portraits in his Gallery. With an Introduction, containing a Descriptive Catalogue of the Pictures, and an Account of the Origin of the Collection. Portraits. 3 Vols. 8vo. 42s. (M. G.) Journal of a Residence among the Negroes in the West Indies. Post 8vo. 2s. 6d. LEXINGTON (THE) PAPERS ; or, Some Account of the Courts of London and Vienna at the end of the 17th Century. Extracted from Official and Private Correspondence, 1694-1698. Edited by HON. H. MANNERS SUTTON. Svo. 14s. LIDDELL'S (DEAN) History of the Republic of Rome. From the close of the Second Punic War to the death of Sylla. 2 Vols. Svo. In Preparation. - History of Rome. From the Earliest Times to the the Establishment of the Empire. 2 Vols. Svo. LINDSAY'S (LORD) Sketches of the History of Christian Art. 3Vols.8vo. 31s. 6d. - Lives of the Lindsays ; or, a Memoir of the Houses of Crawford and Balcarres. To which are added, Extracts from the Official Correspondence of Alexander, sixth Earl of Balcarres, during the Maroon War ; together with Personal Narratives, by his Brothers, the Hon. Robert, Colin, James, John, and Hugh Lindsay; and by his Sister, Lady Anne Barnard. 3 Vols. Svo. 42s. Report of the Claim of James, Earl of Crawfurd and Balcarres, to the Original Dukedom of Montrose, created in 1488. Folio. 15s. (Rev. HENRY) Practical Lectures on the Historical Books of the Old Testament. 2 Vols. 16mo. 10s. LITTLE ARTHUR'S HISTORY OF ENGLAND. By LADY CALLCOTT. Eighteenth Edition. Fcap. Svo. LIVONIAN TALES. -The Disponent. The Wolves. The Jewess. By the Author of " Letters from the Baltic." Post Svo. 2s. 6d. LOCKHART'S (J. G.) Ancient Spanish Ballads. Historical and Romantic. Translated, with Notes. New Edition, with Illuminated Titles, Borders, &c. 4to. Or, Popular Edition, Post8vo. 2s. 6d. - Life of Robert Burns. Fifth Edition. Fcap. Svo. 3s. - History of the Late War: with Sketches" of Nelson, Wellington, and Napoleon. ISmo. 2s. Qd. PUBLISHED BY MR. MURRAY. 23 LOUDON'S (MRS.) Ladies' Gardener; or, Instructions in Gardening. With Directions for Every Month in the Year, and a Calendar ot Operations. Eighth Edition. Woodcuts. Fcap. 8vo. 5s. Modern Botany for Ladies ; or, a Popular Introduction to the Natural System of Plants. Second Edition. Woodcuts. Fcap. Svo. 5s, LOWE'S (SiR HUDSON) Letters and Journals, during the Captivity of Napoleon at St. Helena. By WILLIAM FORSYTE. Portrait. 3 Vols. 8vo. 45s. LYELL'S (SiR CHARLES) Principles of Geology; or, the Modern Changes of the Earth and its Inhabitants considered as illustrative of Geology. Ninth Edition. Woodcuts. Svo. 18s. Manual of Elementary Geology ; or, the Ancient Changes of the Earth and its Inhabitants illustrated by its Geological Monuments. Fifth Edition. Woodcuts. Svo. Travels in North America, 1841-2; with Observations on the United States, Canada, and Nova Scotia. Second Edition. Plates. 2 Vols. Post Svo. 12. Second Yisit to the United States of North America, 1845-6. Third Edition. 2 Vols. Post Svo. 12s. MAHON'S (LORD) History of England, from the Peace of Utrecht to the Peace of Versailles, 1713 83. Fourth Edition. 7 Vols. Svo. 93s. - Popular Edition. 7 Vols. Post Svo. 42s. - " Forty-Five ; " a Narrative of the Rebellion in Scot- land. Post Svo. 3s. ; History of the War of the Succession in Spain. Second Edition. Map. Svo. 15s. Spain under Charles the Second ; or, Extracts from the Correspondence of the Hon. ALEXANDER STANHOPE, British Minister at Madrid from 1690 to 1700. Second Edition. Post Svo. 6s. 6d. - Life of Louis Prince of Conde", surnamed the Great. Post Svo. 5s. Life of Belisarius. Second Edition. Post Svo. 105. 6d. - Historical and Critical Essays. Post Svo. 5*. Story of Joan of Arc. Fcap. Svo. 1*. M C CULLOCH'S (J. R.) Collected Edition of RICARDO'S Political Works. With Notes and Memoir. Second Edition. Svo. 16s. MALCOLM'S (SiR JOHN) Sketches of Persia. Third Edition. PostSvo. 6s. MANTELL'S (GIDEON A.) Thoughts on Animalcules; or, the Invisible World, as revealed by the Microscope. Second Edition. Plates. 16mo. 6s. MANUAL OF SCIENTIFIC ENQUIRY, Prepared for the Use of Officers and Travellers in general. By various Writers. Edited by SIB J. HERSCHEL, Bart. Second Edition. Maps. Post Svo. 10s. 6d. (Pub- lished by order of the Lords of the Admiralty.) MARKHAM'S (MRS.) History of England. From the First Inva- sion by the Romans, down to the fourteenth year of Queen Victoria's Reign. GSth Edition. Woodcuts. 12mo. 6s. History of France. From the Conquest by the Gauls, to the Death of Louis Philippe. 3Qt?i Edition. Woodcuts. 12mo. 6s. 24 LIST OF WORKS MARKHAM'S History of Germany. From the Invasion by Marius, to the present time. 6th Edition. "Woodcuts. 12mo. 6s. History of Greece. With Chapters on the Literature, Art, and Domestic Manners of the Greeks. By Dr. "Wii. SMITH Seventh Edition. Woodcuts. 12mo. 7*. 6d. - History of Borne, from the Earliest Times to the Establishment of the Empire. By DEAN LIDDELL. Woodcuts. 12rno. In the Press. - Sermons for Children. Second Edition. Fcap.Svo. 3s. MARKLAND'S (J. H.) Remarks on English Churches, and Sepul- chral Memorials. Fourth Edition. Woodcuts. Fcap.Svo. 6s. 6d. Reverence due to Holy Places. TJiird Edition. Fcap. 8vo. 2s. MARRY AT'S (JOSEPH) History of Pottery and Porcelain, in the 15th, 16th, 17th, and 18th Centuries. With a Description of the Manu- facture, a Glossary, and a List of Monograms. With Coloured Plates and Woodcuts. Svo. 31s. 6d. ** Afevy copies on India Proofs, mounted on Large Paper. 4to. 51. 5s. MATTHIAS'S (AUGUSTUS) Greek Grammar for Schools. Abridged from the Larger Grammar. By Blomfield. 8th Edition. Revised by EDWARDS. 12mo. 3s. - Greek Accidence for Schools. Abridged by BLOMFIELD. Four tJi Edition., revised by EDWARDS. 12mo. 2s. MAUREL'S (JULES) Essay on the Character, Actions, and Writings of the Duke of Wellington. Second Edition. Fcap. Svo. Is. 6d. MAWE'S (H. L.) Journal of a Passage from the Pacific to the Atlantic, crossing the Andes in the Northern Provinces of Peru, and descending the great River Marauon. Svo. 12s. MAXIMS AND HINTS for an Angler, and the Miseries of Fishing. By RICHARD PENN. Second Edition. Woodcuts. 12mo. 5s. YOYO'S (DR.) Pathology of the Human Mind. Fcap. Svo. 5s. 6d. MELVILLE'S (HERMANN) Typee and Omoo; or, Adventures amongst the Marquesas and South Seas. 2 Vols. Post Svo. MENDELSSOHN'S (FELIX BARTHOLDY) Life. By JULES BENEDICT. Svo. 2s. 6d. MERRIFIELD (MRS.) on the Arts of Painting in Oil, Miniature, Mosaic, and Glass ; Gilding, Dyeing, and the Preparation of Colours and Artificial Gems, described in several old Manuscripts. 2 Vols. Svo. 30s. MEREDITH'S (MRS. CHARLES) Notes and Sketches of New South Wales, during a Residence from 1839 to 1844. Post Svo. 2s. 6d. Tasmania, during a Residence of Nine Years. With Illustrations. 2 Vols. Post Svo. ISs. MILLS (ARTHUR) On Colonial Constitutions. An Outline of the History of British Dependencies. Map. Svo. MITCHELL'S (THOMAS) Plays of Aristophanes. With English Notes. Svo. 1. CLOUDS, 10s. 2. WASPS, 10s. 3. FROGS, 15s. MODERN DOMESTIC COOKERY. Founded on Principles of Economy and Practical Knowledge, and adapted for Private Families. New Edition. Woodcuts. Fcap. Svo. 5s. PUBLISHED BY MR. MURRAY. 25 OILMAN'S (DEAN) History of Christianity, from the Birth of Christ to the Extinction of Paganism in the Roman Empire. 3 Vols. 8vo. 36s. -History of Latin Christianity ; including that of the Popes to the Pontificate of Nicholas V. 6 Vols. 8vo. 72s. Character and Conduct of the Apostles considered as an Evidence of Christianity. 8vo. 10s. 6d. Life and Correspondence of Edward Gibbon. Portrait. 8vo. 9s. Life and Works of Horace. With 300 Woodcuts. N?w Edition. 2 Vols. Crown 8vo. 30s. - Poetical Works. Plates. 3 Yols. Fcap. 8vo. 18s. Fall of Jerusalem. Fcap. 8vo. Is. MILMAN'S (CAPT. E. A.) Wayside Cross; or, tlie Eaid of Gomez. A Tale of the Carlist War. Post 8vo. 2s. 6d. MONASTERY AND THE MOUNTAIN CHURCH. By Author of " Sunlight through the Mist." "Woodcuts. 16mo. 4s. MOLTKE'S (BARON) Russian Campaigns on the Danube and the Passage of the Balkan, 18289. Plans. 8vo. 14s. MOORE'S (THOMAS) Life and Letters of Lord Byron. Plates. 6 Vols. Fcap. Svo. 18s. ; or, One Volume, Royal 8vo. 12s. MOZLEY'S (REV. J. B.) Treatise on the Augustinian Doctrine of Predestination. Svo. 14s. MUCK MANUAL (The) for the "Use of Farmers. A Practical Treatise on the Chemical Properties, Management, and Application of Manures. By FREDERICK FALKNER. Second Edition. Fcap. Svo. 5s. MUNDY'b (CAPT. RODNEY) Events in Borneo, including the Occu- pation of Labuan and Visit to the Celebes. Plates. 2 Vols. 8vo. 32s. MUNRO'S (GENERAL SIR THOMAS) Life and Letters. By the REV. G. R. GLEIG. Post Svo. 6s. MURCHISON'S (SiR RODERICK) Russia in Europe and the Ural Mountains; Geologically Illustrated. With Coloured Maps, Plates, Sections, &c. 2 Vols. Royal 4to. 81. 8s. Siluria ; or, a History of the Oldest Rocks con- taining Organic Remains. With Map and Plates. Svo. 30s. MURRAY'S (CAPT. A.) Naval Life and Services of Admiral Sir Philip Durham. Svo. 5s. 6d. MURRAY'S RAILWAY READING. Published occasionally; varying in size and price, and suited for all classes of Readers. [ The following are, published .-] \VBLLINGTON. By LORD ELIJESMKRE. 6d. MAHON'S JOAN OF ARC. 1*. ]N'lMKOD ON THE CHASE, 1. 2 Vols. 8*. Music AND DRBSS. Is. LAYAKD'S POPULAR ACCOUNT OP NINKVEU. HEAD'S EMIGRANT. 2s. fid. NlMKOD ON TUE ROAD. 1*. WILKINSON'S ANCIENT EGYPTIANS. 12#. CROKER ON THK GUILLOTINB. Is. as. \ HOJ-LWAY'S NORWAY. 2* MILMAN'S FALL OF JERUSALEM. Is. \ MAUREL'S WELLINGTON. l*.6rf. MAHON'S "FoRTY-FivB." 3*. ' CAMPBELL'S LIFE OF BACON. 2. LIFH OF THEOI>ORK HOOK. Is. j THF. FLOWER GARDEN. Is. DEEDS OF NAVAI, DARIMG. 2 Vols. 5*. LOCKHART'S SPANISH BALLADS. 2. 6ff. Ta* HONEY BBK. 1*. LUCAS ON HISTORY. M. JAMES' ^Esop's FABLES. 2*. M. BEAUTIES OF BYRON. 3*. NlMBOU ON THE TURF. 1. 6rf. , TATtl.OR's NoTKS FROM LlFB. 2*. OLIPHANT'S NKPAUL. 2. 6d. j REJECTED ADDRESSFS. 1. ART OF DINING. 1*. M. Pua-Vs HINXS ON AXGLINS. 1. HALLAM'S LITKSARY ESSAYS. 2. 26 LIST OF WORKS MUSIC AND DRESS. Two Essays, by a Lady. Reprinted from the "Quarterly Review." Fcap. 8vo. Is. NAUTICAL ALMANACK (The). (Published by Order of the Lords Commissioners of the Admiralty.) Royal 8 vo. 2s. 6d. NAPIER'S (Sm WM.) English Battles and Sieges of the Peninsular War. With Portrait. Post 8vo. 10s. 6d. NAVY LIST (The Royal). (Published Quarterly, by Authority.) 12mo. 2s. Qd. NEWBOLD'S (LIEUT.) Straits of Malacca, Penang, and Singapore. 2 Vols. 8vo. 26s. NEWDEGATE'S (C. N.) Customs' Tariffs of all Nations ; collected and arranged up to the year 1855* 4to. 30s. NICHOLLS' (SiB GEORGE) History of the English Poor Law : in connection with the Condition of the People. 2 Vols. Svo. 28s. NIMROD On the Chace The Turf and The Road. Reprinted from tT5e " Quarterly Review." Woodcuts. Fcap. Svo. 3s. Qd. NORTON'S (HoN. CAROLINE) Letters from Sierra Leone, to Friends at Home. By a LADY. Edited by Mrs. NORTON. Post Svo. 6s. O'BYRNE'S (W. R.) Naval Biographical Dictionary, comprising the Life and Services of every Living Officer in H. M. Navy, from the Rank of Admiral to that of Lieutenant. Compiled from Authentic and Family Documents. Royal Svo. 42s. O'CONNOR'S (R.) Field Sports of France ; or, Hunting, Shooting, and Fishing on the Continent. Woodcuts. 12mo. Is.Qd. OLIPHANT'S (LAURENCE) Journey to Katmandu, with Visit to the Camp of the Nepaulese Ambassador. Fcap. Svo. 2s. Qd. OXENHAM'S (REV. W.) English Notes for Latin Elegiacs ; designed for early Proficients in the Art of Latin Versification, -with Prefatory Rules of Composition in Elegiac Metre. Second Edition. 12mo. 4s. PAGET'S (JOHN) Hungary and Transylvania. With Remarks on their Condition, Social, Political, and Economical. Third and Cheaper Edition. Woodcuts. 2 Vols. Svo. 18s. PARISH'S (SiR WOODBINE) Buenos Ayres and the Provinces of the Rio de la Plata. Their First Discovery and Conquest, Present State, Trade, Debt, &c. Second Edition. Map and Woodcuts. Svo. 15s. PARIS'S (T. C.) Letters from the Pyrenees during Three Months' Pedestrian Wanderings amidst the Wildest Scenes of the French and Spanish Pyrenees. Woodcuts. Post Svo. 10s. 6d. PARKYNS' (MANSFIELD) Personal Narrative of Three Years' Resi- dence and Adventures in Abyssinia. Woodcuts. 2 Vols. Svo. 30s. PEILE'S (REV. DR.) Agamemnon of JSschylus. A New Edition of the Text, with Notes, Critical, Explanatory, and Philological, for the Use of Students. Second Edition. Svo. 9s. Choephoroe of ^Eschylus. A New Edition of the Text, with Notes, Critical, Explanatory, and Philological, for the Use of Students. Second Edition. Svo. 9s. PELLEW'S (DEAN OF NORWICH) Life of Lord Sidmouth, with his Correspondence. Portraits. 3 Vols. Svo, 42s. PENN'S (RICHARD) Maxims and Hints for an Angler, and the Miseries of Fishing. To which is added, Maxims and Hints fon Chess-player. New Edition. Woodcuts. Fcap. Svo. Is. PUBLISHED BY MR. MURRAY. 27 PENN'S (GRANVILLE) Bioscope ; or, Dial of Life Explained. To which is added, a Translation of St. Paulinus' Epistle to Celantia, on the Rule of Christian Life ; and an Elementary View of General Chro- nology. Second Edition. With Dial Plate. 12ino. 12s. PENROSE'S (REV. JOHN) Lives of Vice-Admiral Sir C. Y. Penrose, and Captain James Trevenen. Portraits. 8vo. 10s. Qd. Faith and Practice ; an Exposition of the Principles and Duties of Natural and Revealed Religion. Post 8vo. - (F. C.) Principles of Athenian Architecture, and the Optical Refinements exhibited in the Construction of the Ancient Buildings at Athens, from a Survey. With 40 Plates. Folio. 51. 5s. (Published under the direction of the Dilettanti Society.) PERRY'S (SiR ERSKINE) Bird's-Eye View of India. With Extracts from a Journal kept in the Provinces, Nepaul, &c. Fcap. 8vo. PHILLIPS' (JOHN) Memoirs of William Smith, LL.D. (the Geo- logist). Portrait. 8vo. 7s. Qd. Geology of Yorkshire, The Yorkshire Coast, and the Mountain-Limestone District. Plates 4to. Part I., 31s. Qd. Part II., 52s. Qd. - The Rivers, Mountains, and Sea Coast of Yorkshire. With Essays on the Climate, Scenery, and Ancient Inhabitants of the Country. Second Edition, with 36 Plates. 8vo. 15s. PHILOSOPHY IN SPORT MADE SCIENCE IN EARNEST ; or, the First -Principles of Natural Philosophy inculcated by aid of the Toys and Sports of Youth. Seventh Edition. Woodcuts. Fcap. Svo. 7s. Qd. PHILPOTT'S (BISHOP) Letters to the late Charles Butler, on the Theological parts of his " Book of the Roman Catholic Church ; " with Remarks on certain Works of Dr. Milner and Dr. Lingard, and on some parts of the Evidence of Dr. Doyle. Second Edition. 8vo. 16s. PHIPPS' (HoN. EDMUND) Memoir, Correspondence, Literary and Unpublished Diaries of Robert Plumer Ward. Portrait. 2Vols. 8vo. 28s. POOLE'S (R. S.) Horae Egyptiacae ; or, the Chronology of Ancient Egypt, discovered from Astronomical and Hieroglyphic Records upon its Monuments. Plates. 8vo. 10s. Qd. POPE'S (ALEXANDER) WORKS. An entirely New Edition. Edited by the Right Hon. JOHN WILSON CHOKER, assisted by PETEB CUNNING- HAM, F.S.A. Svo. In the Press. PORTER'S (G. R.) Progress of the Nation, in its various Social and Economical Relations, from the beginning of the Nineteenth Century. Third Edition. Svo. 24s. . (REV. J. L.) Five Years in Damascus. With Travels to Palmyra, Lebanon, aud other Scripture Sites. Map and Woodcuts. 2 vols. Post Svo. - (MRS. G. R.) Rational Arithmetic for Schools and for Private Instruction. 12mo. 3s. Qd. POWELL'S (REV. W. P.) Latin Grammar simplified. 12mo. 3s. Qd. PRAYER-BOOK (THE), Illuminated with 1000 Illustrations of Bor- ders, initials, Vignettes, &c. Medium Svo. Cloth, 21s.; Calf, 31s. Qd. Morocco, 42s. 28 LIST OF WORKS PROGRESS OF RUSSIA IN THE EAST, An Historical Sum- roary, continued to the Present Time. "With Map by AREOWSJUTII Third Edition. 8vo. 6s. 6d. PUSS IN BOOTS. With 12 Illustrations ; for Old and Young-. By OTTO SPECKTER. A New Edition. 16mo. QUARTERLY REVIEW (THE). 8vo. 65. RANKE'S (LEOPOLD) Political and Ecclesiastical History of the Popes of Rome, during the Sixteenth and Seventeenth Centuries. Trans- lated from the German by MKS. AUSTIN. Third Edition. 2 Yols. 8vo. 24s. RAWLINSON'S (REV. GEORGE) Herodotus. A New English Version. Translated from the Text of GAISFORD, and Edited with Notes, illustrating the History and Geography of Herodotus, from the most recent sources of information, embodying the chief Results, Historical and Ethnographical, which have been arrived at in the pro- gress of Cuneiform and Hieroglyphical Discovery. Assisted by COLONKI, RAWLINSON and SIR J. G. WILKINSON. 4 Vols. 8vo. In Preparation. REJECTED ADDRESSES (THE). By JAMES AND HORACE SMITH. With Biographies of the Authors, and additional Notes. New Edition, with the Author's latest Corrections. Portraits. Fcap. Svo. Is., or on Fine Paper. With Portrait and Woodcuts. Fcap. Svo. 5s. RICARDO'S (DAVID) Political Works. With a Notice of his Life and Writings. By J. R. M'CtTLLOCH. New Edition. Svo. 16s. RIPA'S (FATHER) Memoirs during Thirteen Years' Residence at the Court of Peking, in the Service of the Emperor of China. Translated from the Italian. By FORTUNATO PBANDI. Post Svo. 2s. Qd. ROBERTSON'S (REV. J. C.) History of the Christian Church, to the Pontificate of Gregory the Great: a Manual for general Readers as well as for Students in Theology. Svo. 12s. ROBINSON'S (EDWD., D.D.) Biblical Researches in the Holy Land. A New and Revised Edition. With Maps. 2 Vols. Svo. In Preparation. - Later Biblical Researches in the Holy Land in the year 1852. Maps. Svo. In Preparation. KOMILLY'S (SiR SAMUEL) Memoirs and Political Diary. By his SONS. Third Edition. Portrait. 2 Vols. Fcap. 8vo. 12s. ROSS'S (SiR JAMES) Voyage of Discovery and Research in the Southern and Antarctic Regions during the years 1839-43. Plates. 2 Vols. Svo. 36s. ROYAL SOCIETY OF LITERATURE (THE). TRANSACTIONS. Plates. Vols. I. to III. Svo. 12s. each. RUNDELL'S (MRS.) Domestic Cookery, founded on Principles of Economy and Practice, and adapted for Private Families. New and Revised Edition. Woodcuts. Fcap. Svo. 5s. RUXTON'S (GEORGE F.) .Travels in Mexico; with Adventures among the Wild Tribes and Animals of the Prairies and Rocky Moun- tains. Post Svo. 6s. SALE'S (LADY) Journal of the Disasters in Affghanistan. Eighth Edition. Post Svo. 12s. (SiR ROBERT) Brigade in Affghanistan. With an Account of the Seizure and Defence of Jellalabad. ByREV.G.R.GLEiG. Post 8vo.2s.6d. SCROPE'S (WILLIAM) Days of Deer-Stalking in the Forest of Atholl ; with some Account of the Nature and Habits of the Red Deer. TJiird Edition. Woodcuts. Crown Svo. 20s. PUBLISHED BY MR. MURRAY. 29 SCROPE'S Days and Nights of Salmon Fishing in the Tweed ; with a short Account of the Natural History and Habits of the Salmon. Second Edition. Woodcuts. Royal 8vo. 31s. 6d. (G. P.) Memoir of Lord Sydenham, and his Administra- tion in Canada. Second Edition. Portrait. 8vo. 9s. 6d. SENTENCES FROM THE PROVERBS. In English, French, Italian, and German. For the Daily Use of Young Persons. By A LADY 16mo. 3*.ty. SEYMOUR'S (H. DANBY) Travels in the Crimea and along the Shores of the Sea of Azoff and the Black Sea. Third Edition. Map. Svo. 12s. SHAW'S (Tnos. B.) Outlines of English Literature, for the Use of Young Students. Post 8vo. 12s. SIDMOUTH'S (LORD) Life and Correspondence. By the HON. and REV. GEORGE PELLEW, DEAN OF NORWICH. Portraits. 3Vols.8vo. 42s. SIERRA LEONE ; Described in a Series of Letters to Friends at Home. By A LADY. Edited by MRS. NORTON. Post Svo. 6s. SMITH'S (WM., LL.D.) Dictionary of Greek and Roman Anti- quities. Second Edition. With 500 Woodcuts. Svo. 42s. Smaller Dictionary of Greek and Roman Antiquities. Third Edition. With 200 Woodcuts. Crown Svo. 7s. 6d. Dictionary of Greek and Roman Biography and My- thology. With 500 Woodcuts. 3 Vols. Svo. 51. 15s. 6d. Dictionary of Greek and Roman Geography. Woodcuts. Vol.1. 8vo. 36s. - New Classical Dictionary for Schools. Compiled from the two last works. Third Edition. Svo. 15s. - Smaller Classical Dictionary. TJiird Edition. With 200 Woodcuts. Crown Svo. 7s. 6d. New Latin-English Dictionary. Based upon the Works of Forcelliui and Freuud. Medium Svo. 21s. - Smaller Latin-English Dictionary. Square Svo. 7s. 6d. School History of Greece ; from the Earliest Times to the Roman Conquest, with Supplementary Chapters on the History of Literature and Art. Woodcuts. Seventh Edition. Crown Svo. 7s. Qd. - School Histoi-y of Rome ; from the Earliest Times to the Establishment of the Empire. By H. G. LIDUELL, D.D., Dean of Christ Church. Woodcuts. Post Svo. In the Press. Gibbon's Decline and Fall of the Roman Empire. Edited, with Notes. Portrait and Map. 8 Vols. Svo. 60s. (Murray's British Classics.) (WM. JAS.) Grenville Letters and Diaries, including MR. GUENVILLE'S DIARY OF POLITICAL EVKXTS, while First Lord of the Treasury. Edited, with Notes. 4 Vols. Svo. 64s. (JAMES & HoRACE)['Rejected Addresses. 23rd Edition. Fcap.Svo. Is., or Fine Paper,' With Portrait and Woodcuts, FcapSvo. 5s. LIST OF WORKS SOMERVILLE'S (MART) Physical Geography. Third Edition. Portrait. 2 Vols. Fcap. Svo. 12s. Connexion of the Physical Sciences. Eighth Edition. Plates. Fcap. Svo. 10s. 6d. SOUTHEY'S (EGBERT) Book of the Church ; with Notes contain- ing the Authorities, and an Index. Sixth Edition. Svo. 12s. Lives of John Bunyan& Oliver Cromwell. Post Svo. 2s. 6rf* SPECKTER'S (OTTO) Puss in Boots, suited to the Tastes of Old and Young. A Neiv Edition. With 12 Woodcuts. Square 12mo. Charmed Roe ; or, the Story of the Little Brother and Sister. Illustrated. 16mo. STANLEY'S (EDWARD, D.D., Bp. of Norwich) ADDRESSES AND CHARGES. With a Memoir of his Life. By His Sox. Second Edition . Svo. 10s. 6d. ~ (ARTHUR P.) Commentary on St. Paul's Epistles to the Corinthians, with Notes and Dissertations. 2 Vols. Svo. 24s. Historical Memoirs of Canterbury. The Landing of Augustine The Murder of Becket The Black Prince The Shrine of Becket. Second Edition. Woodcuts. Svo. 8s. 6d. Travels in Sinai and Palestine. Map. Svo. ST. JOHN'S (CHARLES) Field Notes of a Sportsman and Naturalist in Sutherland. Woodcuts. 2 Vols. Post Svo. 18s. - Wild Sports and Natural History of the Highlands. (BAYLE) Adventures in the Libyan Desert and the- Oasis of Jupiter Ammon. Woodcuts. PostSvc. 2s. Qd. STISTED'S (MRS. HENRY) Letters from the Bye- Ways of Italy. Plates. Svo. 18s. STOTHARD'S (Tnos., R. A.) Life. With Personal Reminiscences. By Mrs. BRAY. With Portrait and 60 Woodcuts. 4to. 21s. STREET'S (G. E.) Brick and Marble Architecture of Italy, in the Middle Ages. Plates. Svo. 21s. STRIFE FOR THE MASTERY. Two Allegories. With Illus- trations. Crown Svo. 6s. SUNLIGHT THROUGH THE MIST; or, Practical Lessons drawn from the Lives of Good Men, intended as a Sunday Book for Children. By A LADY. Second Edition. 16mo. 3s. 6d. SUTTON (Ho*. H. MANNERS). Some Account of the Courts of London and Vienna, at the end of the Seventeenth Century, extracted from the Official and Private Correspondence of Robert Sutton (late Lord Lexington) while British Minister at Vienna, 1694-98. Svo. 14s. SWIFT'S (JONATHAN) Works. New Edition, based upon Sir Walter Scott's Edition, entirely revised. Svo. In Preparation. SYDENHAM'S (LORD) Memoirs. With his Administration in Canada. By G.Pour/ETScKOPK. M.P. Second Edition. Portrait. Svo. 9s. &7. PUBLISHED BY MR. MURRAY. '61 TALBOT'S (H. Fox) English Etymologies. 8vo. 12*. TAYLOR'S (HENRY) Notes from Life, in Six Essays. Post Svo. 6s. ; or, Cheap Edition, Fcap. 8vo. 25. Notes from Books. Third Edition. Post 8vo. 9s. (J. E.) Fairy Ring. A Collection of Stories for Young Persons. From the German. With Illustrations by RICHAED DOYLE. Second Edition. Woodcuts. Fcap. Svo. 7s. Qd. TENNENT'S (Sin J. E.) Christianity in Ceylon. Its Introduction and Progress under the Portuguese, Dutch, British, and American Mis- sions. With an Historical Sketch of the Brahmanical and Buddhist Superstitions. Woodcuts. Svo. 14s. THREE-LEAVED MANUAL OF FAMILY PRAYER; arranged so as to save the trouble of turning the Pages backwards and forwards. Royal Svo. 2s. TICKNOR'S (GEORGE) History of Spanish Literature. With Criti- cisms on particular Works, and Biographical Notices of Prominent Writers. Second Edition. 3 Vols. Svo. 24s. TREMENHEERE'S (H. S.) Political Experience of the Ancients. in its bearing on Modern Times. Fcap. Svo. 2s. Gd. Notes on Public Subjects, made during a Tour in the United States and Canada. Post Svo. 10s. 6d. - Constitution of the United States compared with our own. Post Svo. 9s. Qd. TURNBULL'S (P. E.) Narrative of Travels in Austria, with Remarks on its Social and Political Condition. 2 Vols. Svo. 24s. TWISS' (HORACE) Public and Private Life of Lord Chancellor Eldon, with Selections from his Correspondence. Portrait. Third Edition. 2 Vols. Post Svo. 21s. UBICINFS (M. A.) Letters on Turkey and its Inhabitants the Moslems, Greeks, Armenians, &c. 2 Vols. Post Svo. VAUGHAN'S (REV. DR.) Sermons preached in Harrow School, Svo. 10s. 6rf. - Nine New Sermons. 12mo. 5s. YAUX'S (W. S. W.) Handbook to the Antiquities in the British Museum; being a Description of the Remains of Greek, Assyrian, Egyptian, and Etruscan Art preserved there. With 300 Woodcuts. Post Svo. 7s. 6d. VOYAGE to the Mauritius and back, touching at the Cape of Good Hope, and St. Helena. By Author of " PADDIANA." Post Svo. 9s. Qd. WAAGEN'S (DR.) Treasures of Art in Great Britain. Being an Account of the Chief Collections of Paintings, Sculpture, Manuscripts, Miniatures, &c. &c^ in this Country. Obtained from Personal Inspec- tion during Visits to England. 3 Vols. Svo. 36s. WADDINGTON'S (DEAN) The Condition and Prospects of the Greek Church. New Edition. Fcap. Svo. 3s. 6d. "WAKEFIELD'S (E. J.) Adventures in New Zealand. With some Account of the Beginning of the British Colonisation of the Island. Map. 2 Vols. Svo. 28s. WALKS AND TALKS. A Story-book for Young Children. By AUNT IDA. With Woodcuts. 16mo. 5s. o2 LIST OF WORKS PUBLISHED BY MR. MURRAY. WARD'S (ROBERT PLTJMER) Memoir, Correspondence, Literary and Unpublished Diaries and Remains. By the HON. EDMUND PHIPPS. Portrait. 2 Vols. 8vo. 28s. WATT (JAMES) ; Origin and Progress of his Mechanical Inventions. Illustrated by his Correspondence with his Friends. Edited with an Introductory Memoir, by J.P. MUIUHEAD. Plates. 3 vols. 8vo., 455. ; or Large Paper. 4to. WELLESLEY'S (REV. DR.) Anthologia Polyglotta ; a Selection of Versions in various Languages, chiefly from the Greek Anthology. 8vo, 15s.; or4to, 42s. WELLINGTON'S (THE DUKE OF) Character, Actions, and Writings. By JULES MAUREL. Second Edition. Is, Gd. Despatches during his various Campaign?. Compiled from Official and other Authentic Documents. By COL. GURWOOD, C.B. New Enlarged Edition. 8 Vols. 8vo. 21s. each. Selections from his Despatches and General Orders. 8vo. 18s. Speeches in Parliament. Collected and Arranged with his sanction. 2 Vols. Svo. 42s. WILKIE'S (SiR DAVID) Life, Journals, Tours, and Critical Remarks on Works of Art, with a Selection from his Correspondence. By ALLAN CUNNINGHAM. Portrait. 3 Vols. Svo. 42s. WILKINSON'S (SiR J. G.) Popular Account of the Private Life, Manners, and Customs of the Ancient Egyptians. With 500 Wood- cuts. 2 Vols. Post 8vo. 12s. Dalmatia and Montenegro ; with a Journey to Mostar in Hertzegovina, and Remarks on the Slavonic Nations. Plates and Woodcuts. 2 Vols. 8vo. 42s. - Handbook for Egypt. Thebes, the Nile, Alex- andria, Cairo, the Pyramids, Mount Sinai, &c. Map. Post Svo. 15s. (G. B.) Working Man's Handbook to South Aus- tralia ; with Advice to the Farmer, and Detailed Information for the several Classes of Labourers and Artisans. Map. 18mo. Is. 6<7. WOOD'S (LIEUT.) Voyage up the Indus to the Source of the River Oxus, by Kabul and Badakhshan. Map. Svo. 14s. WOODWARD'S (B. B.) Handbook of Chronology and History ; Alphabetically Arranged to Facilitate Reference. 8vo. WORDSWORTH'S (REV. DR.) Athens and Attica. Journal of a Tour. Third Edition. Plates. Post Svo. 8s. 6d. King Edward Vlth's Latin Grammar, for the Use of Schools. 10th Edition, revised. 12mo. 3s. 6d. First Latin Book, or the Accidence, Syntax and Prosody, with English Translation for Junior Classes. Second Edition. 12mo. 2s. WORNUM (RALPH). A Biographical Dictionary of Italian Painters : with a Table of the Contemporary Schools of Italy. By a LADY. Post Svo. 6s. 6(7. WORSAAE'S (J. J. A.) Account of the Danes and Northmen in England, Scotland, and Ireland. Woodcuts. Svo. 10s. 6d. YOUNG'S (DR. THOS.) Life and Miscellaneous Works, edited by DEAN PEACOCK and JOHN LEITCH. Portrait and Plates. 4 Vols. Svo. 15*. each. RETURN TO the circulation desk of any University of California Library or to the NORTHERN REGIONAL LIBRARY FACILITY Bldg. 400, Richmond Field Station University of California Richmond, CA 94804-4698 ALL BOOKS MAY BE RECALLED AFTER 7 DAYS 2-month loans may be renewed by calling (415)642-6233 1-year loans may be recharged by bringing books to NRLF Renewals and recharges may be made 4 days prior to due date DUE AS STAMPED BELOW LIBRARY USE NOV3 '87 IMTFRMRPARVTnAM 1991 UNIV. OF CALIF., BERK. UNIVERSITY OF CALIFORNIA LIBRARY